Skip to main content

Full text of "The Times' Red Cross story book"

See other formats


RED  CROSS 
STORYBGOK 

BY  FAMOUS  NOVELISTS 
SERVING  IN  HIS  MAJESTY'S  FORCES 

Published,  for 

Wxe  TOme^e?  fund 

SyHOI>D£IL&  STOUGHTOH 


Library 
of  the 
University  of  Toronto 


V 


Digitized  by  the  Internet  Archive 
in  2015 


https://archive.org/details/timesredcrossstoOOunse 


Dimoussi. 


Frontispiece. 


RED  CROSS 
STORY  BOOK 


FAMOUS  NOVELISTS  SERVING 
IN  HIS  MAJESTY'S  FORCES 


ILLUSTRATED 

PUBLISHED  FOR 

FUND  FOR  THE 
SICK  &  WOUNDED 

BY  HODDER  AND  STOUGHTON 
LONDON     NEW  YORK  TORONTO 


CONTENTS 


PAGB 

DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL  3 

A.  E.  W.  Mason,  Manchesier  Regiment 

THE  WOMAN  16 

A.  A.  Milne,  Royal  Warwick  Regiment 

THE  CHERUB  31 

Oliver  Onions,  Army  Service  Corps 

AN   IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON  37 

W.  B.  Maxwell,  Royal  Fusiliers 

THE  VEIL   OF  FLYING  WATER  51 

Theodore  Goodi'idge  Roberts,  Canadian  Expeditionary  Force 

"BILL   BAILEY"  62 

Ian  Hay,  Argyll  and  Sutherland  Highlanders 

LIFE-LIKE  74 

Martin  Swayne,  Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

LAME   DOGS  83 

Cosmo  Hamilton,  Royai  Naual  Air  Service 

THE   SILVER  THAW  97 

R.  E.  Vemede.  Rifle  Brigade 

CARNAGE  104 

Comptou  Mackenzie,  Royal  Navy 

THE  BRONZE   PARROT  115 

R.  Austin  l  ieeman,  Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

THE   FORBIDDEN   WOMAN  125 

Warwick  Deeping,  Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

ELIZA  AND   THE   SPECIAL  136 

Barry  Pain,  Royal  Navai  Air  Service 

THE  PROBATION   OF   JIMMY  BAKER         .        .        .  .140 

Albert  Kinross,  Army  Service  Corps 

THE   GHOST   THAT   FAILED  149 

Desmond  Coke,  Loyal  North  Lancashire  Regiment 

THE  MIRACLE  157 

iUiiph  stock,  Ariista'  Rifles 

THE   FIGHT   FOR   THE   GARDEN  162 

Sir  Arthur  T.  Quiller-Couch,  Duke  of  Cornwall's  Light  infcuiiry 

THE  FACE   IN   THE  HOP  VINES  178 

Charles  G.  D.  Roberts,  King  s  {LiiHU-pOi>i)  Ragiumu, 


1^ 


Dimoussi  and  the  Pistol 


By  A.  E.  W.  Mason 

Manchester  Regiment 

In  the  maps  of  Morocco  you  will  see,  stretching  southwards  of  the  city  of 
Mequinez,  a  great  tract  of  uncharted  country.  It  is  lawless  and  forbidden 
land.  Even  the  Sultan  Mulai  el  Hassen,  that  great  fighter,  omitted  it  from 
his  expeditions. 

But  certain  tribes  are  known  to  inhabit  it,  such  as  the  Beni  M'tir,  and 
certain  villages  can  be  assigned  a  locality,  such  as  Agurai,  which  lies  one  long 
day's  journey  from  the  Renegade's  Gate  of  Mequinez. 

At  Agurai  Dimoussi  was  born,  and  lived  for  the  first  fifteen  years  of  his 
life — Dimoussi  the  Englishman,  as  he  was  called,  though  in  features  and  colour 
he  had  the  look  of  an  Arab  with  just  a  strain  of  Negro  blood. 

At  the  age  of  fifteen  a  desire  to  see  the  world  laid  hold  upon  Dimoussi. 
As  far  as  the  eye  could  see  from  any  mound  about  the  village,  there  stretched 
on  every  side  a  rolling  plain,  silent  and  empty.  Hardly  a  bird  sang  in  the  air 
above  it ;  and  everywhere  it  was  dark  with  bushes  wherein  the  flowers  of 
asphodel  gleamed  pale  and  small. 

Dimoussi  wearied  of  the  plain.  One  thin,  reddish  line  meandered  uncer- 
tainly from  north  to  south,  a  stone's  throw  from  the  village,  where  the  feet 
of  men  and  mules  passing  at  rare  intervals  through  many  centuries  had  beaten 
down  a  path.  Along  this  path  Dimoussi  allowed  his  fancies  to  carry  him 
into  a  world  of  enchantment ;  and  one  spring  morning  his  feet  carried  him 
along  it,  too. 

For  half  a  dozen  men  of  the  Beni  M'tir  carrying  almonds  and  walnuts  into 
Mequinez  happened  to  pass  Agurai  at  a  moment  when  Dimoussi  was  watch- 
ing, and  his  mother  was  at  work  on  a  patch  of  tilled  ground  out  of  sight. 
Dimoussi  had  no  other  parent  than  his  mother. 

He  ran  into  the  hut,  with  its  tent  roof  of  sacking  and  its  sides  of  rough 
hurdles,  which  was  his  home,  searched  in  a  corner  for  a  big  brass-barrelled  pistol 
which  had  long  been  the  pride  of  the  establishment,  and,  hiding  it  under 
his  ragged  jellaba,  he  ran  down  the  track  and  joined  himself  on  to  the  tiny 
caravan.  The  next  morning  he  came  to  Mequinez,  where  he  parted  company 
"with  the  tribesmen. 

Dimoussi  had  not  so  much  as  a  copper  flouss  upon  him,  but,  on  the  other 
hand,  he  had  a  pistol  and  the  whole  world  in  front  of  him.    And  what  reason 

3 


4 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


able  boy  could  want  more  ?  All  that  day  he  wandered  about  the  streets, 
gaping  at  the  houses,  at  the  towers  of  the  mosques,  and  at  the  stalls  in  the 
markets,  but  as  the  afternoon  declined,  hunger  got  hold  of  him.  His  friends 
of  yesterday  had  vanished.    Somehow  he  must  get  food. 

He  fingered  the  pistol  under  his  jellaba  irresolutely.  He  walked  along 
a  street  which  he  came  to  know  afterwards  as  the  Sok  Kubba.  In  the  middle 
was  built  a  square  tent  of  stone  with  an  open  arch  at  each  side  and  a  pointed 
roof  of  fluted  tiles  trailed  over  by  a  vine.  Just  beyond  this  stone  tent  the 
street  narrowed,  and  on  the  left-hand  side  a  man  who  sold  weapons  squatted 
upon  the  floor  of  a  dark  booth. 

"  How  much  ?  "  asked  Dimoussi,  producing  his  pistol,  but  loth  to  let  it  go. 

The  shopman  looked  at  Dimoussi,  and  looked  at  the  pistol.  Then  he 
tossed  it  carelessly  behind  him  into  the  litter  of  his  booth. 

"  It  is  no  good.  As  sure  as  my  name  is  Mustapha,  it  would  not  kill  a  rabbit. 
But  see  !    My  heart  is  kind.    I  will  give  you  three  dollars." 

He  counted  them  out.  Dimoussi  stolidly  shook  his  head.  "  Seven," 
said  he. 

Mustapha  reached  behind  him  for  the  pistol,  and  flung  it  down  at  Dimoussi's 
feet. 

"  Take  it  away  !  "  said  he.  I  will  not  haggle  with  foolish  boys  who 
have  stolen  a  thing  of  no  value,  and  wish  to  sell  it  at  a  great  price.  Take  it 
away  !    Yet,  out  of  my  charity,  I  will  give  you  four  dollars." 

"  Five,"  said  Dimoussi. 

And  five  he  received. 

He  bought  rice  and  eggs  in  the  market,  and  turned  under  an  old  archway 
of  green  tiles  into  the  Fondak  Henna.  There  he  cooked  his  food  at  a  fire,  ate, 
and  proposed  to  sleep. 

But  Fate  had  laid  her  hand  upon  Dimoussi.  He  slept  not  at  all  that  night. 
He  sat  with  his  back  propped  against  the  filigree  plaster  of  one  of  the  pillars, 
and  listened  to  a  Moor  of  the  Sherarda  tribe,  who  smoked  keef  and  talked 
until  morning. 

"  Yes,"  said  the  Sherarda  man,  "  I  have  travelled  far  and  wide.  Now 
I  go  to  my  own  village  of  Sigota,  on  Jebel  Zarhon." 
"  Have  you  been  to  Fez  ?  "  asked  Dimoussi  eagerly. 

"  I  have  lived  in  Fez.  I  served  in  the  army  of  my  lord  the  Sultan  until 
I  was  bored  with  it.  It  is  a  fine  town  and  a  large  one.  The  river  flows  in  a 
hundred  streams  underneath  the  houses.  In  every  house  there  is  running 
water.    But  it  is  nothing  to  the  town  of  Mulai  Idris." 

Dimoussi  clasped  his  hands  about  his  knees. 

"  Oh,  tell  me  !  Tell  me  !  "  he  cried  so  loudly  that  in  the  shadows  of  the 
Fondak  men  stirred  upon  their  straw  and  cursed  him. 

"  I  have  also  travelled  to  Rabat,  a  great  town  upon  the  sea,  whither  many 
consools  come  in  fireships.  A  great  town  draped  with  flowers  and  cactus.  But 
it  is  nothing  to  Mulai  Idris.    There  are  no  consools  in  Mulai  Idris." 

All  through  his  talk  the  name  of  Mulai  Idris,  the  sacred  city  on  the  slope 
of  Jebel  Zarhon,  came  and  went  like  a  shuttle  of  a  loom. 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


5 


The  Sherarda  Moor  thought  highly  of  the  hfe  in  Mulai  Idris,  since  it  was 
possible  to  live  there  without  work. 

Pilgrims  came  to  visit  the  shrine  of  the  founder  of  the  Moorish  Empire, 
with  offerings  in  their  hands  ;  and  the  whole  township  lived,  and  lived  well, 
upon  those  offerings.  Moreover,  there  were  no  Europeans,  or  "  consools," 
as  he  termed  them. 

The  Moor  spoke  at  length,  and  with  hatred,  of  the  Europeans — pale,  un- 
gainly creatures  in  ridiculous  clothes,  given  over  to  the  devil,  people  with 
a  clever  knack  of  invention,  no  doubt,  in  the  matter  of  firearms  and  cameras 
and  spy-glasses,  but,  man  for  man,  no  match  for  any  Moor. 

"  Only  three  cities  are  safe  from  them  now  in  all  Morocco  :  Sheshawan 
in  the  north,  Tafilat  in  the  south,  and  Mulai  Idris.  But  Mulai  Idris  is  safest. 
Once  a  party  of  them — Englishmen — came  rising  up  the  steep  road  to  the  gate 
even  there,  but  from  the  walls  we  stoned  them  back.  God's  curse  on  them  ! 
Let  them  stay  at  home  !    But  they  must  always  be  pushing  somewhere." 

Dimoussi,  recognising  in  himself  a  point  of  kinship  with  the  "  consools," 
said  gravely  : 

"  I  am  an  Englishman." 

The  Sherarda  man  laughed,  as  though  he  had  heard  an  excellent  joke, 
and  continued  to  discourse  upon  the  splendours  of  Mulai  Idris  until  the  sleepers 
waked  in  their  corners,  and  the  keeper  flung  open  the  door,  and  the  grey 
daylight  crept  into  the  Fondak. 

"  Oh,  tell  me  !  "  said  Dimoussi.    "  The  city  is  far  from  here  ?  " 

"  Set  out  now.    You  will  be  in  Mulai  Idris  before  sunset." 

Dimoussi  rose  to  his  feet. 

"  I  will  go  to  Mulai  Idris,"  said  he,  and  he  went  out  into  the  cool,  clear  air. 
The  Sherarda  Moor  accompanied  Dimoussi  to  the  Bordain  Gate,  and  there 
they  parted  company,  the  boy  going  northward,  the  Moor  following  the  east- 
ward track  towards  Fez.  He  had  done  his  work,  though  what  he  had  done  he 
did  not  know. 

At  noon  Dimoussi  came  out  upon  a  high  tableland,  as  empty  as  the  plains 
which  stretched  about  his  native  Agurai.  Far  away  upon  his  left  the  dark, 
serrated  ridge  of  Jebel  Gerouan  stood  out  against  the  sky.  Nearer  to  him  upon 
his  right  rose  the  high  rock  of  Jebel  Zarhon.  In  some  fold  of  that  mountain 
lay  this  fabulous  city  of  Mulai  Idris. 

Dimoussi  walked  forward,  a  tiny  figure  in  that  vast  solitude.  There  were 
no  villages,  there  were  no  trees  anywhere.  The  plateau  extended  ahead  of 
him  like  a  softly  heaving  sea,  as  far  as  the  eye  could  reach.  It  was  covered 
with  bushes  in  flower  ;  and  here  and  there  an  acre  of  marigolds  or  a  field  of 
blue  lupins  decked  it  out,  as  though  someone  had  chosen  to  make  a  garden 
there. 

Then  suddenly  upon  Dimoussi's  right  the  hillside  opened,  and  in  the  recess 
he  saw  Mulai  Idris,  a  city  high-placed  and  dazzlingly  white,  which  tumbled 
down  the  hillside  like  a  cascade  divided  at  its  apex  by  a  great  white  mosque. 

The  mosque  was  the  tomb  of  Mulai  Idris,  the  founder  of  the  empire. 
Dimoussi  dropped  upon  his  knees  and  bowed  his  forehead  to  the  ground. 


6 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Mulai  Idris,"  he  whispered,  m  a  voice  of  exaltation.  Yesterday  he  had 
never  even  heard  the  name  of  the  town.  To-day  the  mere  sight  of  it  Hfted 
him  into  a  passion  of  fervour. 

Those  white  walls  masked  a  crowded  city  of  filth  and  noisome  smells. 
But  Dimoussi  walked  on  air  ;  and  his  desire  to  see  more  of  the  world  died 
away  altogether. 

He  was  in  the  most  sacred  place  in  all  Morocco  ;  and  there  he  stayed. 
There  was  no  need  for  him  to  work.  He  had  the  livelong  day  wherein  to 
store  away  in  his  heart  the  sayings  of  his  elders.  And  amongst  those  sayings 
there  was  not  one  that  he  heard  more  frequently  than  this : 

"  There  are  too  many  Europeans  in  Morocco." 

Fanaticism  was  in  the  very  stones  of  the  town.  Dimoussi  saw  it  shining 
sombrely  in  the  eyes  of  the  men  who  paced  and  rode  about  the  streets  ;  he  felt 
it  behind  the  impassivity  of  their  faces.  It  came  to  him  as  an  echo  of  their 
constant  prayers.    Dimoussi  began  to  understand  it. 

Once  or  twice  he  saw  the  Europeans  during  that  spring.  For  close  by 
in  the  plain  a  great  stone  arch  and  some  broken  pillars  showed  where  the 
Roman  city  of  Volubilis  had  stood.  And  by  those  ruins  once  or  twice  a  party 
of  Europeans  encamped. 

Dimoussi  visited  each  encampment,  begged  monej?"  of  the  "  consools,"  and 
watched  with  curiosity  the  queer  mechanical  things  they  carried  with  them 
— ^their  cameras,  their  weapons,  their  folding  mirrors,  their  brushes  and  combs. 
But  on  each  visit  he  became  more  certain  that  there  were  too  many  Europeans 
in  Morocco. 

"  A  d jehad  is  needed,"  said  one  of  the  old  men  sitting  outside  the  gate — 
'*  a  holy  war — to  exterminate  them." 

*'  It  is  not  easy  to  start  a  djehad,"  replied  Dimoussi. 

The  elders  stroked  their  beards  and  laughed  superciliously. 

"  You  are  young  and  foolish,  Dimoussi.  A  single  shot  from  a  gun,  and 
all  Moghrebbin  is  in  flame." 

"  Yes  ;  and  he  that  fired  the  shot  certain  of  Paradise." 

Not  one  of  them  had  thought  to  fire  the  shot.  They  were  chatterers  of 
vain  words.  But  the  words  sank  into  Dimoussi's  mind  ;  for  Dimoussi  was 
different.  He  began  to  think,  as  he  put  it ;  as  a  matter  of  fact,  he  began  to 
feel. 

He  went  up  to  the  tomb  of  Mulai  Idris,  bribed  the  guardian,  who  sat  with 
a  wand  in  the  court  outside  the  shrine,  to  let  him  pass,  and  for  the  first  time 
in  his  life  stood  within  the  sacred  place.  The  shrine  was  dark,  and  the  ticking 
of  the  clocks  in  the  gloom  filled  Dimoussi' s  soul  with  awe  and  wonderment. 

For  the  shrine  was  crowded  with  clocks  :  grandfather  clocks  with  white 
faces,  and  gold  faces,  and  enamelled  faces,  stood  side  by  side  along  the  walls, 
marking  every  kind  of  hour.  Eight-day  clocks  stood  upon  pedestals  and 
niches  ;  and  the  whole  room  whirred,  and  ticked,  and  chimed  ;  never  had 
Dimoussi  dreamed  of  anything  so  marvellous.  There  were  glass  balls,  too, 
dangling  from  the  roof  on  silver  strings,  and  red  baize  hanging  from  the  tomb. 

Dimoussi  bowed  his  head  and  prayed  for  the  djehad.    And  as  he  prayed 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


7 


in  that  dark  and  solitary  place  there  came  to  him  an  inspiration.  It  seemed 
that  Mulai  Idris  himself  laid  his  hand  upon  the  boy's  head.  It  needed  only 
one  man,  only  one  shot  to  start  the  djehad.  He  raised  his  head  and  all  the 
ticking  clocks  cried  out  to  him  :  Thou  art  the  man."  Dimoussi  left  the 
shrine  with  his  head  high  in  the  air  and  a  proudness  in  his  gait.  For  he  had 
his  mission. 

Thereafter  he  lay  in  wait  upon  the  track  over  the  plain  to  Mequinez,  watch- 
ing the  north  and  the  south  for  the  coming  of  the  traveller. 

During  the  third  week  of  his  watching  he  saw  advancing  along  the  track 
mules  carrying  the  baggage  of  Europeans.  Dimoussi  crouched  in  the  bushes 
and  let  them  pass  with  the  muleteers.  A  good  way  behind  them  the  Europeans 
rode  slowly  upon  horses.  As  they  came  opposite  to  Dimoussi,  one,  a  dark, 
thin  man,  stretched  out  his  arm  and,  turning  to  his  companion,  said  : 

"  Challoner,  there  is  Mulai  Idris.'* 

At  once  Dimoussi  sprang  to  his  feet.  He  did  not  mean  to  be  robbed  of 
his  great  privilege.    He  shook  his  head. 

Lar,  lar  !  "  he  cried.    "  Bad  men  in  Mulai  Idris.    They  will  stone  you. 
You  go  to  Mequinez." 

The  man  who  had  already  spoken  laughed. 

"  We  are  not  going  to  Mulai  Idris,"  he  replied.  He  was  a  man  named 
Arden  who  had  spent  the  greater  part  of  many  years  in  Morocco,  going  up 
and  down  that  country  in  the  guise  of  a  Moor,  and  so  counterfeiting  accent, 
and  tongue,  and  manners,  that  he  had  even  prayed  in  their  mosques  and 
escaped  detection. 

"  You  are  English  ?  "  asked  Dimoussi. 

"  Yes.    Come  on,  Challoner  !  " 

And  then,  to  his  astonishment,  as  his  horse  stepped  on,  Dimoussi  cried 
out  actually  in  English  : 

"  One,  two,  three,  and  away  I  " 
Arden  stopped  his  horse. 

*'  Where  did  you  learn  that  ?  "  he  asked  ;  and  he  asked  in  English. 
But  Dimoussi  had  spoken  the  only  five  words  of  English  he  knew,  and 
even  those  he  did  not  understand. 

Arden  repeated  the  question  in  Arabic ;  and  Dimoussi  answered  with  a  smile : 
"  I,  too,  am  English." 

"  Oh  !  are  you  ?  "  said  Arden,  with  a  laugh  ;  and  he  rode  on.  "  These 
Moors  love  a  Joke.  He  learned  the  words  over  there,  no  doubt,  from  the 
tourists  at  Volubilis.    Do  you  see  those  blocks  of  stone  along  the  track  ?  " 

"  Yes,"  answered  Challoner.    "  How  do  they  come  there  ?  " 

"  Old  Mulai  Ismail,  the  sultan,  built  the  great  palace  at  Mequinez  two 
hundred  years  ago  from  the  ruins  of  Volubilis.  These  stones  were  dragged 
down  by  the  captives  of  the  Salee  pirates." 

"  And  by  the  English  prisoners  from  Tangier  ?  "  said  Challoner  suddenly. 

"  Yes,"  replied  Arden  with  some  surprise,  for  there  was  a  certain  excite- 
ment in  his  companion's  voice  and  manner.  The  English  were  prisoners 
until  the  siege  ended,  and  we  gave  up  Tangier  and  they  were  released*  When 


8 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Mulai  Ismail  died,  all  these  men  dragging  stones  just  dropped  them  and 
left  them  where  they  lay  by  the  track.  There  they  have  remained  ever  since. 
It's  strange,  isn't  it  ?  " 

"  Yes,"  said  Challoner  thoughtfully.  He  was  a  young  man  with  the  look 
of  a  student  rather  than  a  traveller.  He  rode  slowly  on,  looking  about  him, 
as  though  at  each  turn  of  the  road  he  expected  to  see  some  Englishman  in 
a  tattered  uniform  of  the  Tangier  Foot  leaning  upon  a  block  of  masonry  and 
wiping  the  sweat  from  his  brow. 

"  Two  of  my  ancestors  were  prisoners  here  in  Mequinez,"  he  said.  They 
were  captured  together  at  the  fall  of  the  Henrietta  Fort  in  1680,  and  brought 
up  here  to  work  on  Mulai  Ismail's  palace.  It's  strange  to  think  that  they 
dragged  these  stones  down  this  very  track.  I  don't  suppose  that  the  country 
has  changed  at  all.  They  must  have  come  up  from  the  coast  by  the  same 
road  we  followed,  passed  the  same  villages,  and  heard  the  pariah  dogs  bark 
at  night  just  as  we  have  done." 

Arden  glanced  in  surprise  at  his  companion. 

"  I  did  not  know  that.  I  suppose  that  is  the  reason  why  you  wish  to 
visit  Mequinez  ?  " 

Challoner's  sudden  desire  to  travel  inland  to  this  town  had  been  a  mystery 
to  Arden.  He  knew  Challoner  well,  and  knew  him  for  a  dilettante,  an  amiable 
amateur  of  the  arts,  a  man  always  upon  the  threshold  of  a  new  interest,  but 
never  by  any  chance  on  the  other  side  of  the  door,  and,  above  all,  a  stay-at- 
home.    Now  the  reason  was  explained. 

"  Yes,"  Challoner  admitted.    "  I  was  anxious  to  see  Mequinez." 

"  Both  men  came  home  when  peace  was  declared,  I  suppose  ?  "  said  Arden. 
No.    Only  one  came  home,  James  Challoner.    The  other,  Luke,  turned 
renegade  to  escape  the  sufferings  of  slavery,  and  was  never  allowed  to  come 
back.    The  two  men  were  brothers. 

"I  discovered  the  story  by  chance.  I  was  looking  over  the  papers  in  the 
library  one  morning,  in  order  to  classify  them,  and  I  came  across  a  manuscript 
play  written  by  a  Challoner  after  the  Restoration.  Between  the  leaves  of 
the  play  an  old,  faded  letter  was  lying.  It  had  been  written  by  James,  on 
his  return,  to  Luke's  wife,  telling  her  she  would  never  see  Luke  again.  I  will 
show  you  the  letter  this  evening." 

"  That's  a  strange  story,"  said  Arden.  "  Was  nothing  heard  of  Luke 
afterwards  ?  " 

Nothing.    No  doubt  he  lived  and  died  in  Mequinez." 

Challoner  looked  back  as  he  spoke.  Dimoussi  was  still  standing  amongst 
the  bushes  watching  the  travellers  recede  from  him.  His  plan  was  completely 
formed.  There  would  be  a  djehad  to-morrow,  and  the  honour  of  it  would 
belong  to  Dimoussi  of  Agurai. 

He  felt  in  the  leathern  wallet  which  swung  at  his  side  upon  a  silk  orange- 
coloured  cord.  He  had  ten  dollars  in  that  wallet.  He  walked  in  the  rear 
of  the  travellers  to  Mequinez,  and  reached  the  town  just  before  sunset-  He 
went  at  once  to  the  great  square  by  the  Renegade's  Gate,  where  the  horses 
are  brought  to  roll  in  the  dust  on  their  way  to  the  watering  fountain, 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


9 


There  were  many  there  at  the  moment ;  and  the  square  was  thick  with 
dust  Uke  a  mist. 

But,  through  the  mist,  in  a  corner,  Dimoussi  saw  the  tents  of  the  travellers, 
and,  in  front  of  the  tents,  from  wall  to  wall,  a  guard  of  soldiers  sitting  upon 
the  ground  in  a  semicircle. 

Dimoussi  was  in  no  hurry.  He  loitered  there  until  darkness  followed  upon 
the  sunset,  and  the  stars  came  out. 

He  saw  lights  burning  in  the  tents,  and,  through  the  open  doorway  one, 
the  man  who  had  spoken  to  him,  Arden,  stretched  upon  a  lounge-chair, 
reading  a  paper  which  he  held  in  his  hand. 

Dimoussi  went  once  more  to  the  Fondak  Henna,  and  made  up  for  the 
wakeful  night  he  had  passed  here  with  a  Moor  of  the  Sherarda  tribe  by  sleep- 
ing until  morning  with  a  particular  soundness. 

II 

The  paper  which  Arden  was  reading  was  the  faded  letter  written  at  "  Berry 
Street,  St.  James's  "  on  April  14, 1684,  by  the  James  Challoner  who  had  returned 
to  the  wife  of  Luke  Challoner  who  had  turned  renegade. 

Arden  took  a  literal  copy  of  that  latter  ;  and  it  is  printed  here  from  that 
copy: 

"  Bebby  Stbebt,  St.  James's, 

"April  14,  1684. 

'*  My  dear  Pamela, 

"  I  have  just  now  come  back  from  Whitehall,  where  I  was  most  graciously 
received  by  his  Majestic,  who  asked  many  questions  about  our  sufferings 
among  the  Moors,  and  promised  rewards  with  so  fine  a  courtesy  and 
condescension  that  my  four  years  of  slavery  were  all  forgotten.  Indeed, 
my  joy  would  have  been  rare,  but  I  knew  that  the  time  would  come  when 
I  must  go  back  to  my  lodging  and  write  to  you  news  that  will  go  near 
to  break  your  heart.  Why  did  my  brother  not  stay  quietly  at  home 
with  his  wife,  at  whose  deare  side  his  place  was  ?  But  he  must  suddenlie 
leave  his  house,  and  come  out  to  his  younger  brother  at  Tangier,  who  was 
never  more  sorry  to  see  any  man  than  I  was  to  see  Luke.  For  we  were 
hard  pressed  :  the  Moors  had  pushed  their  trenches  close  under  our  walls, 
and  any  night  the  city  might  fall.  And  now  I  am  come  safely  home, 
though  there  is  no  deare  heart  to  break  for  me,  and  Luke  must  for  ever 
stay  behind.  For  that  is  the  bitter  truth.  We  shall  see  noe  more  of 
Luke,  and  you,  my  deare,  are  widowed  and  yet  no  widow.  Oh,  why  did 
you  let  him  goe,  knowing  how  quick  he  is  to  take  fire,  and  how  quick  to 
cool  ?  I,  too,  am  to  blame,  for  I  kept  him  by  me  out  of  my  love  for 
him,  and  that  was  his  undoing. 

"  In  May  ...  I  commanded  the  Henrietta  Fort,  and  Luke  was  a 
volunteer  with  me.  For  five  days  we  were  attacked  night  and  day,  we 
were  cut  off  from  the  town,  there  was  no  hope  that  way,  and  all  our 
ammunition  and  water  consumed,  and  most  of  us  wounded  or  killed. 


10 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


So  late  on  the  night  of  the  13th  we  were  compelled  to  surrender  upon 
promise  of  our  lives.  Luke  and  I  were  carried  up  to  Mequinez,  and 
there  set  to  build  a  wall,  which  was  to  stretch  from  that  town  to 
Morocco  city,  so  that  a  blind  man  might  travel  all  those  many  miles 
safely  without  a  guide.  I  will  admit  that  our  sufferings  were  beyond 
endurance.  We  slept  underground  in  close,  earth  dungeons,  down  to 
w^hich  we  must  crawl  on  our  hands  and  knees  ;  and  at  day  we  laboured 
in  the  sunlight,  starved  and  thirsting,  no  man  knowing  when  the  whip 
of  the  taskmaster  would  fall  across  his  back,  and  yet  sure  that  it 
would  fall.  Luke  was  not  to  be  blamed — to  be  pitied  rather.  He  was 
of  a  finer,  more  delicate  nature.  What  was  pain  to  us  was  anguish  and 
torture  to  him.  One  night  I  crept  down  into  my  earth  alone,  and  the 
next  day  he  walked  about  Mequinez  with  the  robes  of  a  Moor.  He  had 
turned  renegade. 

"  I  was  told  that  the  Bashaw  had  taken  him  into  his  service,  but  I 
never  had  the  opportunity  of  speech  with  him  again,  although  I  once 
heard  his  voice.  That  was  six  months  afterwards,  when  peace  had  been 
re-established  between  his  Maj.  and  the  Emperor.  Part  of  the  terms  of 
the  peace  was  that  the  English  captives  should  be  released  and  sent  down 
to  the  coast,  but  the  renegade  must  stay  behind.  I  pleaded  with  the 
Bashaw  that  Luke  might  be  set  free  too,  but  could  by  no  means 
persuade  him.  We  departed  from  Mequinez  one  early  morning,  and  on 
the  city  wall  stood  the  Bashaw's  house  ;  and  as  I  came  opposite  to  it 
I  saw  a  hand  wave  farewell  from  a  narrow  window-slit,  and  heard 
Luke's  voice  cry,  '  Farewell  I '  bravely,  Pamela,  bravely  I 

"  James  Challoner." 

When  Arden  had  finished  this  letter  he  walked  out  of  the  tent,  passed 
through  the  semicircle  of  sentinels,  and  stood  in  front  of  the  Renegade's 
Gate.  There  Challoner  joined  him,  and  both  men  looked  at  the  great  arch 
for  a  while  without  speaking.  It  rose  black  against  a  violet  and  starlit  sky. 
The  pattern  of  its  coloured  tiles  could  not  be  distinguished  ;  but  even  in  the 
darkness  something  of  its  exquisite  delicacy  could  be  perceived. 

"  Luke  Challoner  very  likely  worked  upon  that  arch,"  said  Arden.  "  Yet, 
as  I  read  that  letter,  it  seemed  so  very  human,  very  near,  as  though  it  had 
been  written  yesterday." 

"  I  wonder  what  became  of  him  ?  "  said  Challoner.  From  some  house 
on  the  city  wall  he  waved  his  hand  to  his  brother,  and  cried  '  Farewell ! '  bravely. 
1  v/onder  what  became  of  him  ?  " 

"  I  will  take  a  photograph  of  that  gate  to-morrow,"  said  Arden. 


Ill 

The  next  morning  Dimoussi  came  out  of  the  Fondak  Henna  and  walked 
to  the  little  booth  in  the  S6k  Kubba.    Mustapha  was  squatting  upon  the 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


11 


floor,  and  with  a  throbbing  heart  Dimoussi  noticed  the  famihar  pistol  shining 
against  the  dark  wall  behind.    It  had  not  been  sold. 
"  Give  it  to  me,"  he  said. 

Mustapha  took  the  pistol  from  the  nail  on  which  it  hung. 

"It  is  worth  fourteen  dollars,"  said  he.  But,  see,  to  every  man  his 
chance  comes.  I  am  in  a  good  mind  to-day.  My  health  is  excellent  and 
my  heart  is  light.    You  shall  have  it  for  twelve." 

Dimoussi  took  the  pistol  in  his  hand.  It  had  a  flint  lock  and  was  mounted 
in  polished  brass,  and  a  cover  of  brass  was  on  the  heel  of  the  butt. 

"It  is  not  worth  twelve.    I  will  give  you  seven  for  it." 

Mustapha  raised  his  hands  in  a  gesture  of  indignation. 

"  Seven  dollars  !  "  he  cried  in  a  shrill,  angry  voice.  "  Hear  him  !  Seven 
dollars  !  Look,  it  comes  from  Agadhir  in  the  Sus  country  where  they  make 
the  best  weapons." 

He  pointed  out  to  Dimoussi  certain  letters  upon  the  plate  underneath 
the  lock.    "  There  it  is  written." 

Dimoussi  could  not  read,  but  he  nodded  his  head  sagely. 

"  Yes.    It  is  worth  seven,"  said  he. 

The  shopman  snatched  it  away  from  the  boy, 

*'  I  will  not  be  angry,  for  it  is  natural  to  boys  to  be  foolish.  But  I  will 
tell  you  the  truth.  I  gave  eight  dollars  for  it  after  much  bargaining.  But 
it  has  hung  in  my  shop  for  a  year,  and  no  one  any  more  has  money.  There- 
fore, I  will  sell  it  to  you  for  ten." 

He  felt  behind  his  back  and  showed  Dimoussi  a  tantalising  glint  of  the 
brass  barrel.    Dimoussi  was  unshaken. 

"  It  has  hung  in  your  shop  for  four  months,"  said  he. 

"  A  year.    That  is  why  I  will  sell  it  to  you  at  the  loss  of  a  dollar." 

*'  Liar,  and  son  of  a  liar,"  replied  the  boy,  without  any  heat,  "  and  grand- 
son of  a  liar.  I  sold  it  to  you  for  five  dollars  four  months  ago.  I  will  give  you 
eight  for  it  to-day." 

He  counted  out  the  eight  dollars  one  by  one  on  the  raised  floor  of  the  booth, 
and  the  shopman  could  not  resist. 

"  Very  well,"  he  cried  furiously.  "  Take  it,  and  may  your  children  starve 
as  mine  surely  will !  " 

"  You  are  a  pig,  and  the  son  of  a  pig,"  replied  Dimoussi  calmly.  "  Have 
you  any  powder  ?  " 

He  changed  his  ninth  dollar  and  bought  some  powder. 

"  You  will  need  bullets,  too,"  said  Mustapha.  "  I  will  sell  you  them  very 
cheap.  Oh,  you  are  lucky !  Do  you  see  those  signs  upon  the  barrel  ?  The 
pistol  is  charmed  and  cannot  miss." 

Dimoussi  looked  at  the  signs  engraved  one  above  the  other  on  the  barrel. 
There  was  a  crown,  and  a  strange  letter,  and  a  lion.  He  had  long  wondered 
what  those  signs  meant.    He  was  very  glad  now  that  he  understood. 

*'  But  I  will  not  buy  lead  bullets,"  said  Dimoussi  wisely.  "  The  pistol 
may  be  enchanted  so  that  it  cannot  miss,  but  there  are  also  enchantments 
against  lead  bullets  so  that  they  cannot  hurt." 


12 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


So  Dimoussi  walked  away,  and  begged  a  lump  of  rock  salt  from  another 
booth  instead.  He  cut  down  the  lump  until  it  fitted  roughly  into  the  hexagonal 
barrel  of  his  pistol.  Then  he  loaded  the  pistol,  and  hiding  the  weapon  in 
the  wide  sleeve  of  his  jellaba,  sauntered  to  the  great  square  before  the  Rene- 
gade's Gate.  There  were  groups  of  people  standing  about  watching  the  tents, 
and  the  inevitable  ring  of  sentries.  But  while  Dimoussi  was  still  loitering 
— he  would  have  loitered  for  a  fortnight  if  need  be,  for  there  were  no  limits 
to  Dimoussi's  patience — Arden  came  out  of  the  tent  with  his  camera,  and 
Challoner  followed  with  a  tripod  stand. 

The  two  consools  passed  the  line  of  guards  and  set  up  the  camera  in  front 
of  the  Renegade's  Gate.  Dimoussi  was  quite  impartial  which  of  the  two 
should  be  sacrificed  to  begin  the  d jehad,  but  again  an  ironical  fate  laid  its 
hand  upon  him.  It  was  Arden  who  was  to  work  the  camera.  It  was  Arden, 
therefore,  who  was  surrounded  by  the  idlers,  and  was  safe.  Challoner,  on 
the  other  hand,  had  to  stand  quite  apart,  so  as  to  screen  the  lens  from  the 
direct  rays  of  the  sun. 

"  A  little  more  to  the  right,  Challoner,"  said  Arden.    "  That'll  do." 

He  put  his  head  under  the  focussing  cloth,  and  the  next  instant  he  heard 
a 'loud  report,  followed  by  shouts  and  screams  and  the  rush  of  feet ;  and  when 
he  tore  the  focussing  cloth  away  he  saw  Challoner  lying  upon  the  ground, 
the  sentries  agitatedly  rushing  this  way  and  that,  and  the  bystanders  to  a 
man  in  full  fiight. 

Dimoussi  had  chosen  his  opportunity  well.  He  stood  between  two  men, 
and  rather  behind  them,  and  exactly  opposite  Challoner.  All  eyes  were  fixed 
upon  the  camera,  even  Challoner's.  It  was  true  that  he  did  see  the  sun  glitter 
suddenly  upon  something  bright,  that  he  did  turn,  that  he  did  realise  that 
the  bright  thing  was  the  brass  barrel  of  a  big  flintlock  pistol.  But  before  he 
could  move  or  shout,  the  pistol  was  fired,  and  a  heavy  blow  like  a  blow  from 
a  cudgel  struck  him  full  on  the  chest. 

Challoner  spoke  no  more  than  a  few  words  afterwards.  The  lump  of  rock 
salt  had  done  the  work  of  an  explosive  bullet.  He  was  just  able  to  answer 
a  question  of  Arden's. 

"  Did  you  see  who  fired  ?  " 

"  The  boy  who  came  from  Mulai  Idris,"  whispered  Challoner.  "  He  shot 
me  with  a  brass-barrelled  pistol."  That  seemed  to  have  made  a  most  vivid 
impression  upon  his  mind,  for  more  than  once  he  repeated  it. 

But  Dimoussi  was  by  this  time  out  of  the  Renegade's  Gate,  and  running 
with  all  his  might  through  the  olive  grove  towards  the  open,  lawless  country 
south  of  Mequinez.  By  the  evening  he  was  safe  from  capture,  and  lifted  up 
with  pride. 

Certainly  no  djehad  had  followed  upon  the  murder,  and  that  was  disap- 
pointing. But  it  was  not  Dimoussi's  fault.  He  had  done  his  best  according 
to  his  lights.  Meanwhile,  it  seemed  prudent  to  him  to  settle  down  quietly 
at  Agurai.  He  was  nearly  sixteen  now.  Dimoussi  thought  that  he  would 
settle  down  and  marry. 

Here  the  episode  would  have  ended  but  for  two  circumstances.    In  the 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


13 


first  place  Dimoussi  carried  back  with  him  from  Mequinez  the  brass-barrelled 
pistol ;  and  in  the  second  place  Arden,  two  years  later,  acted  upon  a 
long-cherished  desire  to  penetrate  the  unmapped  country  south  of 
Mequinez. 

He  travelled  with  a  mule  as  a  Jew  pedlar,  knowing  that  such  a  man,  for 
the  sake  of  his  wares,  may  go  where  a  Moor  may  not.  Of  his  troubles  during 
his  six  months'  wanderings  now  is  not  the  time  to  speak.  It  is  enough  that 
at  the  end  of  the  six  months  he  set  up  his  canvas  shelter  one  evening  by  the 
village  of  Agurai. 

The  men  came  at  once  and  squatted,  chattering,  about  his  shelter. 

"  Is  there  a  woman  in  the  village,"  asked  Arden,  "  who  will  wash  some 
clothes  for  me  ?  " 

And  the  sheikh  of  the  village  rose  up  and  replied  : 

"  Yes  ;  the  Frenchwoman.    I  will  send  her  to  you." 

Arden  was  perplexed.  It  seemed  extraordinary  that  in  a  little  village 
in  a  remote  and  unusually  lawless  district  of  Morocco  there  should  be  a  French 
blanchisseuse.  But  he  made  no  comment,  and  spread  out  his  wares  upon 
the  ground.  In  a  few  moments  a  w^oman  appeared.  She  had  the  Arab  face, 
the  Arab  colour.  But  she  stood  unconcernedly  before  Arden,  and  said  in 
Arabic  : 

"  I  am  the  Frenchwoman.    Give  me  the  clothes  you  want  washing." 

Arden  reached  behind  him  for  the  bundle.  He  addressed  her  in  French, 
but  she  shook  her  head  and  carried  the  bundle  away.  Her  place  was  taken 
by  another,  a  very  old,  dark  woman,  who  was  accompanied  by  a  youth  carry- 
ing a  closed  basket. 

"  Pigeons,"  said  the  old  woman.    "  Good,  fat,  live  pigeons." 

Arden  was  fairly  tired  of  that  national  food  by  this  time,  and  waved  her 
away. 

Very  well,"  said  she.  She  took  the  basket  from  the  youth,  placed  it 
on  the  ground,  and  opened  the  lid.  Then  she  clapped  her  hands  and  the 
pigeons  flew  out.  As  they  rose  into  the  air  she  laughed,  and  cried  out  in 
English — "  One,  two,  three,  and  away  !  " 

Arden  was  fairly  startled. 

"  What  words  are  those  ?  "  he  exclaimed. 

"  English,"  the  old  woman  replied  in  Arabic.  "I  am  the  English- 
woman." 

And  the  men  of  the  village  who  were  clustered  round  the  shelter  agreed, 
as  though  nothing  could  be  more  natural : 

"  Yes,  she  is  the  Englishw^oman." 

"  And  what  do  the  words  mean  ?  " 

The  old  woman  shrugged  her  shoulders. 
My  father  used  them  just  as  I  did,"  she  said.    She  spoke  with  a  certain 
pride  in  the  possession  of  those  five  uncomprehended  words.    "  He  learned 
them  from  his  father.    I  do  not  know  what  they  mean." 

It  was  mystifying  enough  to  Arden  that,  in  a  country  where  hardly  a  Moor 
of  a  foreign  tribe,  and  certainly  no  Europeans,  had  ever  been  known  to  pene- 


14 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


trate,  there  should  be  a  Frenchwoman  who  knew  no  French,  and  an  EngHsh- 
woman  with  five  words  of  EngHsh  she  did  not  understand. 

But  there  was  more  than  this  to  startle  Arden.  He  had  heard  those 
same  words  spoken  once  before,  by  a  Moorish  boy  who  had  declared 
himself  to  be  an  Englishman,  and  that  Moorish  boy  had  murdered  his 
friend  Challoner. 

Arden  glanced  carelessly  at  the  youth  who  stood  by  the  old  woman's  side. 

That  is  your  son  ?  "  said  he. 
"  Yes.    That  is  Dimoussi." 

Dimoussi's  cheeks  wore  the  shadow  of  a  beard.    He  had  grown. 

Arden  could  not  pretend  to  himself  that  he  recognised  the  boy  who  had 
sprung  up  from  the  asphodel-bushes  a  few  miles  from  Mulai  Idris. 

He  bethought  himself  of  a  way  to  test  his  suspicions.  He  took  from  his 
wares  an  old  rusty  pistol  and  began  to  polish  it.  A  firearm  he  knew  to  be 
a  lure  to  any  Moor.  Dimoussi  drew  nearer.  Arden  paid  no  attention,  but 
continued  to  polish  his  pistol.  A  keen  excitement  was  gaining  on  him,  but 
he  gave  no  sign.  At  last  Dimoussi  reached  out  his  hand.  Arden  placed  the 
pistol  in  it.    Dimoussi  turned  the  pistol  over,  and  gave  it  back. 

"  It  *is  no  good." 

Arden  laughed. 

"  There  is  no  better  pistol  in  Agurai,"  said  he  contemptuously.  In  his 
ears  there  was  the  sound  of  Challoner's  voice  repeating  and  repeating  :  "  He 
shot  me  with  a  brass-barrelled  pistol — a  brass-barrelled  pistol.'* 

The  contempt  in  his  tone  stung  Dimoussi. 

"  I  have  a  better,"  said  he,  and  at  that  the  old  woman  touched  him 
warningly  on  the  arm.  Dimoussi  stopped  at  once,  and  the  couple  moved 
away. 

Arden  wondered  whether  this  was  the  end.  There  was  a  chance  that 
it  was  not.  Dimoussi  might  return  to  compare  his  pistol  with  Arden's,  and 
to  establish  its  superiority.  Arden  waited  all  the  evening  in  a  strong  suspense ; 
and  at  ten  o'clock,  when  he  was  alone,  Dimoussi  stepped  noiselessly  into  the 
shelter,  and  laid  his  brass-barrelled  pistol  on  the  ground  in  the  light  of  the 
lamp. 

"It  is  better  than  yours.  It  comes  from  Agadhir,  in  the  Sus  country, 
where  the  best  pistols  are  made.    See,  those  letters  prove  it." 

Arden  had  no  doubt  that  he  had  now  Challoner's  murderer  sitting  at  his 
side.  But  he  looked  at  the  letters  on  the  pistol-barrel  to  which  Dimoussi 
pointed.  The  letters  were  in  English,  and  made  up  the  name  "  Bennett." 
There  was  also  engraved  upon  the  brass  of  the  barrel  "  London."  The  pistol 
was  an  old  horse-pistol  of  English  make.  Even  its  period  was  clear  to  Arden. 
For  above  the  lion  and  the  crown  was  the  letter  C.  Arden  pointed  to  those 
marks. 

"  What  do  they  mean  ?  " 

"  They  are  charms  to  prevent  it  missing." 

Arden  said  nothing.  His  thoughts  were  busy  on  other  matters.  This 
pistol  was  a  pistol  of  the  time  of  Charles  II,  of  the  time  of  the  Tangier  siege. 


DIMOUSSI  AND  THE  PISTOL 


15 


"  How  long  have  you  had  it  ?  "  he  asked. 
"  My  father  owned  it  before  me.** 
**  And  his  father  before  him  ?  *' 
**  Very  Hkely.    I  do  not  know.** 

Arden's  excitement  was  increasing.  He  began  to  see  dim,  strange  possi- 
bihties.  Suppose,  he  reasoned,  that  this  pistol  had  travelled  up  to  Mequinez 
in  the  possession  of  an  English  prisoner.  Suppose  that  by  some  chance  the 
prisoner  had  escaped  and  wandered  ;  and  suddenly  he  saw  something  which 
caught  his  breath  away.  He  bent  down  and  examined  the  brass  covering 
to  the  heel  of  the  butt.  Upon  that  plate  there  was  an  engraved  crest.  Yes ! 
and  the  crest  was  Challoner's  ! 

Arden  kept  his  face  bent  over  the  pistol.  Questions  raced  through  his 
mind.  Had  that  pistol  belonged  to  Luke  Challoner,  who  had  turned  renegade 
two  hundred  years  ago  ?  Had  he  married  in  his  captivity  ?  Had  his  de- 
scendants married  again,  until  all  trace  of  their  origin  was  lost  except  this 
pistol  and  five  words  of  English,  and  the  name  "Englishwoman**?  Ah! 
but  if  so,  who  was  the  Frenchwoman  ? 

It  was  quite  intelligible  to  Arden  why  Dimoussi  had  slain  Challoner. 
Fanaticism  was  sufficient  reason.  But  supposing  Dimoussi  were  a  descendant 
of  Luke  !  It  was  all  very  strange.  Challoner  was  the  last  of  his  family, 
the  last  of  his  name.  Had  the  family  name  been  extinguished  by  a 
Challoner  ? 

Arden  returned  to  Mequinez  the  next  day,  and,  making  search,  through  the 
help  of  the  Bashaw,  who  was  his  friend,  amongst  documents  which  existed, 
he  at  last  came  upon  the  explanation. 

The  renegades,  who  were  made  up  not  merely  of  English  prisoners  of  Tangier, 
but  of  captives  of  many  nationalities  taken  by  the  Salee  pirates,  had,  about  the 
year  1700,  become  numerous  enough  to  threaten  Mequinez.  Consequently 
the  Sultan  had  one  fine  morning  turned  them  all  out  of  the  town  through 
the  Renegade's  Gate  and  bidden  them  go  south  and  found  a  city  for  them- 
selves. 

They  had  founded  Aguari,  they  had  been  attacked  by  the  Beni  M'tir ; 
with  diminishing  numbers  they  had  held  their  own  ;  they  had  intermarried 
with  the  natives  ;  and  now,  two  hundred  years  later,  all  that  remained  of 
them  were  the  Frenchwoman,  Dimoussi,  and  his  mother. 

There  could  be  no  doubt  that  Challoner  had  been  murdered  because  he 
was  a  European,  by  one  of  his  own  race. 

There  could  be  no  doubt  that  the  real  owner  of  the  Challoner  property, 
which  went  to  a  distant  relation  on  the  female  side,  was  a  Moorish  youth 
living  at  the  village  of  Agurai. 

But  Arden  kept  silence  for  a  long  while. 


The  Woman 


Bj  A.  A.  Milne 

Royal   IVarwick  Regiment 
I 

It  was  April,  and  in  his  little  bedroom  in  the  Muswell  Hill  boarding-house, 
where  Mrs.  Morrison  (assisted,  as  you  found  out  later,  by  Miss  Gertie  Morrison) 
took  in  a  few  select  paying  guests,  George  Crosby  was  packing.  Spring  came 
in  softly  through  his  open  window  ;  it  whispered  to  him  tales  of  green  hedges 
and  misty  woods  and  close-cropped  rolling  grass.  "  Collars,"  said  George, 
trying  to  shut  his  ears  to  it,  "  handkerchiefs,  ties — I  knew  I'd  forgotten  some- 
thing :  ties."  He  pulled  open  a  drawer.  "  Ties,  shirts — ^where's  my  list  ? 
— shirts,  ties."  He  wandered  to  the  window  and  looked  out.  Muswell  Hill 
was  below  him,  but  he  hardly  saw  it.       Three  weeks,"   he  murmured. 

Heaven  for  three  weeks,  and  it  hasn't  even  begun  yet."  There  was  the 
splendour  of  it.    It  hadn't  begun  ;  it  didn't  begin  till  to-morrow.    He  went 

back  in  a  dream  to  his  packing.    "  Collars,"  he  said,  "  shirts,  ties — ties  " 

Miss  Gertie  Morrison  had  not  offered  to  help  him  this  year.  She  had  not 
forgotten  that  she  had  put  herself  forward  the  year  before,  when  George  had 
stammered  and  blushed  (he  found  blushing  very  easy  in  the  Muswell  Hill 
boarding-house),  and  Algy  Traill,  the  humorist  of  the  establishment,  had 
winked  and  said,  "  George,  old  boy,  you're  in  luck  ;  Gertie  never  packs  for 
me."  Algy  had  continued  the  joke  by  smacking  his  left  hand  with  his  right, 
and  saying  in  an  undertone,  "  Naughty  boy,  how  dare  you  call  her  Gertie  ?  " 
and  then  in  a  falsetto  voice  :  "  Oh,  Mr.  Crosby,  I'm  sure  I  never  meant  to 
put  myself  forward  !  "  Then  Mrs.  Morrison  from  her  end  of  the  table  called 
out  

But  I  can  see  that  I  shall  have  to  explain  the  Muswell  Hill  menage  to  you. 
I  can  do  it  quite  easily  while  George  is  finishing  his  packing.  He  is  looking 
for  his  stockings  now,  and  that  always  takes  him  a  long  time,  because  he  hasn't 
worn  them  since  last  April,  and  they  are  probably  under  the  bed. 

Well,  Mrs.  Morrison  sits  at  one  end  of  the  table  and  carves.  Suppose  it 
is  Tuesday  evening.  "  Cold  beef  or  hash,  Mr.  Traill  ?  "  she  asks,  and  Algy 
probably  says  "  Yes,  please,"  which  makes  two  of  the  boarders  laugh.  These 
are  two  pale  brothers  called  Fossett,  younger  than  you  who  read  this  have 
ever  been,  and  enthusiastic  admirers  of  Algy  Traill.  Their  great  ambition 
is  to  paint  the  town  red  one  Saturday  night.    They  have  often  announced 

16 


THE  WOMAN 


17 


their  intention  of  doing  this,  but  so  far  they  do  not  seem  to  have  left  their 
mark  on  London  to  any  extent.  Very  different  is  it  with  their  hero  and  mentor. 
On  Boat-race  night  four  years  ago  Algy  Traill  was  actually  locked  up — and 
dismissed  next  morning  with  a  caution.  Since  then  he  has  often  talked  as 
if  he  were  a  Cambridge  man  ;  the  presence  of  an  Emmanuel  lacrosse  blue 
in  the  adjoining  cell  having  decided  him  in  the  choice  of  a  university. 

Meanwhile  his  hash  is  getting  cold.  Let  us  follow  it  quickly.  It  is  carried 
by  the  servant  to  Miss  Gertie  Morrison  at  the  other  end  of  the  table,  who  slaps 
in  a  helping  of  potatoes  and  cabbage.  "  What,  asparagus  again  ?  "  says 
Algy,  seeing  the  cabbage.  "  We  are  in  luck."  Mrs.  Morrison  throws  up 
her  eyes  at  Mr.  Ransom  on  her  right,  as  much  as  to  say,  "  Was  there  ever 
such  a  boy  ?  "  and  Miss  Gertie  threatens  him  with  the  potato  spoon,  and  tells 
him  not  to  be  silly.  Mr.  Ransom  looks  approvingly  across  the  table  at  Traill. 
He  has  a  feeling  that  the  Navy,  the  Empire,  and  the  Old  Country  are  in  some 
way  linked  up  with  men  of  the  world  such  as  Algy,  or  that  (to  put  it  in  another 
way)  a  Radical  Nonconformist  would  strongly  disapprove  of  him.  It  comes 
to  the  same  thing  ;  you  can't  help  liking  the  fellow.  Mr.  Ransom  is  wearing 
an  M.C.C.  tie  ;  partly  because  the  bright  colours  make  him  look  younger, 
partly  because  unless  he  changes  something  for  dinner  he  never  feels  quite 
clean,  you  know.  In  his  own  house  he  would  dress  every  night.  He  is  fifty ; 
tall,  dark,  red-faced,  black-moustached,  growing  stout ;  an  insurance  agent. 
It  is  his  great  sorrow  that  the  country  is  going  to  the  dogs,  and  he  dislikes 
the  setting  of  class  against  class.  The  proper  thing  to  do  is  to  shoot  them 
down. 

Opposite  him,  and  looking  always  as  if  he  had  slept  in  his  clothes,  is  Mr. 
Owen-Jones — called  Mr.  Joen-Owns  by  Algy.  He  argues  politics  fiercely 
across  Mrs.  Morrison.  "  My  dear  fellow%"  he  cries  to  Ransom,  "  you're  nothing 
but  a  reactionary  !  " — to  which  Ransom,  who  is  a  little  doubtful  what  a  re- 
actionary is,  replies,  All  I  want  is  to  live  at  peace  with  my  neighbours.  I 
don't  interfere  with  them  ;  why  should  they  interfere  with  me  ?  "  Where- 
upon Mrs.  Morrison  says  peaceably,  "  Live  and  let  live.  After  all,  there  are 
two  side  to  every  question — a  little  more  hash,  Mr.  Owen- Jones  ?  " 

George  has  just  remembered  that  his  stockings  are  under  the  bed,  so  I 
must  hurry  on.  As  it  happens,  the  rest  of  the  boarders  do  not  interest  me 
much.  There  are  two  German  clerks  and  one  French  clerk,  whose  broken 
English  is  always  amusing,  and  somebody  with  a  bald,  dome-shaped  head 
who  takes  in  Answers  every  week.  Three  years  ago  he  had  sung  "  Annie 
Laurie  "  after  dinner  one  evening,  and  Mrs.  Morrison  still  remembers  sometimes 

to  say,  "  Won't  you  sing  something,  Mr.   ?"  whatever  his  name  was, 

but  he  always  refuses.  He  says  that  he  has  the  new  number  of  Answers  to 
read. 

There  you  are  ;  now  you  know  everybody.  Let  us  go  upstairs  again  to 
George  Crosby. 

Is  there  anything  in  the  world  jollier  than  packing  up  for  a  holiday  ?  If 
there  is,  I  do  not  know  it.    It  was  the  hour  (or  two  hours  or  three  hours)  of 
George's  life.     It  was  more  than  that ;   for  days  beforehand  he  had  been 
1* 


18 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


packing  to  himself ;  sorting  out  his  clothes,  while  he  bent  over  the  figures  at 
his  desk,  making  and  drawing  up  lists  of  things  that  he  really  mustn't  forget. 
In  the  luncheon  hour  he  would  look  in  at  hosiers'  windows  and  nearly  buy  a 
blue  shirt  because  it  went  so  well  with  his  brown  knickerbocker  suit.  You 
or  I  would  have  bought  it;  it  was  only  five  and  sixpence.  Every  evening 
he  would  escape  from  the  drawing-toom — that  terrible  room — and  hurry 
upstairs  to  his  little  bedroom,  and  there  sit  with  his  big  brown  kit-bag  open 
before  him  .  .  .  dreaming.  Every  evening  he  had  meant  to  pack  a  few 
things  just  to  begin  with  :  his  tweed  suit  and  stockings  and  nailed  shoes,  for 
instance  ;  but  he  was  always  away  in  the  country,  following  the  white  path 
over  the  hills,  as  soon  as  ever  his  bag  was  between  his  knees.  How  he  ached 
to  take  his  body  there  too  ...  it  was  only  three  weeks  to  wait,  two  weeks, 
a  week,  three  days — to-morrow  1  To-morrow — he  was  almost  frightened  to 
think  of  it  lest  he  should  wake  up. 

Perhaps  you  wonder  that  George  Crosby  hated  the  Muswell  Hill  boarding- 
house  ;   perhaps  you  don't.    For  my  part  I  agree  with  Mrs.  Morrison  that 

it  takes  all  sorts  to  make  a  world,  and  that  as  Mr.    (I  forget  his  name  : 

the  dome-shaped  gentleman)  once  surprised  us  by  saying,  "  There  is  good  in 
everybody  if  only  you  can  find  it  out.'*  At  any  rate  there  is  humour.  I 
think  if  George  had  tried  to  see  the  humorous  side  of  Mrs.  Morrison's  select 
guests  he  might  have  found  life  tolerable.  And  yet  the  best  joke  languishes 
after  five  years. 

I  had  hoped  to  have  gone  straight  ahead  with  this  story,  but  I  shall  have 
to  take  you  back  five  years  ;  it  won't  be  for  long.  Believe  me,  no  writer 
likes  this  diving  back  into  the  past.  He  is  longing  to  get  to  the  great  moment 
when  Rosamund  puts  her  head  on  George's  shoulder  and  says — but  we  shall 
come  to  that.  What  I  must  tell  you  now,  before  my  pen  runs  away  with  me, 
is  that  five  years  ago  George  was  at  Oxford  with  plenty  of  money  in  his  pocket, 
and  a  vague  idea  in  his  head  that  he  would  earn  a  living  somehow  when  he 
went  down.  Then  his  only  near  relation,  his  father,  died  .  .  .  and  George 
came  down  with  no  money  in  his  pocket,  and  the  knowledge  that  he  would 
have  to  earn  his  living  at  once.  He  knew  little  of  London  east  of  the  Savoy, 
where  he  had  once  lunched  with  his  father  ;  I  doubt  if  he  even  knew  the  Gaiety 
by  sight.  When  his  father's  solicitor  recommended  a  certain  Islington  board- 
ing-house as  an  establishment  where  a  man  of  means  could  be  housed  and  fed 
for  as  little  as  thirty  shillings  a  week,  and  a  certain  firm  in  Fenchurch  Street 
as  another  establishment  where  a  man  of  gifts  could  earn  as  much  as  forty 
shillings  a  week,  George  found  out  where  Islington  and  Fenchurch  Street 
were,  and  fell  mechanically  into  the  routine  suggested  for  him.  That  he 
might  have  been  happier  alone,  looking  after  himself,  cooking  his  own  meals 
or  sampling  alone  the  cheaper  restaurants,  hardly  occurred  to  him.  Life 
was  become  suddenly  a  horrible  dream,  and  the  boarding-house  was  just  a  part 
of  it. 

However,  three  years  of  Islington  was  enough  for  him.  He  pulled  him- 
self together  .  .  .  and  moved  to  Muswell  Hill. 

There,  we  have  him  back  at  Muswell  Hill  now,  and  I  have  not  been  long, 


THE  WOMAN 


19 


have  I  ?  He  has  been  two  years  with  Mrs.  Morrison.  I  should  like  to  say- 
that  he  is  happy  with  Mrs,  IMorrison,  but  he  is  not.  The  terrible  thing  is  that 
he  cannot  get  hardened  to  it.  He  hates  Muswell  Hill ;  he  hates  Traill  and 
the  Fossetts  and  Ransom  ;  he  hates  Miss  Gertie  Morrison.  The  whole  vulgar, 
familiar,  shabby,  sociable  atmosphere  of  the  place  he  hates.  Some  day,  perhaps, 
he  will  pull  himself  together  and  move  again.  There  is  a  boarding-house 
at  Finsbury  Park  he  has  heard  of  .  .  . 

II 

If  you  had  three  weeks'  holiday  in  the  year,  three  whole  weeks  in  which 
to  amuse  yourself  as  you  liked,  how  would  you  spend  it  ?  Algy  Traill  went 
to  Brighton  in  August ;  you  should  have  seen  him  on  the  pier.  The  Fossett 
Brothers  adorned  Weymouth,  the  Naples  of  England.  They  did  good,  if 
slightly  obvious,  work  on  the  esplanade  in  fairly  white  flannels.  This  during 
the  day  ;  eight-thirty  in  the  evening  found  them  in  the  Alexandra  Gardens 
— dressed.  It  is  doubtful  if  the  Weymouth  boarding-house  would  have  stood 
it  at  dinner,  so  they  went  up  directly  afterwards  and  changed.  Mr.  Ransom 
spent  August  at  Folkestone,  where  he  was  understood  to  have  a  doubtful 
wife.  She  was  really  his  widowed  mother.  You  would  never  have  suspected 
him  of  a  mother,  but  there  she  was  in  Folkestone,  thinking  of  him  always, 
and  only  living  for  the  next  August.  It  was  she  who  knitted  him  the  M.C.C. 
tie  ;  he  had  noticed  the  colours  in  a  Piccadilly  window. 

Miss  Gertie  went  to  Cliftonville — not  Margate. 

And  where  did  George  go  ?  The  conversation  at  dinner  that  evening 
would  have  given  us  a  clue  ;  or  perhaps  it  wouldn't. 

"  So  you're  off  to-morrow,"  Mrs.  Morrison  had  said.  "  Well,  I'm  sure 
I  hope  you'll  have  a  nice  time.    A  little  sea  air  will  do  you  good." 

Where  are  you  going,  Crosby  ?  "  asked  Ransom,  with  the  air  of  a  man 
who  means  to  know. 

George  looked  uncomfortable. 
I'm  not  quite  sure,"  he  said  awkwardly.    "  I'm  going  a  sort  of  walking- 
tour,  you  know ;  stopping  at  inns  and  things.    I  expect  it — er — will  depend 
a  bit,  you  know." 

"  Well,  if  you  should  happen  to  stop  at  Sandringham,"  said  Algy,  "  give 
them  all  my  love,  old  man,  won't  you  ?  " 

"  Then  you  won't  have  your  letters  sent  on  ?  "  asked  Mrs.  Morrison. 

"  Oh  no,  thanks.    I  don't  suppose  I  shall  have  any,  anyhow." 

"  If  you  going  on  a  walking-tour,"  said  Owen- Jones,  "  why  don't  you 
try  the  Welsh  mountains  ?  " 

"  I  always  wonder  you  don't  run  across  to  Paris,"  said  the  dome-shaped 

gentleman  suddenly.    "  It  only  takes  "    He  knew  all  the  facts,  and  was 

prepared  to  give  them,  but  Algy  interrupted  him  with  a  knowing  whistle. 

"  Paris,  George,  aha !  Place  me  among  the  demoiselles,  what  ho !  I 
don't  think.    Naughty  boy  !  " 

Crosby's  first  impulse  (he  had  had  it  before)  was  to  throw  his  glass  of  beer 
at  Algy's  face.    The  impulse  died  down,  and  his  resolve  hardened  to  write 


20 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


about  the  Finsbury  Park  boarding-house  at  once.  He  had  made  that  resolu- 
tion before,  too.  Then  his  heart  jumped  as  he  remembered  that  he  was  going 
away  on  the  morrow.  He  forgot  Traill  and  Finsbury  Park,  and  went  off 
into  his  dreams.  The  other  boarders  discussed  walking-tours  and  holiday 
resorts  with  animation. 

Gertie  Morrison  was  silent.  She  was  often  silent  when  Crosby  was  there, 
and  always  when  Crosby's  affairs  were  being  discussed.  She  knew  he  hated 
her,  and  she  hated  him  for  it.  I  don't  think  she  knew  why  he  hated  her. 
It  was  because  she  lowered  his  opinion  of  women. 

He  had  known  very  few  women  in  his  life,  and  he  dreamed  dreams  about 
them.  They  were  wonderful  creatures,  a  little  higher  than  the  angels,  and 
beauty  and  mystery  and  holiness  hung  over  them.  Some  day  he  would 
meet  the  long-desired  one,  and  (miracle)  she  would  love  him,  and  they  would 

live  happy  ever  afterwards  at   He  wondered  sometimes  whether  an 

angel  would  live  happy  ever  afterwards  at  Bedford  Park.  Bedford  Park  seemed 
to  strip  the  mystery  and  the  holiness  and  the  wonder  from  his  dream.  And 
yet  he  had  seen  just  the  silly  little  house  at  Bedford  Park  that  would  suit 
them  ;  and^  even  angels,  if  they  come  to  earth,  must  live  somewhere.  She 
would  walk  to  the  gate  every  morning,  and  wave  him  good-bye  from  under 
the  flowering  laburnum — for  I  need  not  say  that  it  was  always  spring  in  his 
dream.  That  was  why  he  had  his  holiday  in  April,  for  it  must  be  spring  when 
he  found  her,  and  he  would  only  find  her  in  the  country.  .  .  .  Another  reason 
was  that  in  August  Miss  Morrison  went  to  Cliftonville  (not  Margate),  and  so 
he  had  a  fortnight  in  Muswell  Hill  without  Miss  Morrison. 

For  it  was  difficult  to  believe  in  the  dreams  when  Gertie  Morrison  was  daily 
before  his  eyes.  There  was  a  sort  of  hard  prettiness  there,  which  might  have 
been  beauty,  but  where  were  the  mystery  and  the  wonder  and  the  holiness  ? 
None  of  that  about  the  Gertie  who  was  treated  so  familiarly  by  the  Fossetts 
and  the  Traills  and  their  kind,  and  answered  them  back  so  smartly.  "  You 
can't  get  any  change  out  of  Gertie,"  Traill  often  said  on  these  occasions.  Almost 
Crosby  wished  you  could.  He  would  have  had  her  awkward,  bewildered, 
indignant,  overcome  with  shame  ;  it  distressed  him  that  she  was  so  lamentably 
well-equipped  for  the  battle.  At  first  he  pitied  her,  then  he  hated  her.  She 
was  betraying  her  sex.  What  he  really  meant  was  that  she  was  trying  to  topple 
over  the  beautiful  image  he  had  built. 

I  know  what  you  are  going  to  say.  What  about  the  girl  at  the  ABC 
shop  who  spilt  his  coffee  over  his  poached  egg  every  day  at  one  thirty-five 
precisely  ?  Hadn't  she  given  his  image  a  little  push  too  ?  I  think  not.  He 
hardly  saw  her  as  a  woman  at  all.  She  was  a  worker,  like  himself ;  sexless. 
In  the  evenings  perhaps  she  became  a  woman  .  .  .  wonderful,  mysterious, 
holy  ...  I  don't  know  ;  at  any  rate  he  didn't  see  her  then.  But  Miss  Morri- 
son he  saw  at  home  ;  she  was  pretty  and  graceful  and  feminine  ;  she  might 
have  been,  not  the  woman — that  would  have  been  presumption  on  his  part — 
but  a  woman  .  .  .  and  then  she  went  and  called  Algy  Traill  "  a  silly  boy," 
and  smacked  him  playfully  with  a  teaspoon  !  Traill,  the  cad-about-town, 
the  ogler  of  women  !    No  wonder  the  image  rocked. 


22 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Well,  he  would  be  away  from  the  Traills  and  the  Morrisons  and  the  Fossetts 
for  three  weeks.  It  was  April,  the  best  month  of  the  year.  He  was  right 
in  saying  that  he  was  not  quite  sure  where  he  was  going,  but  he  could  have 
told  Mrs.  Morrison  the  direction.  He  would  start  down  the  line  with  his  knap- 
sack and  his  well-filled  kit-bag.  By-and-by  he  would  get  out — ^the  name  of  the 
station  might  attract  him,  or  the  primroses  on  the  banks — leave  his  bag,  and, 
knapsack  on  shoulder,  follow  the  road.  Sooner  or  later  he  would  come  to 
a  village  ;  he  would  find  an  inn  that  could  put  him  up  ;  on  the  morrow 
the  landlord  could  drive  in  for  his  bag.  .  .  .  And  then  three  weeks  in  which 
to  search  for  the  woman. 

Ill 

A  south  wind  was  blowing  little  baby  clouds  along  a  blue  sky  ;  lower  down, 
the  rooks  were  talking  busily  to  each  other  in  the  tall  elms  which  lined  the 
^  church  ;  and,  lower  down  still,  the  foxhound  puppy  sat  himself  outside  the 
blacksmith's  and  waited  for  company.  If  nothing  happened  in  the  next 
twenty  seconds  he  would  have  to  go  and  look  for  somebody. 

But  somel)ody  was  coming.  From  the  door  of  "  The  Dog  and  Duck  " 
opposite,  a  tall,  lean,  brown  gentleman  stepped  briskly,  in  his  hand  a  pair 
of  shoes.  The  foxhound  puppy  got  up  and  came  across  the  road  sideways 
to  him..  "  Welcome,  welcome,"  he  said  effusively,  and  went  round  the  tall, 
lean,  brown  gentleman  several  times. 

"  Hallo,  Duster,"  said  the  brown  gentleman  ;  "  coming  with  me  to-day  ?  " 
Come  along,"  said  the  foxhound  puppy  excitedly.  "  Going  with  you  ? 
I  should  just  think  I  am  !    Which  way  shall  we  go  ?  " 

"  Wait  a  moment.    I  want  to  leave  these  shoes  here." 

Duster  followed  him  into  the  blacksmith's  shop.  The  blacksmith  thought 
he  could  put  some  nails  in ;  gentlemen's  shoes  and  horses'  shoes,  he  explained, 
weren't  quite  the  same  thing.  The  brown  gentleman  admitted  the  difference, 
but  felt  sure  that  the  blacksmith  could  make  a  job  of  anything  he  tried  his 
hand  at.  He  mentioned,  which  the  blacksmith  knew,  that  he  was  staying 
at  "  The  Dog  and  Duck"  opposite,  and  gave  his  name  as  Carfax. 

"  Come  along,"  said  Duster  impatiently. 

"  Good  morning,"  said  the  brown  gentleman  to  the  blacksmith.  "  Lovely 
day,  isn't  it  ?  .  .  .  Come  along,  old  boy," 

He  strode  out  into  the  blue  fresh  morning.  Duster  all  round  him.  But 
vvhen  they  got  to  the  church — fifty  yards,  no  more — the  foxhound  puppy 
changed  his  mind.  He  had  had  an  inspiration,  the  same  inspiration  which 
came  to  him  every  day  at  this  spot.    He  stopped. 

"  Let's  go  back,"  he  said. 

*'  Not  coming  to-day  ?  "  laughed  the  brown  gentleman.    "  Well,  good-bye." 

"  You  see,  I  think  I'd  better  wait  here,  after  all,"  said  the  foxhound  puppy 
apologetically.  "  Something  might  happen.  Are  you  really  going  on  ?  Well — 
you'll  excuse  me,  won't  you  ?  " 

He  ambled  back  to  his  place  outside  the  blacksmith's  shop.  The  tall, 
lean,  brown  gentleman,  who  called  himself  Carfax,  walked  on  briskly  with 


THE  WOMAN 


23 


spring  in  his  heart.  Above  him  the  rooks  talked  and  talked  ;  the  hedges 
were  green  ;  and  there  were  little  baby  clouds  in  the  blue  sky. 

Shall  I  try  to  deceive  you  for  a  page  or  two  longer,  or  shall  we  have  the 
truth  out  at  once  ?  Better  have  the  truth.  Well,  then — the  gentleman 
who  called  himself  Carfax  was  really  George  Crosby.  You  guessed  ?  Of  course 
you  did.    But  if  you  scent  a  mystery  you  are  wrong. 

It  was  five  years  ago  that  Crosby  took  his  first  holiday.  He  came  to  this 
very  inn,  '*  The  Dog  and  Duck,"  and  when  they  asked  him  his  name  he  replied 
'*  Geoffrey  Carfax."  It  had  been  an  inspiration  in  the  train.  To  be  Geoffrey 
Carfax  for  three  weeks  seemed  to  cut  him  off  more  definitely  from  the  Fen- 
church  Street  office  and  the  Islington  boarding-house.  George  Crosby  was 
in  prison,  working  a  life  sentence  ;  Geoffrey  Carfax  was  a  free  man  in  search 
of  the  woman.  Romance  might  come  to  Geoffrey,  but  it  could  never  come 
to  George.  They  were  two  different  persons  ;  then  let  them  be  two  different 
persons.  Besides,  glamour  hung  over  the  mere  act  of  giving  a  false  name. 
George  had  delightful  thrills  when  he  remembered  his  deceit ;  and  there  was 
one  heavenly  moment  of  panic,  on  the  last  day  of  his  first  holiday,  when  (to 
avoid  detection)  he  shaved  off  his  mxoustache.  He  was  not  certain  what 
the  punishment  was  for  calling  yourself  Geoffrey  Carfax  when  your  real  name 
was  George  Crosby,  but  he  felt  that  with  a  clean-shaven  face  he  could  laugh 
at  Scotland  Yard.  The  downward  path,  however,  is  notoriously  an  easy  one. 
In  subsequent  years  he  let  himself  go  still  farther.  Even  the  one  false  name 
wouldn't  satisfy  him  now  ;  and  if  he  only  looked  in  at  a  neighbouring  inn 
for  a  glass  of  beer,  he  would  manage  to  let  it  fall  into  his  conversation  that 
he  was  Guy  Colehurst  or  Gervase  Crane  or — he  had  a  noble  range  of  names 
to  choose  from,  only  limited  by  the  fact  that  "  G.  C."  was  on  his  cigarette-case 
and  his  kit-bag.  (His  linen  was  studiously  unmarked,  save  with  the  hiero- 
glyphic of  his  washerwoman — a  foolish  observation  in  red  cotton  which  might 
mean  anything.) 

The  tall,  lean,  brown  gentleman,  then,  taking  the  morning  air  was  George 
Crosby.  Between  ourselves  we  may  continue  to  call  him  George.  It  is  not 
a  name  I  like  ;  he  hated  it  too  ;  but  George  he  was  undoubtedly.  Yet  already 
he  was  a  different  George  from  the  one  you  met  at  Muswell  Hill.  He  had  had 
two  weeks  of  life,  and  they  had  made  him  brown  and  clear-eyed  and  confident. 
I  think  I  said  he  blushed  readily  in  Mrs.  Morrison's  boarding-house  ;  the  fact 
was  he  felt  always  uneasy  in  London,  awkward,  uncomfortable.  In  the  open 
air  he  was  at  home,  ready  for  he  knew  not  what  dashing  adventure. 

It  was  a  day  of  spring  to  stir  the  heart  with  longings  and  memories. 
Memories,  half-forgotten,  of  all  the  Aprils  of  the  past  touched  him  for  a  moment, 
and  then,  as  he  tried  to  grasp  them,  fluttered  out  of  reach,  so  that  he  wondered 
whether  he  was  recalling  real  adventures  which  had  happened,  or  whether 
he  was  but  dreaming  over  again  the  dreams  which  were  always  with  him. 
One  memory  remained.  It  was  on  such  a  day  as  this,  five  years  ago,  and 
almost  in  this  very  place,  that  he  had  met  the  woman. 

Yes,  I  shall  have  to  go  back  again  to  tell  you  of  her.  Five  years  ago  he 
had  been  staying  at  this  same  inn  ;  it  was  his  first  holiday  after  his  sentence 


24 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


to  prison.  He  was  not  so  resigned  to  his  lot  five  years  ago ;  he  thought  of  it 
as  a  bitter  injustice  ;  and  the  wonderful  woman  for  whom  he  came  into  the 
country  to  search  was  to  be  his  deliverer.  So  that,  I  am  afraid,  she  would 
have  to  have  been,  not  only  wonderful,  mysterious,  and  holy,  but  also  rich. 
For  it  was  to  the  contented  ease  of  his  early  days  that  he  was  looking  for 
release  ;  the  little  haven  in  Bedford  Park  had  not  come  into  his  dreams. 
Indeed,  I  don't  suppose  he  had  even  heard  of  Bedford  Park  at  that  time.  It 
was  Islington  or  The  Manor  House  ;  anything  in  between  was  Islington.  But, 
of  course,  he  never  confessed  to  himself  that  she  would  need  to  be  rich. 

And  he  found  her.  He  came  over  the  hills  on  a  gentle  April  morning  and 
saw  her  beneath  him.  She  was  caught,  it  seemed,  in  a  hedge.  How  gallantly 
George  bore  down  to  the  rescue  ! 

"  Can  I  be  of  any  assistance  ?  "  he  said  in  his  best  manner,  and  that,  I 
think,  is  always  the  pleasantest  way  to  begin.  Between  "  Can  I  be  of  any 
assistance  ?  "  and  "  With  all  my  worldly  goods  I  thee  endow  "  one  has  not 
far  to  travel. 

"  I'm  caught,"  she  said.       If  you  could  "    Observe  George  spiking 

himself  fearlessly. 

"  I  say,  you  really  are  !    Wait  a  moment." 

"  It's  very  kind  of  you," 

There — he  has  done  it. 
Thank  you  so  much,"  she  said,  with  a  pretty  smile.    "  Oh,  you've  hurt 
yourself !  " 

The  sweet  look  of  pain  on  her  face  ! 
It's  nothing,"  sad  George  nobly.    And  it  really  was  nothing.    One  can 
get  a  delightful  amount  of  blood  and  sympathy  from  the  most  insignificant 
scratch. 

They  hesitated  a  moment.  She  looked  on  the  ground  ;  he  looked  at  her. 
Then  his  eyes  wandered  round  the  beautiful  day,  and  came  back  to  her  just 
as  she  looked  up. 

"  It  is  a  wonderful  day,  isn't  it  ?  "  he  said  suddenly. 

"  Yes,"  she  breathed. 

It  seemed  absurd  to  separate  on  such  a  day  when  they  were  both  wander- 
ing, and  Heaven  had  brought  them  together. 

"I  say,  dash  it,"  said  George  suddenly:  "what  are  you  going  to  do? 
Are  you  going  anywhere  particular  ?  " 

"  Not  very  particular." 

*'  Neither  am  I.    Can't  we  go  there  together  ?  " 
"  I  was  just  going  to  have  lunch." 

"  So  was  I.    Well,  there  you  are.    It  would  be  silly  if  you  sat  here  and 
ate — what  are  yours,  by  the  way  ?  " 
"  Only  mutton,  I'm  afraid." 

"  Ah,  mine  are  beef.  Well,  if  you  sat  here  and  ate  mutton  sandwiches 
and  I  sat  a  hundred  yards  farther  on  and  ate  beef  ones,  we  should  look  ridi- 
culous, shouldn't  we  ?  " 

"  It  would  be  rather  silly,"  she  smiled. 


THE  WOMAN 


25 


So  they  sat  down  and  had  their  sandwiches  together. 
My  name  is  Carfax,"  he  said,  "Geoffrey  Carfax."    Oh,  George!  And 
to  a  woman  I    However,  she  wouldn't  tell  him  hers. 

They  spe?  it  an  hour  over  lunch.  They  wandered  together  for  another 
hour.  Need  I  tell  you  all  the  things  they  said  ?  But  they  didn't  talk  of 
London. 

"  Oh,  I  must  be  going,"  she  said  suddenly.  "  I  didn't  know  it  was  so 
late.    No,  I  know  my  way.    Don't  come  with  me.  Good-bye." 

"  It  can't  be  good-bye,"  said  George  in  dismay.  "  I've  only  just  found 
you.    Where  do  you  live  ?    Who  are  you  ?  " 

"  Don't  let's  spoil  it,"  she  smiled.  "  It's  been  a  wonderful  day — a  wonder- 
ful little  piece  of  a  day.  We'll  always  remember  it.  I  don't  think  it's  meant 
to  go  on  ;  it  stops  just  here." 

"  I  must  see  you  again,"  said  George  firmly.   "  Will  you  be  there  to-morrow, 
at  the  same  time — at  the  place  where  we  met  ?  " 
I  might."    She  sighed.      And  I  mightn't." 

But  George  knew  she  would. 

"  Then  good-bye,"  he  said,  holding  out  his  hand. 
"My  name  is  Rosamund,"  she  whispered,  and  fled. 

He  watched  her  out  of  sight,  marvelling  how  bravely  she  walked.  Then 
he  started  for  home,  his  head  full  of  strange  fancies.  .  .  . 

He  found  a  road  an  hour  later ;  the  road  went  on  and  on,  it  turned  and 
branched  and  doubled — he  scarcely  noticed  it.  The  church  clock  was  striking 
seven  as  he  came  into  the  village. 

It  was  a  wonderful  lunch  he  took  with  him  next  day.  Chicken  and  tongue 
and  cake  and  chocolate  and  hard-boiled  eggs.  He  ate  it  alone  (by  the  corner 
of  a  wood,  five  miles  from  the  hedge  which  captured  her)  at  half-past  three. 
That  day  was  a  nightmare.  He  never  found  the  place  again,  though  he  tried 
all  through  the  week  remaining  to  him.  He  had  no  hopes  after  that  day  of 
seeing  her,  but  only  to  have  found  the  hedge  would  have  been  some  satisfaction. 
At  least  he  could  sit  there  and  sigh — and  curse  himself  for  a  fool. 

He  went  back  to  Islington  knowing  that  he  had  had  his  chance  and  missed 
it.  By  next  April  he  had  forgotten  her.  He  was  convinced  that  she  was  not 
the  woman.  The  woman  had  still  to  be  found.  He  went  to  another  part 
of  the  country  and  looked  for  her. 

And  now  he  was  back  at  "  The  Dog  and  Duck  "  again.  Surely  he  would 
find  her  to-day.  It  was  the  time  ;  it  must  be  almost  the  place.  Would  the 
loved  one  be  there  ?  He  was  not  sure  whether  he  wanted  her  to  be  the  woman 
of  five  years  ago  or  not.  Whoever  she  was,  she  would  be  the  one  he  sought. 
He  had  walked  some  miles  ;  funny  if  he  stumbled  upon  the  very  place  suddenly. 

Memories  of  five  years  ago  were  flooding  his  mind.  Had  he  really  been 
here,  or  had  he  only  dreamed  of  it  ?  Surely  that  was  the  hill  down  which  he 
had  come  ;  surely  that  clump  of  trees  on  the  right  had  been  there  before. 
And — could  that  be  the  very  hedge  ? 

It  was. 

And  there  was  a  woman  caught  in  it* 


2a 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


IV 

George  ran  down  the  hill,  his  heart  thumping  heavily  at  his  ribs.  .  .  .  She 
had  her  back  towards  him. 

"  Can  I  be  of  any  assistance  ?  '*  he  said  in  his  best  manner.  But  she  didn't 
need  to  be  rich  now  ;  there  was  that  little  house  at  Bedford  Park. 

She  turned  round. 

It  was  Gertie  Morrison  ! 

Silly  of  him  ;  of  course,  it  wasn't  Miss  Morrison  ;  but  it  was  extraordinarily 
like  her.    Prettier,  though. 

"  Why,  Mr.  Crosby  !  "  she  said. 
It  was  Gertie  Morrison. 
*'  You  !  "  he  said  angrily. 

He  was  furious  that  such  a  trick  should  have  been  played  upon  him  at 
this  moment ;  furious  to  be  reminded  suddenly  that  he  was  George  Crosby 
of  Muswell  Hill.  Muswell  Hill,  the  boarding-house — Good  Lord  !  Gertie 
Morrison  !    Algy  Traill's  Gertie, 

"  Yes,  it's  me,"  she  said,  shrinking  from  him.  She  saw  he  was  angry  with 
her  ;  she  vaguely  understood  why. 

Then  George  laughed.  After  all,  she  hadn't  deliberately  put  herself  in 
his  way.  She  could  hardly  be  expected  to  avoid  the  whole  of  England  (out- 
side Muswell  Hill)  until  she  knew  exactly  where  George  Crosby  proposed  to 
take  his  walk.    What  a  child  he  was  to  be  angry  with  her. 

When  he  laughed,  she  laughed  too — a  little  nervously. 

"  Let  me  help,"  he  said.  He  scratched  his  fingers  fearlessly  on  her  behalf. 
What  should  he  do  afterwards  ?  he  wondered.  His  day  was  spoilt  anyhow. 
He  could  hardly  leave  her. 

"  Oh,  you've  hurt  yourself  !  "  she  said.  She  said  it  very  sweetly,  in  a  voice 
that  only  faintly  reminded  him  of  the  Gertie  of  Muswell  Hill. 

''It's  nothing,"  he  answered,  as  he  had  answered  five  years  ago. 

They  stood  looking  at  each  other.    George  was  puzzled. 

"  You  are  Miss  Morrison,  aren't  you  ?  "  he  said.  "  Somehow  you  seem 
different." 

"  You're  different  from  the  Mr.  Crosby  I  know." 
"  Am  I  ?    How  ?  " 

*'  It's  dreadful  to  see  you  at  the  boarding-house."    She  looked  at  him 
timidly.    "  You  don't  mind  my  mentioning  the  boarding-house,  do  you  ?  " 
"  Mind  ?    Why  should  I  ?  "    (After  all,  he  still  had  another  week.) 
*'  Well,  you  want  to  forget  about  it  when  you're  on  your  holiday." 
Fancy  her  knowing  that. 
"  And  are  you  on  your  holiday  too  ?  " 
She  gave  a  long  deep  sigh  of  content. 
"  Yes,"  she  said. 

He  looked  at  her  with  more  interest.  There  was  colour  in  her  face  ;  her 
eyes  were  bright ;  in  her  tweed  skirt  she  looked  more  of  a  country  girl  than 
he  would  have  expected. 


THE  WOMAN 


27 


Let's  sit  down,"  he  said.    "  I  thought  you  always  went  to  Mar — to  Clifton- 
ville  for  your  holiday  ?  " 

"  I  always  go  to  my  aunt's  there  in  the  summer.  It  isn't  really  a  holiday  ; 
it's  more  to  help  her  ;  she  has  a  boarding-house  too.  And  it  really  is  Clifton- 
ville — only,  of  course,  it's  silly  of  mother  to  mind  having  it  called  Margate. 
Cliftonville's  much  worse  than  Margate  really.    I  hate  it." 

(This  can't  be  Gertie  Morrison,  thought  George.    It's  a  dream.) 

"  When  did  you  come  here  ?  " 
I've  been  here  about  ten  days.    A  girl  friend  of  mine  lives  near  here. 
She  asked  me  suddenly  just  after  you'd  gone — I  mean  about  a  fortnight  ago. 
Mother  thought  I  wasn't  looking  well  and  ought  to  go.    I've  been  before  once 
or  twice.    I  love  it." 

"  And  do  you  have  to  wander  about  the  country  by  yourself  ?  I  mean, 
doesn't  your  friend — I  say,  I'm  asking  you  an  awful  lot  of  questions.  I'm 
sorry." 

"  That's  all  right.  But,  of  course,  I  love  to  go  about  alone,  particularly 
at  this  time  of  year.    You  understand  that." 

Of  course  he  understood  it.  That  was  not  the  amazing  thing.  The  amazing 
thing  was  that  she  understood  it. 

He  took  his  sandwiches  from  his  pocket. 

"  Let's  have  lunch,"  he  said.    "  I'm  afraid  mine  are  only  beef." 

"  Mine  are  worse,"  she  smiled.    "  They're  only  mutton." 

A  sudden  longing  to  tell  her  of  his  great  adventure  of  five  years  ago  came 
to  George.    (If  you  had  suggested  it  to  him  in  March  !) 

"  It's  rather  funny,"  he  said,  as  he  untied  his  sandwiches — "  I  was  down 
here  five  years  ago  " 

"  I  know,"  she  said  quietly. 

George  sat  up  suddenly  and  stared  at  her. 

"  It  was  you  !  "  he  cried. 

"  Yes." 

"  You.  Good  Lord  !  .  .  .  But  your  name — you  said  your  name  was — 
wait  a  moment — ^that's  it !  Rosamund  !  " 

"  It  is.  Gertrude  Rosamund.  I  call  myself  Rosamund  in  the  country.  I 
like  to  pretend  I'm  not  the" — she  twisted  a  piece  of  grass  in  her  hands,  and 
looked  away  from  him  over  the  hill — "  the  horrible  girl  of  the  boarding-house." 

George  got  on  to  his  knees  and  leant  excitedly  over  her. 

"  Tell  me,  do  you  hate  and  loathe  and  detest  Traill  and  the  Fossetts  and 
Ransom  as  much  as  I  do  ?  " 

She  hesitated. 

"  Mr.  Ransom  has  a  mother  in  Folkestone  he's  very  good  to.  He's  not 
really  bad,  you  know." 

"  Sorry.    Wash  out  Ransom.    Traill  and  the  Fossetts  ?  " 

"  Yes.  Oh  yes.  Oh  yes,  yes,  yes."  Her  cheeks  flamed  as  she  cried  it, 
and  she  clenched  her  hands. 

George  was  on  his  knees  already,  and  he  had  no  hat  to  take  off,  but  he  was 
very  humble. 


28 


THE  RED  CROSS  STOKY  BOOK 


"  Will  you  forgive  me  ?  "  he  said.  "  I  think  I've  misjudged  you.  I 
mean,"  he  stammered- — "  I  mean,  I  don't  mean — of  course,  it's  none  of  my 
business  to  judge  you — I'm  speaking  like  a  prig,  I — oh,  you  know  what  I 
mean.    I've  been  a  brute  to  you.    Will  you  forgive  me  ?  " 

She  held  out  her  hand,  and  he  shook  it.  This  had  struck  him,  when  he 
had  seen  it  on  the  stage,  as  an  absurdly  dramatic  way  of  making  friends,  but 
it  seemed  quite  natural  now. 

"  Let's  have  lunch,"  she  said. 

They  began  to  eat  in  great  content. 

"  Same  old  sandwiches,"  smiled  George.  "  I  say,  I  suppose  I  needn't 
explain  why  I  called  myself  Geoffrey  Carfax."  He  blushed  a  little  as  he  said 
the  name.    "  I  mean,  you  seem  to  understand." 

She  nodded.    "  You  wanted  to  get  away  from  George  Crosby  ;  I  know." 

And  then  he  had  a  sudden  horrible  recollection. 

"  I  say,  you  must  have  thought  me  a  beast.  I  brought  a  terrific  lunch 
out  with  me  the  next  day,  and  then  I  went  and  lost  the  place.  Did  you  wait 
for  me  ?  " 

Gertie  would  have  pretended  she  hadn't  turned  up  herself,  but  Rosamund 
said,  "  Yes,  I  Waited  for  you.    I  thought  perhaps  you  had  lost  the  place." 

"  I  say,"  said  George,  "  what  lots  I've  got  to  say  to  you.  When  did  you 
recognise  me  again  ?    Fancy  my  not  knowing  you." 

"  It  was  three  years,  and  you'd  shaved  your  moustache." 

"  So  I  had.    But  I  could  recognise  people  just  as  easily  without  it." 

She  laughed  happily.  It  was  the  first  joke  she  had  heard  him  make  since 
that  day  five  years  ago. 

"  Besides,  we're  both  different  in  the  country.  I  knew  you  as  soon  as 
I  heard  your  voice  just  now.    Never  at  all  at  Muswell  Hill." 

"  By  Jove  !  "  said  George,  "  just  fancy."    He  grinned  at  her  happily. 

After  lunch  they  wandered.  It  was  a  golden  afternoon,  the  very  after- 
noon they  had  had  five  years  ago.  Once  when  she  was  crossing  a  little  stream 
in  front  of  him,  and  her  foot  slipped  on  a  stone,  he  called  out,  "  Take  care, 
Rosamund,"  and  thrilled  at  the  words.  She  let  them  pass  unnoticed  ;  but 
later  on,  when  they  crossed  the  stream  again  lower  down,  he  took  her  hand 
and  she  said,  '  Thank  you,  Geoffrey." 

They  came  to  an  inn  for  tea.  How  pretty  she  looked  pouring  out  the  tea 
for  him — not  for  him,  for  them  ;  the  two  of  them.  She  and  he  !  His  thoughts 
became  absurd.  ... 

Towards  the  end  of  the  meal  something  happened.  She  didn't  know  what 
it  was,  but  it  was  this.  He  wanted  more  jam  ;  she  said  he'd  had  enough. 
Well,  then,  he  wasn't  to  have  much,  and  she  would  help  him  herself. 

He  was  delighted  with  her. 

She  helped  him  .  .  .  and  something  in  that  action  brought  back  swiftly 
and  horribly  the  Gertie  Morrison  of  Muswell  Hill,  the  Gertie  who  sat  next 
to  Algy  and  helped  him  to  cabbage.    He  finished  his  meal  in  silence. 

She  was  miserable,  not  knowing  what  had  happened. 

He  paid  the  bill  and  they  went  outside.    In  the  open  air  she  was  Rosamund 


THE  WOMAN 


29 


again,  but  Rosamund  with  a  difference.  He  couldn't  bear  things  hke  this. 
As  soon  as  they  were  well  away  from  the  inn  he  stopped.  They  leant  against 
a  gate  and  looked  down  into  the  valley  at  the  golden  sun. 

"  Tell  me,"  he  said,  "  I  want  to  know  everything.  Why  are  you — what 
you  are,  in  London  ?  " 

And  she  told  him.  Her  mother  had  not  always  kept  a  boarding-house. 
While  her  father  was  alive  they  were  fairly  well  off ;  she  lived  a  happy  life 
in  the  country  as  a  young  girl.  Then  they  came  to  London.  She  hated  it, 
but  it  was  necessary  for  her  father's  business.  Then  her  father  died,  and  left 
nothing. 

So  did  my  father,"  said  George  under  his  breath. 
She  touched  his  hand  in  sympathy. 

"  I  was  afraid  that  was  it.  .  .  .  Well,  mother  tried  keeping  a  boarding- 
house.  She  couldn't  do  it  by  herself.  I  had  to  help.  That  was  just  before 
I  met  you  here.  .  .  .  Oh,  if  you  could  know  how  I  hated  it.  The  horrible 
people.  It  started  with  two  boarders.  Then  there  was  one — because  I 
smacked  the  other  one's  face.  Mother  said  that  wouldn't  do.  Well,  of  course, 
it  wouldn't.  I  tried  taking  no  notice  of  them.  Well,  that  wouldn't  do  either. 
I  had  to  put  up  with  it ;  that  was  my  life.  ...  I  used  to  pretend  I  was  on 
the  stage  and  playing  the  part  of  a  landlady's  vulgar  daughter.  You  know 
what  I  mean  ;  you  often  see  it  on  the  stage.  That  made  it  easier — it  was 
really  rather  fun  sometimes.  I  suppose  I  overplayed  the  part — made  it  more 
common  than  it  need  have  been — it's  easy  to  do  that.  By-and-by  it  began 
to  come  natural ;  perhaps  I  am  like  that  really.  We  weren't  anybody  parti- 
cular even  when  father  was  alive.  Then  you  came — I  saw  you  were  different 
from  the  rest.  I  knew  you  despised  me — quite  right  too.  But  you  really 
seemed  to  hate  me,  I  never  quite  knew  why.  I  hadn't  done  you  any  harm. 
It  made  me  hate  you  too.  ...  It  made  me  want  to  be  specially  vulgar  and 
common  when  you  were  there,  just  to  show  you  I  didn't  mind  what  you  thought 
about  me.  .  .  .  You  were  so  superior. 

"  I  got  away  in  the  country  sometimes.  I  just  loved  that.  I  think  I 
was  really  living  for  it  all  the  time.  ...  I  always  called  myself  Rosamund 
in  the  country.  ...  I  hate  men — why  are  they  such  beasts  to  us  always  ?  " 

"  They  are  beasts,"  said  George,  giving  his  sex  away  cheerfully.  But 
he  was  not  thinking  of  Traill  and  the  Fossetts  ;  he  was  thinking  of  himself. 
"  It's  very  strange,"  he  went  on  ;  "  all  the  time  I  thought  that  the  others 
were  just  what  they  seemed  to  be,  and  that  I  alone  had  a  private  life  of  my 
own  which  I  hid  from  everybody.  And  all  the  time  you  .  .  .  Perhaps  Traill 
is  really  somebody  else  sometimes.  Even  Ransom  has  his  secret — his  mother. 
.  .  .  What  a  horrible  prig  I've  been  !  " 

"  No,  no  !    Oh,  but  you  were  !  " 

"  And  a  coward.  I  never  even  tried.  ...  I  might  have  made  things 
much  easier  for  you." 

"  You're  not  a  coward." 

'*  Yes,  I  am.  I've  just  funked  life.  It's  too  much  for  me,  I've  said,  and 
I've  crept  into  my  shell  and  let  it  pass  over  my  head.  .  .  .  And  I'm  still  a 


so 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


coward.  I  can't  face  it  by  myself.  Rosamund,  will  you  marry  me  and  help 
me  to  be  braver  ?  " 

No,  no,  no,"  she  cried,  and  pushed  him  away  and  laid  her  head  on  her  arms 
and  wept. 

Saved,  George,  saved !  Now's  your  chance.  You've  been  rash  and 
impetuous,  but  she  has  refused  you,  and  you  can  withdraw  like  a  gentleman. 
Just  say  "  I  beg  your  pardon,"  and  move  to  Finsbury  Park  next  month  .  .  . 
and  go  on  dreaming  about  the  woman.  Not  a  landlady's  vulgar  little  daughter, 
but  

George,  George,  what  are  you  doing  ? 

He  has  taken  the  girl  in  his  arms  !    He  is  kissing  her  eyes  and  her  mouth 
and  her  wet  cheeks  !    He  is  telling  her  .  .  . 
I  wash  my  hands  of  him. 

V 

John  Lobey,  landlord  of  "  The  Dog  and  Duck,"  is  on  the  track  of  a  mystery. 
Something  to  do  with  they  anarchists  and  such-like.  The  chief  clue  lies  in 
the  extraordinary  fact  that  on  three  Sundays  in  succession  Parson  has  called 
"  George  Crosby;  bachelor,  of  this  parish,"  when  everybody  knows  that  there 
isn't  a  Crosby  in  the  parish,  and  that  the  gentleman  from  London,  who  stayed 
at  his  inn  for  three  weeks  and  comes  down  Saturdays — for  which  purpose 
he  leaves  his  bag  and  keeps  on  his  room — this  gentleman  from  London,  I  tell 
you,  is  Mr.  Geofirey  Carfax.    Leastways  it  was  the  name  he  gave. 

John  Lobey  need  not  puzzle  his  head  over  it.  Geoffrey  Carfax  is  George 
Crosby,  and  he  is  to  be  married  next  Saturday  at  a  neighbouring  village  church, 
in  which  "  Gertrude  Rosamund  Morrison,  spinster,  of  this  parish,"  has  also 
been  called  three  times.  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Crosby  will  then  go  up  to  London 
and  break  the  news  to  Mrs.  Morrison. 

Not  until  you  are  my  wife,"  said  George  firmly,  "  do  you  go  into  that 
boarding-house  again."    He  was  afraid  to  see  her  there. 

"  You  dear,"  said  Rosamund  ;  and  she  wrote  to  her  mother  that  the 
weather  was  so  beautiful,  and  she  was  getting  so  much  stronger,  and  her  friend 
so  much  wanted  her  to  stay,  that  .  .  .  and  so  on.  It  is  easy  to  think  of  things 
like  that  when  you  are  in  love. 

On  the  Sunday  before  the  wedding  George  told  her  that  he  had  practically 
arranged  about  the  little  house  in  Bedford  Park. 

And  I'm  getting  on  at  the  office  rippingly.-    It's  really  quite  interesting 
after  all,    I  shall  get  another  rise  in  no  time." 

"  You  dear,"  said  Rosam-und  again.    She  pressed  his  hand  tight  and  .  .  . 

But  really,  you  know,  I  think  we  might  leave  them  now.  They  have 
both  much  to  learn  ;  they  have  many  quarrels  to  go  through,  many  bitter 
misunderstandings  to  break  down  ;  but  they  are  alive  at  last.  And  so  we 
may  say  good-bye. 


The  Cherub 


By  Oliver  Onions 

y^rmy  Service  Corps 

It  was  provided  in  the  roster  of  Garrison  Duties,  Section  *'  Guards  and  Pic- 
quets,"  that  a  sentry  should  march  and  return  along  that  portion  of  the  grey 
wall  that  lay  between  the  Sowgate  Steps  and  the  Tower  of  the  ancient  South 
Bar,  a  hundred  yards  away  ;  but  fate  alone  had  determined  that  that  sentry 
should  be  Private  Hey.  And,  since  Private  Hey  was  barely  tall  enough  to 
look  forth  from  the  grey  embrasures  of  the  outer  wall  to  the  pleasant  May- 
chester  Plain  where  the  placid  river  wound,  the  same  fate  had  further  decreed 
that  his  gaze  should  be  directed  inwards,  over  the  tall  trees  below  him,  to 
the  row  of  Georgian  houses  of  mellow  plum-like  brick  that  stood  beyond  the 
narrow  back  gardens,  and  past  these  again  to  other  trees  and  other  houses, 
to  where  the  minster  towers  arose  in  the  heart  of  the  ancient  city.  Only 
occasionally  did  a  fleeting,  pathetic  wonder  cross  Private  Hey's  mind  whether 
there  was  an  irony  in  this. 

A  lithograph  of  uniforms  outside  the  post  office  (guards,  artillery,  and  militia, 
all  in  one  frame)  had  turned  his  thoughts  to  the  Army  seven  years  before,  and 
the  recruiting-sergeant  had  clinched  the  matter.  Until  then  he  had  been  a 
builder's  clerk.  He  was  just  five-and-twenty.  He  had  a  pink,  round  face, 
wide-open  blue  eyes,  the  slightest  of  blond  moustaches,  and  his  soft,  slack 
mouth  seemed  only  to  be  held  closed  by  his  chin-strap.  He  always  looked 
hot  and  on  the  point  of  perspiration. 

Knowing  something  of  the  building  trade,  it  had  been  his  amusement, 
while  on  his  lofty  beat,  to  work  out  in  his  mind  the  interiors  of  the  Georgian 
houses  of  which  he  saw  only  the  outsides.  With  the  chimney-stacks  thus 
and  thus,  the  fireplaces  were  probably  distributed  after  such  and  such  a  fashion  ; 
white-sashed  windows  irregularly  placed  among  the  ivy  doubtless  gave  on 
landings  ;  waste  and  cistern-pipes  were  traceable  to  sources  here  and  there  ; 
and  Private  Hey  had  his  opinion  on  each  of  the  chimney-cowls  that  turned 
this  way  and  that  with  the  wind.  He  knew  the  habits,  too,  of  the  folk  on 
whose  back  gardens  he  looked  down.  The  nurse  in  native  robes  reminded  him 
of  his  five  years  in  India  ;  the  old  lady  in  black  merino  who  fed  the  birds  was 
familiar  ;  and  he  liked  to  see  the  children  who  spread  white  cloths  on  the 
grass  beneath  the  pear  and  cherry  trees  and  held  their  small  tea-parties.  Some- 
times he  wondered  whether,  to  them,  so  far  above  them,  he  did  not  look  like 
one  of  the  scarlet  geraniums  of  their  own  window-boxes. 

31 


82 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


It  had  been  during  the  previous  spring  that  the  incoming  of  a  new  tenant 
to  the  end  house  of  the  row  had  interested  him  mildly.  He  had  watched  the 
white-jacketed  house-painters  at  work,  and  had  reflected  that  the  small  window 
they  were  covering  with  a  coloured  transparency  was  probably  that  of  a  bath- 
room. Then  the  new  tenants  had  moved  in,  and  one  day  a  small,  plump 
woman's  figure  had  appeared  shaking  a  table-cloth  at  the  top  of  the  narrow 
garden.  The  sentry  had  stopped  suddenly  in  his  beat,  and  broken  into  the 
sweat  he  always  seemed  on  the  point  of.  Even  at  that  distance  he  had  recog- 
nised her  ;  and  when,  after  some  minutes,  he  had  begun  to  think  again,  the 
only  idea  that  had  come  to  him  was,  why,  during  the  seven  years  in  which 
he  had  not  ceased  to  think  of  Mollie  Westwood,  had  he  never  once  pictured 
her  in  a  blue  gown  ? 

But  she  was  Mollie  Hullah  now  ;  he  knew  that.  And  he  knew  Hullah, 
too,  architect  and  surveyor.  Hullah  had  been  the  foreman  of  Peterson's 
building  yard  in  the  days  when  he,  Tom  Hey,  civilian,  had  been  Peterson's 
junior  clerk.  He  remembered  him  as  an  ambitious  sort  of  chap,  who  (while 
Tom  Hey  had  "  flown  his  kite,"  as  he  put  it)  had  bought  himself  a  case  of 
instruments  and  a  reel-tape,  and  studied,  and  made  himself  an  architect. 
Tom  Hey's  duties  had  been  confined  to  the  day-book  ;  Hullah  and  Peterson 
between  them  contained  the  true  account  of  the  Peterson  business  ;  and  Hey 
had  not  guessed  the  reason  for  this  until,  in  India,  he  had  received  the 
newspaper  that  contained  the  account  of  Peterson's  bankruptcy.  Then  he 
had  "  tumbled."  The  examination  showed  Peterson's  books  to  have  been 
ill-kept  with  a  sagacity  and  foresight  that  had  drawn  forth  ironical  compliments 
from  the  registrar  himself.  "  Your  chief  witness  abroad,  too  ;  excellent  1  " 
the  registrar  had  commented.  .  .  .  No  ;  Hullah  was  not  the  fellow  to  tell  all 
he  knew  about  contractors  and  palm-oil  and  peculating  clerks-of- works.  Hullah 
was  the  kind  of  man  who  got  on. 

Since  Hullah  had  come  to  live  in  the  end  house,  Private  Hey,  eyes-right 
when  he  turned  at  the  South  Bar,  and  eyes-left  when  he  turned  again  at  the 
Sowgate  Steps,  had  counted  the  days  when  Mollie  had  appeared  at  the  windows 
or  shaken  the  table-cloth  in  the  narrow  garden.  His  amusement  was  no 
longer  with  chimney-pots  and  bath-rooms  ;  it  was,  to  tell  over  to  himself 
the  dissolute  life  he  had  led  since  Mollie  had  turned  her  back  on  him.  Some- 
how, it  seemed  to  exalt  her. 

It  was  not  that  he  had  ever  lied,  or  stolen,  or  left  a  friend  in  trouble.  To 
the  pink-faced  private  these  things  were  not  merely  wicked  ;  they  were  "  dead 
off  " — a  much  worse  thing.  He  drew  the  line  at  things  that  were  "  off.'* 
But  he  had  committed  a  monotonous  routine  of  other  sins,  beginning  usually 
at  the  canteen,  continuing  at  the  "  regulation  "  inns  or  at  the  Cobourg  Music- 
hall,  and  ending  on  the  defaulter-sheet  with  a  C.B.  And  one  day  his  colonel 
had  said  to  him  :  "  Hey,  you  remind  me  of  a  cherub  who  kicks  about  in  the 
mud  and  glories  to  think  himself  an  imp."  That  had  puzzled  and  troubled 
Hey,  for  he  liked  the  fine  old  colonel. 

For  he  had  ranked  himself  with  the  magnificently  wicked.  In  amours, 
short  of  anything  that  was  ''off,"  was  he  not  a  Juan?    In  the  matter  of 


THE  CHERUB 


33 


inebriety,  and  for  brawling  in  the  streets,  why,  his  officers  might  make  war 
with  ceremony  and  all  that,  but  (the  cherub  flattered  himself)  he  was  an 
item  of  the  reckless,  heroic,  glorious  stuff  they  had  to  do  it  with.  And 
since  Mollie,  by  refusing  him,  had  driven  him  to  all  this,  the  sight  of  her 
ought  surely  to  have  inspired  him  in  his  courses  ;  it  troubled  him  that 
it  did  not  do  so.  On  the  contrary,  he  never  felt  less  inclination  to  fuddle 
himself  or  to  click  his  heels  over  the  gallery-rail  of  the  Cobourg  than  when 
he  had  seen  her.  When  he  did  not  see  her,  these  things  were  less  difficult, 
and  that  again  was  wrong.  To  regulate  his  conduct  at  all  by  the  sight  of 
another  man's  wife  was,  of  all  dead-off  things,  the  deadest. 

Now  Hullah,  as  the  sentry  knew,  had  no  family  ;  but  when,  the  following 
spring,  the  apple  trees  put  forth  their  pink,  and  the  white  clouds  sailed  high 
over  Maychester,  and  the  note  of  the  cuckoo  floated  on  the  air,  the  cherub 
became  moody  and  bashful  and  changed  colour  ten  times  in  an  hour.  Thrushes 
and  blackbirds  flew  back  and  forth  from  their  nests  ;  and  Mollie,  too,  her 
figure  dwarfed  by  his  point  of  vantage,  sunned  herself  in  the  garden.  Some- 
times the  cherub  blushed  red  as  his  tunic.  He  ought  to  have  gone  to  the 
Cobourg  and  played  the  very  deuce  ;  instead,  off  duty,  he  wandered  unhappily 
alone.  Then  one  day  he  missed  her,  and  his  eyes  scanned  the  house  and  her 
windows  timorously. 

Six  weeks  passed.  Then  one  morning  he  saw  that  the  white  blinds  w^ere 
drawn.    His  face  became  white  as  wax. 

The  next  day  he  saw  the  tail  of  a  coach  beyond  the  end  of  the  house.  He 
exceeded  his  beat,  descended  the  Sowgate  Steps,  and  stood,  trembling  and 
watching.  Then  he  gave  a  great  sob  of  relief.  The  coach  had  turned  ;  the 
horse  wore  white  conical  peaks  of  linen  on  its  ears — the  mark  of  a  child's 
funeral.    The  small  procession  passed,  and  the  cherub  resumed  his  beat. 

That  evening  the  colonel  stopped  him  as  he  crossed  the  barrack  yard. 

"  Ah,  Hey  !  .  .  .  I'm  glad  you've  given  us  so  little  trouble  lately.  I'd 
try  to  keep  it  up  if  I  were  you." 

"  Yes,  sir,"  said  the  cherub,  saluting ;  and  the  colonel  nodded  kindly  and 
passed  on. 

The  July  sun  beat  fiercely  down  on  the  grey  walls,  and  the  sentry's  tunic 
was  of  a  glaring  bull's  red.  Not  a  breath  moved  the  trees  below,  and  the  click 
of  his  heels  sounded  monotonously. 

Within  the  shadow  of  the  South  Bar,  where  the  steps  wound  down  to  the 
street,  a  frock-coated,  square-built  man  of  forty,  with  clipped  whiskers  and 
crafty  eyes,  watched  the  sentry  approach.  For  the  second  time  he  cleared 
his  throat  and  said  "  Tom  !  " 

This  time  the  sentry  turned.    "  I  ain't  allowed  to  talk  on  duty,"  he  said. 

The  man  within  the  shadow  waited. 

He  waited  for  half  an  hour,  and  then  the  clatter  of  the  relief  was  heard 
ascending  the  turret.  Presently  Private  Hey  passed  him  without  looking 
at  him.    He  descended  after  him,  and  in  the  street  spoke  again. 

"  I  ain't  off  duty  yet ;  you  can  come  to  the  Buttercup,"  said  Private  Hey. 

2 


84 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


The  bar  of  the  Buttercup  was  below  the  level  of  the  street,  and  a  gas-jet 
burned  all  day  over  its  zinc-covered  counter.  In  the  back  parlour  behind  it 
Hullah  awaited  Private  Hey. 

The  cherub's  voice  was  heard  shouting  an  order,  and  he  entered  the  snug. 
The  uncoated  barman  followed  him  with  the  liquor,  and  retired. 
Did  you  want  to  speak  to  me  ?  "  the  cherub  demanded. 

"  I  did,  Tom,  I  did.    How — how  are  you  getting  on  ?  '* 

"  Spit  it  out." 

Hullah  murmured  smoothly :  "  Ah,  the  same  blunt-spoken,  honest  Tom 
that  was  at  Peterson's !    You  remember  Peterson's  and  the  old  days,  Tom  ?  " 

"  I'd  let  the  old  days  drop  if  I  was  you.    I  thought  you  had  done." 
So  did  I,  Tom,  so  did  I ;  but  every  breast  has  its  troubles.    You've  heard 
the  expression,  Tom,  that  there  is  no  cupboard  without  its  skeleton  ?  " 

"  Keep  your  cupboards  and  skeletons  to  yourself.  .  .  .  Does  the  new 
bathroom  answer  all  right  ?  " 

"  Nicely,  Tom,  I  thank  you.  .  .  .  Did  you  know  Peterson  was  back  in 
Maychester  ?  " 

"  Ho,  is  he  ?  I  expect  he  wants  to  talk  over  the  old  days  with  his  friend 
Hullah,  same  as  y0u  with  me.  Well,  you  was  a  precious  pair  o'  rascals — ^though 
for  myself,  mark  you,  I  like  to  see  honour  among  such." 

"  Hush,  Tom  !  .  .  .  He's  back,  and  seeking  you.  He'd  better  be  careful ; 
it's  twenty  years,  is  that.  But  what  I  wanted  to  say,  Tom,  is  that  it  would 
save  a  lot  of  trouble — a  lot  of  trouble — if  you  weren't  to  see  him." 

"  Ho  !  .  .  .  Hullah,  my  man." 

"  Yes,  Tom." 

''Do  you  know  what  I  think  you  are  ?  " 

Hullah  stammered.  It  was  so  hard  to  get  a  start  in  business — ^the  com- 
petition— he'd  gone  straight  except  for  that  once. 

"  I  think  you're  the  blackguardest,  off -est  scamp  in  the  trade,  and  I  wouldn't 
be  found  dead  in  a  ditch  with  you.  That's  juicy,  coming  from  me.  Fm  no 
saint,  but  just  a  common-or-garden  Tommy,  with  a  defaulter  sheet  it's  a  sin 
to  read  ;  and  I  say  you're  a  blackguard,  and  dead-off." 

Hullah  cringed.  He'd  gone  straight  since — Peterson  had  already  pushed  him 
for  twice  what  he'd  had  out  of  it — it  was  hard  to  be  persecuted  like  this,  hard. 
The  cherub  revolved  in  his  mind  phrases  of  elaborate  and  over-done  irony. 

Suddenly  Hullah  mentioned  his  wife,  and  thepinkof  the  cherub's  face  deepened. 

"  Come  into  the  yard,"  he  said. 

Hullah  followed  him  into  a  dusty  plot,  where  hens  scratched  and  cases  and 
barrels  lay  scattered  everywhere. 

"  What  did  you  say  ?  "  the  soldier  demanded. 

The  architect's  face  was  of  an  unwholesome  white,  and  Hey  spat.  He 
saw  that  Hullah  feared  he  was  going  to  strike  him. 

"  She's  been  ill,  Tom,  and  must  be  got  away  to  the  Mediterranean.  Peterson's 
sucking  me  dry ;  he  thinks  I'm  afraid  of  him.  You  used  to  be  fond  of  her,  Tom." 

All  at  once  Private  Hey's  wrath  gave  place  to  utter  wretchedness,  and  he 
began  to  stride  up  and  down  the  yard.    Tears  rose  into  his  eyes,  and  presently 


THE  CHERUB 


35 


rolled  unchecked  down  his  cheeks.    He  approached  Hullah,  and  said  in  a 
quavering  voice  :   "A  fortnight  ago — was  that  ?  " 
"  A  boy,"  Hullah  murmured. 

"  It's  a  mercy  he's  dead,  if  he'd  ha'  been  like  you,"  the  cherub  sobbed. 

And  then  he  forgot  all  about  Hullah.  He  forgot  everything  except  that 
little  Mollie  Westwood  had  been  through  an  agony,  was  ill,  must  be  got  away, 
and  that  he  might  help  her.  An  ineffable,  soft  thrill  stirred  at  his  heart ;  he, 
wicked  Tom  Hey,  might  help  her.  And  presently  he  stood  before  Hullah 
again,  looking  wistfully  at  him. 
You  ain't  lying,  Hullah  ?  " 

"  Oh,  Tom  !  " 

*'  And  suppose — suppose  I  was  to  think  Peterson's  as  big  a  thief  as  you, 
and  treat  him  as  such — treat  him  as  such,  if  he  dares  to  speak  to  me  ;  you 
understand,  Hullah  ?  " 

"  Don't  put  it  that  way,  Tom  .  .  .  then  I  may  take  it,  Tom  ?" 

"  Oh,  go,  go  !  I  want  to  me  by  myself !  "  the  poor  cherub  moaned  ;  and 
Hullah,  turning  once  to  dart  a  hateful  glance  at  him  over  his  shoulder,  passed 
through  the  public-house. 

"It's  Siberia  for  you  this  time,  Tom,"  the  guard  whispered,  adjusting  his 
pipe-clayed  belt ;  "  what  in  thunder  made  you  go  and  do  it  ?  " 

The  cherub's  tunic  was  unbelted,  and  the  colour  had  fled  from  his  simple 
face.    He  made  no  reply. 

"  Was  you  drunk  ?  Barker  says  you  hadn't  been  in  the  canteen.  Any- 
way, the  chap's  in  'orspital.    A  blooming  civilian,  too  !  " 

He  saluted  stiffly;  the  major  had  passed  on  his  way  to  the  outbuilding  that 
had  been  furnished  for  a  court-martial ;  and  the  barrack  clock  struck  eleven. 

Half  a  dozen  officers  in  full  uniform  sat  about  a  long  trestle-table,  and 
the  sunlight  that  came  through  the  tall  windows  lay  across  the  pens  and  ink 
and  pink  blotting-paper  that  were  spread  before  the  Court.  The  colonel, 
at  the  head  of  the  table,  talked  to  Warren,  the  regimental  surgeon. 

"  I'm  absurdly  upset.  Warren.  It's  ridiculous,  the  faith  I  have  in  the  fellow. 
Moreover,  I  have  reason  to  know  that  he  hasn't  touched  drink  for  weeks." 

"  He's  been  in  the  habit,  and  in  such  cases  a  sudden  discontinuance  some- 
times .  .  .  But  the  point  isn't  whether  he  was  drunk  or  not ;  it's  an  unprovoked 
attack  on  this  fellow  Peterson,  or  whatever  his  name  is." 

The  colonel  sighed.  Ah,  well,  I  can't  overlook  this.  Are  you  ready, 
gentlemen  ?  " 

An  orderly  opened  the  door,  and  the  prisoner  was  brought  in  between 
two  armed  guards.  He  saluted  the  Court,  and  then  stood  at  attention.  The 
guards  fell  back.    Two  or  three  witnesses  sat  on  a  bench  within  the  door. 

The  colonel  did  not  once  look  at  Private  Hey,  and  the  charge  was  read. 
The  principal  witness  lay  in  hospital,  but  sufficient  evidence  of  the  fact  of 
the  assault  would  be  produced,  and  the  president  desired  the  prisoner  to  plead. 
The  plea  was  scarcely  audible,  but  it  was  understood  to  be  "  Not  guilty," 
and  the  first  witness  was  called. 


36 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


The  cherub  knew  not  in  what  queer  way  it  hurt  him  that  his  colonel  refused 
to  look  at  him.  He  didn't  much  care  what  happened,  but  he  would  have 
liked  the  colonel  to  think  well  of  him.  A  witness  was  telling  how  the  prisoner 
had  reeled,  spoken  thickly,  offered  his  bayonet,  and  finally  flung  the  man 
down  the  steps  of  the  turret  of  the  South  Bar.  Would  the  witness  consider 
the  prisoner  to  have  been  drunk  ?  the  Court  asked,  and  the  witness  replied 
that  he  should.  The  steps  were  old  and  worn;  might  not  the  man  have 
slipped  ?  the  Court  suggested,  and  the  witness  reminded  the  Court  that  the 
prisoner  had  staggered  and  offered  his  bayonet.  Had  the  injured  man  spoken 
to  the  prisoner  ?  The  witness  thought  not ;  he  had  seemed  to  be  on  the 
point  of  speaking,  but  the  prisoner  had  cut  him  short,  exclaiming ;  "  I  don't 
want  to  talk  to  dead-off's — like  you  !  " 

Asked  if  he  had  anything  to  say,  the  prisoner  shook  his  head.  "  I  wasn't 
drunk,  sir,"  he  said. 

Other  witnesses  were  called  ;  the  case  went  drowsily  forward,  and  the 
major  yawned.  The  colonel  was  whispering  to  the  doctor  again,  and  then  for 
the  first  time  he  looked  at  the  prisoner. 

"Do  you  know  this  Peterson  ?  " 

"  I  worked  for  him  when  I  was  a  civilian,  sir,"  the  prisoner  answered. 

"  Have  you  any  grudge  against  him  ?  " 

"  I  didn't  want  to  talk  to  him,  sir." 

"  But  suppose  he  should  speak  to  you  again  ?  '* 

A  brief  gleam  of  satisfaction  crossed  the  cherub's  mild  blue  eyes.  "  I 
frightened  him  too  bad  for  that,  sir,"  he  said  ;  and  then,  as  the  colonel's  grave 
eyes  did  not  cease  to  regard  him,  there  came  a  quick  little  break  in  his  voice. 

"  I  wasn't  drunk,  sir.  I  wouldn't  tell  you  a  lie,  sir,  nor  do  nothing  that's 
off — there's  marks  against  me  a  many,  but  not  for  things  that's  off ;  I  ask  you 
to  believe  I  wasn't  drunk,  sir  " 

"  Clear  the  Court,"  said  the  colonel. 

The  guard,  the  prisoner,  and  the  witnesses  filed  out  and  the  door  closed, 
and  the  colonel  leaned  forward  in  his  chair.  He  seemed  disproportionately 
moved. 

"  Gentlemen,"  he  said,  "  if  the  prisoner  is  to  be  seriously  punished,  I  ask 
you  to  remember  it's  dismissal  and  imprisonment.  Let  me  make  a  suggestion. 
It  was  a  very  hot  day — he's  been  in  India — possibly  an  old  sunstroke  " 

"A  bit  discredited,  that,"  observed  the  doctor. 

"  He  would  be  punished,  of  course,  but  more  leniently.  It's  all  I  can  put 
forward.    It  rests  with  the  Court." 

He  leaned  back  again,  troubled.  In  the  hum  of  consultation  he  heard 
Warren's  slightly  sarcastic  laugh,  and  thought  he  heard  the  major  say:  "Oh, 
let  it  go  at  that ;  Neville  seems  to  want  it." 

"  Very  well,  sir,"  said  the  major  by  and  by  ;  "we  are  agreed." 

And  as  the  cherub,  returning  with  the  guard,  received  the  milder  sentence, 
he  looked  humbly  and  gratefully  at  his  colonel.  He  recognised  that  there 
are  things  that  a  commanding  officer  cannot  overlook,  but  that  a  private 
gentleman,  on  occasion,  may. 


An  Impossible  Person 

By  W.  B.  Maxwell 

Royal  Fusiliers 

Using  the  cant  phrase,  people  often  said  that  General  Sir  John  Beckford 
vras  a  quite  impossible  person.  A  brave  soldier,  a  true  gentleman,  a  splendid 
creature  physically — just  so,  but  rendering  himself  absurd  and  futile  by  notions 
so  old-fashioned  that  they  had  been  universally  exploded  before  he  was  born. 
A  man  who  obstinately  refused  to  move  with  the  times,  who  in  manner, 
costume,  and  every  idea  belonged,  and  seemed  proud  to  belong,  to  the  past. 

Even  his  own  relatives  admitted  the  impossibility  of  him  when,  at  the 
age  of  sixty,  he  gave  effect  to  the  most  old-fashioned  of  all  conceivable  notions 
by  marrying  for  love.  If  an  elderly  widower  with  a  little  son  of  nine  wants 
somebody  to  make  a  home  and  help  to  rear  the  child,  he  should  invite  some 
middle-aged  female  cousin  to  come  to  his  assistance  ;  but  if  he  wants  a  charm- 
ing, attractive  girl  to  renounce  the  joys  and  hopes  of  youth  in  order  to  soothe 
and  gladden  his  dull  remnant  of  years — well,  he  oughtn't  to  want  it,  and  really 
it  is  not  quite  nice  when  he  does. 

Lady  Jane  Armitage,  an  ancient  aunt,  put  this  thought  into  very  plain 
words  and  forced  Sir  John  to  listen  to  them.  A  mistake — not  even  a  fair 
bargain.  What  is  Cynthia  to  get,  on  her  side  ?  A  seat  in  a  carriage,  a 
liberal  dress  allowance,  perhaps  a  few  more  loose  sovereigns  than  she  has 
been  accustomed  to  carry  in  that  silly  little  gold  purse  of  hers  ! 

"  The  idea  of  money,"  said  Sir  John  gruffly,  "  has  never  entered  Cynthia's 
head." 

"  Perhaps  not.  But  what  else  can  you  offer  her  ?  To  hold  your  landing- 
net  while  you  do  your  stupid  fishing  ;  to  perform  the  duties  of  a  nursery- 
governess  for  Jack ;  to  enjoy  the  privilege  of  playing  hostess  when  you 
entertain  half  a  dozen  other  generals  and  their  frumpish  wives." 

Sir  John  echoed  his  aunt's  last  adjective  ironically. 

"  Yes,"  said  Lady  Jane,  "  but  I'm  different.  I  know  I'm  a  frump,  and 
your  friends  aren't  aware  of  their  misfortune.  No,  John,  I  tell  you  frankly, 
it  isn't  a  fair  bargain." 

Sir  John  bit  his  grey  moustache,  ran  a  strong  hand  through  his  shock  of  grey 
hair,  contracted  his  heavy  brows,  and  then  laughed  and  shrugged  his  shoulders. 
"  Inexplicable  to  you,  eh,  Aunt  Jane  ?    Well,  let's  leave  it  at  that.  But 
^  be  kind  to  Cynthia  all  the  same,  won't  you  ?     Save  her  from  the  other 
frumps,"  and,  ceasing  to  laugh,  he  stared  at  Lady  Jane  almost  fiercely. 

37 


38 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


He  was  one  of  those  men  who  consider  it  beneath  their  dignity  to  betray 
tender  emotion,  and  who  perhaps  look  sternest  and  most  forbidding  when  they 
are  feeling  unusually  soft  and  gentle.  At  any  rate,  he  would  not  explain  to 
his  aunt  that  he  believed  the  marriage  to  be  an  eminently  fair  bargain — an  old- 
fashioned  exchange — love  for  love — as  much  love  on  the  girl's  side  as  on  his. 

Lady  Jane  made  no  promise,  but  she  proved  very  kind  indeed  to  her 
new  niece ;  endeavouring  to  find  innocent  amusement  for  pretty  Cynthia, 
acting  as  her  chaperon,  watching  over  her,  and  growing  fonder  and  fonder 
of  her.  She  said  that  the  young  Lady  Beckford  was  a  model  wife  and  a 
pattern  stepmother.  No  one  could  have  been  more  devoted  to  or  wiser  in 
her  training  of  Master  Jack. 

Now,  after  five  years,  the  boy  was  ready  to  go  to  a  public  school,  and 
during  these  long  summer  days  a  holiday  tutor  had  been  giving  him  final 
preparation,  ultimate  crammed  knowledge,  and  topmost  polish  of  tone  and 
manners.  August  had  been  spent  at  the  Beckfords'  country  house  in 
Devonshire,  and  the  early  weeks  of  September  at  their  flat  in  Victoria 
Street.  Lady  Jane  approved  of  everything  that  concerned  these  arrange- 
ments, except  one  thing.  She  approved  of  the  public  school,  of  the  engaging 
of  a  holiday  tutor,  of  all  the  care,  devotion,  and  forethought  with  which 
the  little  man  was  being  launched  from  the  home  circle ;  but  she  did  not 
approve  of  the  fact  that  Sir  John  had  thrown  the  whole  burden  on  Cynthia's 
slender  shoulders,  while  he  did  his  stupid  salmon-fishing  four  hundred  miles 
away  in  Scotland. 

Not  quite  fair  to  Cynthia — leaving  her  all  alone  with  a  schoolboy  and  his 
tutor.  Lady  Jane,  at  considerable  inconvenience,  ran  down  to  Devonshire 
to  cheer  and  enliven  her.  Came  back  to  London  and  at  worse  inconvenience 
stayed  there,  so  as  to  be  handy  to  act  as  companion,  chaperon,  advisory  ally, 
whenever  Cynthia  wanted  her. 

But  Cynthia  wanted  her  scarcely  at  all,  and  allowed  poor  Lady  Jane  to 
perceive  at  last  that  uninvited  companions  are  sometimes  a  tedium  rather 
than  a  solace. 

It  was  the  last  night  of  the  holidays.  To-morrow  Master  Jack  and  his 
tutor  would  disappear  from  Victoria  Street. 

Dinner  had  been  ordered  at  an  early  hour,  and  Jack  was  scampering  through 
his  meal  with  excited  swiftness.  One  last  treat  had  been  arranged  for  him. 
He  was  to  be  dispatched  to  a  theatre  presently  in  charge  of  George,  the  footman. 

"  I  wish  you  were  coming,"  said  Jack,  and  as  he  turned  to  Mr.  Ridsdale 
his  eyes  expressed  eloquently  enough  the  hero-worship  that  is  so  easy  to 
kindle  in  young  and  ingenuous  hearts. 

"  It  would  be  scarcely  polite,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  "  for  both  of  us  to  desert 
Lady  Beckford." 

"  No,"  said  Jack  ;  "  but  I  wish  she'd  come  with  us,"  and  he  turned  to 
his  stepmother.    "  Won't  you  change  your  mind  ?  " 

"  I  really  don't  feel  up  to  it.  Jack.  I'm  tired — I've  had  a  headache  since 
the  day  before  yesterday." 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


39 


*'  It  might  drive  the  headache  away,"  said  Jack,  eagerly.  "  They  say 
it's  a  tip-top  piece." 

His  stepmother  and  his  tutor  both  smiled  as  they  looked  at  his  bright  and 
animated  face.  Lady  Beckford's  smile  was  simply  affectionate  ;  Mr.  Ridsdale's 
was  indulgent  and  patronising. 

"  A  rousing  melodrama,  Jack  !    All  noise  and  stamping." 

"  Yes,"  cried  Jack,  enthusiastically.  "  Murder  and  sudden  death — just 
what  I  like." 

"  But  not,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  "  exactly  indicated  as  a  cure  for  a  headache." 

"  Well,  if  I  can't  persuade  you  "  and  Jack  turned  to  Yates,  the  butler. 

"  Has  George  changed  his  things  ?  " 
"  Yes,  sir." 

"  Then  I'll  be  off."  Jack  pushed  his  plate  away  with  a  gesture  that  elegant 
Mr.  Ridsdale  could  not  approve  of.  It  was  too  childish  for  a  boy  of  fourteen 
— a  little  more  polish  required,  in  spite  of  so  much  polishing.  "  Good  night," 
and  Jack  kissed  Lady  Beckford.  "  I  shan't  say  good  night  to  you,  Mr.  Rids- 
dale, because  you  won't  have  turned  in  before  I  get  back,  will  you  ?  " 

"  No  ;  I'll  sit  up  for  you,"  and  Mr.  Ridsdale,  smiling,  spoke  with  rather 
strained  facetiousness.  "I'll  be  waiting  to  hear  how  the  heroine  was  extri- 
cated from  her  misfortunes,  how  the  villain  got  scored  off  by  the  funny  man, 
and  how  virtue  triumphed  all  round  in  the  end.  There  !  Cut  along.  Your 
escort  is  waiting  for  you." 

Master  Jack  hurried  gaily  from  the  dining-room,  and  his  boyish  voice 
sounded  for  a  few  moments  as  he  prattled  to  the  footman.  Then  the  hall 
door  of  the  flat  opened  and  shut,  and  the  two  elders  were  left  alone  to  finish 
their  dinner  at  leisure. 

Ah  !  "  Mr.  Ridsdale  drew  in  his  breath  with  a  little  sigh,  and,  looking 
at  his  hostess,  spoke  quietly  and  meditatively.  "  I  know  you  often  read 
people's  thoughts,  but  I  wonder  if  you  could  guess  what  I'm  thinking  now  ?  " 

"I'll  try,  if  you  like.  You  were  thinking  that  perhaps,  after  all,  Jack  is 
too  young  still  for  the  rough-and-tumble  life  of  a  big  school." 

"  Oh,  no,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  carelessly.  "  Jack'll  do  all  right.  They'll 
soon  lick  him  into  shape.  No  " — and  his  tone  softened  and  deepened,  though 
he  was  speaking  almost  in  a  whisper — "  no  ;  I  was  thinking  this  is  the  last 
night  of  my — my  holidays  ;  possibly  the  last  time  I  shall  ever  sit  in  this  pleasant 
room,  or  see  you  wearing  that  beautiful  dress,  or  hear  you  playing  classical 
music,  that  I  don't  understand,  but  love  to  listen  to." 

Truly  it  seemed  a  pleasant  room,  a  remarkably  pleasant  room  for  a  London 
fiat.  The  evening  was  just  cold  enough  to  justify  a  fire,  and  small  logs  of 
wood  in  a  basket  grate  sent  dancing  flames  to  light  up  the  oak  panels  of  the 
walls  ;  electric  lamps  flashed  brightly  on  silver  and  glass  ;  a  golden  basket 
of  peaches  and  another  of  grapes  made  the  table  appear  a  symbolised  announce- 
ment of  ease,  luxury,  even  of  sumptuousness  ;  the  butler,  moving  to  and 
fro  so  promptly  and  yet  so  sedately,  offered  one  delicate  food  and  stimulating 
wine.    It  was  all  very,  very  pleasant. 

Pretty  things  wherever  one  glanced — a  mirror  in  a  sculptured  frame, 


40 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


some  blue  and  white  china  on  a  long  shelf,  and,  seen  faintly,  with  the  electric 
light  just  indicating  their  existence,  rows  of  handsomely  bound  books  behind 
latticed  glass  ;  altogether  what  would  be  described  in  stage  language  as  a 
charming  interior. 

Any  tutor,  accustomed  to  the  hard  seats  and  coarse  fare  of  a  school  hall, 
might  feel  regret  at  leaving  such  a  room  irrevocably,  and  might  long  after- 
wards yearn  to  see  again  the  pretty  things  that  it  contained.  But  just  now 
Mr.  Ridsdale  was  looking  only  at  his  hostess,  and  he  repeated  the  compliment 
about  her  dress. 

"  I  admiire  you  in  that  more  than  in  any  of  the  others,"  he  said,  softly, 
and  rather  sorrowfully. 

"  Because  it  is  black,  I  suppose.  It's  quite  old.  But  men  always  like 
black  dresses.    My  husband  does." 

The  dress  was  made  of  velvet,  with  some  silver  decoration  across  the  front 
of  the  bodice,  and  it  certainly  appeared  becoming.  In  it  Cynthia  Beckford 
looked  very  slim  and  young ;  fair-haired,  but  dark-eyed,  naturally  pale, 
but  with  a  rapid  flicker  of  colour  ;  a  person  of  frank,  kind  outlook,  a  simple 
and  truthful  sort  of  person,  and  yet  with  underlying  depths  of  character 
or  sensibility  that  proved  astoundingly  interesting  to  the  few  people  who 
had  studied  her  closely.  Frenchmen  would  describe  her  beauty,  such  as  it 
was,  as  belonging  to  the  order  that  slowly  troubles  rather  than  quickly  fas- 
cinates. 

"  But  I'm  not  like  the  General,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale.  "  I  admire  that  black 
dress,  not  any  black  dress." 

He  said  it  with  a  perceptible  insistence,  quietly  but  obstinately ;  as  if 
conscious  of  subtle  values  in  his  own  taste,  and  unwilling  that  it  should  be 
confounded  with  the  ordinary  likes  and  dislikes  of  another  person — even 
though  that  person  were  as  worthy  and  respectable  as  his  temporary  employer. 

Mr.  Ridsdale  was  a  good-looking  man  of  thirty,  tall  and  thin,  of  easy 
carriage  and  elegant  manners.  Boys,  big  and  small,  among  whom  he  had 
passed  the  better  part  of  his  life,  always  looked  up  to  him,  and  sometimes 
adored  him,  as  a  perfect  type  of  school-trained  manhood  ;  and  girls,  too,  were 
frequently  subjugated  by  his  charms.  He  was  the  sort  of  man  who  is  not 
as  a  rule  dreaded  by  other  men  as  likely  to  prove  a  dangerous  rival ;  and 
yet  one  might  well  suppose  that  in  certain  circumstances  he  would  be  dangerous 
— for  instance,  if  paying  slow  and  unhindered  court  to  a  foolish  and  otherwise 
neglected  woman.  The  dark  eyes,  the  smooth,  silky  voice,  the  insidious 
flattery  of  its  softening  tones,  might  all  be  effective  in  a  protracted  attack  on 
feminine  foolishness  of  a  certain  age. 

"  To-morrow,"  he  said,  dreamily  ;  "  to-morrow — almost  to-day,"  and 
he  sighed  as  he  took  a  peach  from  the  gold  basket. 

Yates,  the  butler,  had  put  cigarettes  and  matches  on  the  table,  and  was 
about  to  leave  the  room,  when  the  outer  bell  rang  shrilly  and  sharply. 

"  Who  can  that  be  ?  "  said  Ridsdale,  looking  up.  "  A  visitor  I  Oh,  do 
tell  him  to  say  you're  not  at  home." 

The  butler  paused,  waiting  for  instructions. 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


4i 


"  It  can't  be  a  visitor,"  said  Cynthia  Be<jkford.  "  Some  tradesman's 
messenger  !  " 

"  It  may  be  old  Lady  Jane." 

"  She  wouldn't  come  so  late  as  this." 

"  I  don't  know,"  said  Ridsdale,  eagerly.  "  She  comes  at  all  hours.  With 
your  headache  she  would  bore  you  to  death."  He  leaned  forward  in  his  chair 
and  spoke  very  softly.  "  And,  remember,  my  last  evening  !  You — you 
promised  that  you  would  play  to  me." 

Cynthia  Beckford  hesitated  a  moment,  and  then  told  the  butler  that  she 
was  not  at  home. 

"  Yes,  my  lady.    Not  at  home  to  anybody  ?  " 
No." 

The  flicker  of  colour  showed  in  her  pale  cheeks  as  she  added  explanatorily 
to  Ridsdale,  "  It  can't  be  anybody  of  importance." 

Mr.  Ridsdale  sat  listening.  Then  he  got  up,  and  spoke  with  an  impatience 
that  he  did  not  attempt  to  conceal. 

"  That  fool  has  let  some  one  in — a  man  !  " 

Yes,  a  man's  heavy  footstep  in  the  hall,  and  a  man's  voice — loud  and 
assured,  not  making  polite  inquiries,  but  issuing  curt  directions. 

"  I  have  left  my  tackle  and  luggage  at  Euston.  Get  a  cab  presently  and 
go  and  fetch  it.    Take  this  ticket." 

"  Yes,  Sir  John.    Her  ladyship  is  in  the  dining-room." 

"  Open  the  door,  then." 

Cynthia  Beckford  ran  across  the  room  to  meet  her  husband ;  but,  encum- 
bered with  a  hand-bag  and  a  travelling-rug,  he  was  not  able  at  once  to  accept 
her  welcoming  embrace. 

"  Well,  Cynthia,  my  dear !  Ridsdale,  my  dear  fellow,  how  are  you  ? 
But  Where's  Jack  ?  " 

General  Beckford  put  his  hand-bag  on  a  chair  by  the  sideboard,  dropped  his 
rug  upon  the  floor,  and,  coming  to  the  table,  took  Master  Jack's  vacated  seat. 

"  We  have  sent  him  to  a  theatre,"  said  Cynthia,  "  with  George.  I'd  no 
idea  that  you  were  coming  home,  of  course." 

"  Oh,  I  see.    Gone  to  the  play — with  George  ?  " 

"  We  were  all  three  going,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  "  but  Lady  Beckford  had 
a  headache,  so  I  strongly  advised  her  to  stay  at  home,"  and  he  smiled.  "  Rather 
fortunate — or  you  would  have  had  a  double  disappointment." 

"  It  would  have  been  my  own  fault,"  and  the  General  smiled  too.  "  I 
ought  to  have  sent  you  a  telegram,  Cynthia." 

"  What  has  brought  you  back  so  unexpectedly  ?  " 

"  Impulse." 

"  Fish  not  rising  ?  "  asked  Ridsdale. 

"  No.  Wretchedly  poor  sport.  So  this  morning  I  suddenly  made  up 
my  mind  that  I'd  had  enough  of  it,  and  that  home,  sweet  home,  was  the  place 
for  me.    Well,  well,  what  about  the  home  news  ?  " 

Cynthia  Beckford  was  instructing  Yates  as  to  her  husband's  dinner,  but 
the  General  declared  that  he  had  eaten  all  he  vranted  in  the  train. 


42 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  I  can't  call  it  dinner,"  and  he  laughed  good-humouredly.  "  But  nothing 
more,  thank  you — unless  perhaps  a  biscuit  and  a  whisky-and-soda.  Now, 
sit  ye  down.  Don't  let  me  disturb  you.  Go  on  with  your  dessert,  Ridsdale — 
and  then  I'll  join  you  in  a  cigarette,  if  my  lady  permits  us,"  and  he  bowed  to 
his  wife  with  the  antiquated  air  of  courtesy  that  always  seems  so  odd  in  these 
free-and-easy  times. 

They  sat  together,  talking  of  Jack's  health,  his  progress,  his  future  career ; 
and  Mr.  Ridsdale  was  able  to  speak  most  favourably  of  his  pupil's  prospects. 

"  Capital,"  said  the  General.  "  I'm  enormously  indebted  to  you,  Ridsdale. 
You  seem  to  have  done  wonders.  But  I  knew  you  would  ;  I  knew  the  boy 
was  in  good  hands          Seen  much  of  Aunt  Jane  ?  "  he  asked  his  wife,  abruptly. 

"  Yes."  Cynthia  was  looking  at  the  painted  decoration  on  her  dessert- 
plate,  and  she  answered  slowly.  "  Yes  ;  Aunt  Jane  was  with  us  at  Lynton 
for  a  fortnight — quite  a  fortnight." 

"  I  know  ;  but  I  mean  after  that.    She  is  in  London,  isn't  she  ?  " 

Then  Cynthia  smilingly  confessed  that  the  long  fortnight  in  Devonshire  had  ex- 
hausted the  attraction  of  Lady  Jane's  society,  and  that  she  had  lately  avoided  it. 

"  She  is  too  kind  for  words,  but  " — Cynthia  looked  at  her  husband  depre- 
catingly — "  dear  Aunt  Jane  can  be  rather  boring." 

The  General  laughed  tolerantly. 

"  Ah,  no  companion  for  you.  She  belongs  to  another  generation."  His 
bushy  eyebrows  contracted  and  his  voice  became  grave.  "  My  generation. 
We  old  folk  are  poor  companions." 

"  She  doesn't  belong  to  your  generation."  Cynthia  flushed,  and  her  lips 
trembled.  She  put  out  her  hand  and  laid  it  on  her  husband's  arm.  "  You 
are  the  best  of  companions — a  companion  that  I  have  missed  dreadfully." 

"  There !  "  General  Beckford  laughed  gaily.  "  Did  you  hear  that, 
Ridsdale  ?  That's  the  sort  of  thing  we  old  chaps  like — even  if  we  aren't  vain 
enough  to  think  we  deserve  it.    Leave  that  where  it  is,  Yates." 

Yates  was  about  to  remove  the  hand-bag  and  take  it  to  his  master's  room. 

"  Very  good,  Sir  John." 

"  And  you  can  go  to  Euston  now — no  hurry.    Take  a  bus." 
"  Yes,  Sir  John." 

"  Smoking  permitted  ? "  And  the  General  bowed  again  to  his  wife. 
"  Light  your  cigarette,  Ridsdale.  No,  I  mustn't  have  any  coffee  on  top  of 
whisky  and  soda." 

The  little  group  at  the  table  sat  comfortably  enough  and  talked  lightly 
and  easily.  But  somehow  the  presence  of  General  Beckford  had  destroyed 
the  graceful  charm  of  the  room. 

He  looked  too  big,  too  rough  and  shaggy  for  his  delicately  pretty  sur- 
roundings. His  grey  hair  was  rumpled  and  unbrushed  after  the  journey  ; 
his  coarse  grey  suit  suggested  wild  moorlands  and  brawling  streams  ;  his 
whole  aspect  was  savagely  picturesque  rather  than  neatly  refined. 

No  contrast  could  have  been  greater  than  that  offered  by  the  smooth, 
well-brushed,  nicely  polished  young  man  who  sat  opposite  to  him  on  the  other 
side  of  the  small  round  table.    The  electric  light  shone  upon  Mr.  Ridsdale's 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


48 


black  cloth  and  black  silk,  his  stiff  white  shirt  and  soft  white  waistcoat,  his 
jewelled  buttons,  his  pearl  studs,  his  butterfly  tie,  his  white  hand  fingering  a 
cigarette-tube,  his  smooth  forehead,  and  his  sleek  hair  plastered  and  brushed 
back  with  studious  art  and  infinite  care.  He  seemed  elegant,  shapely,  even 
beautiful,  when  you  compared  him  with  his  travel-stained,  unkempt  host. 

All  the  charm  had  been  banished  by  the  new-comer.  It  was  another 
room  now.  And  the  ugly  hand-bag  on  the  distant  chair  seemed  like  an  aggres- 
sive symbol  of  proprietorship.  It  seemed  to  be  saying  that,  although  one 
might  wish  the  General  at  the  deuce,  one  could  not  ask  him  to  go  there,  because 
in  sober  fact  the  room  belonged  to  him. 

Yet,  to  an  understanding  eye,  there  was  something  noble  and  knightlike 
about  the  man  ;  the  ruggedness  seemed  blended  with  a  certain  fine  simplicity, 
and  even  the  old-fashioned  tricks  of  manner  and  speech,  by  removing  him 
from  the  commonplace  mode  of  the  hour,  served  to  stimulate  an  effort  to 
get  at  the  man's  real  character.  Certainly  no  poseur — a  direct,  straightforward 
creature.  On  reflection  one  might  perhaps  guess  that  a  young  romantic  girl, 
whose  imagination  had  been  fired  by  the  splendour  of  his  fighting  life,  his 
deeds  of  daring,  and  so  forth,  could  quite  conceivably  be  cajoled  into  giving 
her  untried  heart  to  him. 

"  One  more  question,  Cynthia."  The  conversation  had  languished  while 
the  General  puffed  at  his  second  cigarette.  "  How's  the  music  ?  Have  you 
been  assiduous  in  your  practice  ?  " 

"  Yes  ;  I've  played  nearly  every  evening." 

Mr.  Ridsdale  was  conscious  of  an  irksome  constraint.  Two  are  company 
and  three  are  none.  Deciding  to  leave  the  husband  and  wife  together,  he 
pushed  back  his  chair  and  got  up. 

But  the  General  would  not  let  him  go. 
No,  no,"  he  said.    "  Sit  ye  down,  my  dear  fellow."    Then  to  his  wife  : 
"  If  the  headache  isn't  too  bad,  play  something  this  evening.    Run  over  your 
latest  studies.    Ridsdale  and  I  will  follow  you  directly." 

Cynthia  Beckford  rose  obediently  and  turned  towards  the  drawing-room 
door.  Her  husband  reached  the  door  before  Mr.  Ridsdale  could  get  to  it,  and 
he  held  it  open  for  her,  bowing  low  as  she  passed  out. 

"  There  !  "  He  had  switched  on  the  light  in  the  other  room,  and  he  stood 
in  the  doorway  watching  her.    "  Now  delight  our  ears  with  your  deft  touch." 

Lady  Beckford  seated  herself  at  the  piano  and  began  to  play  a  plaintive 
and  dreamy  prelude  by  Bach. 

"  Beautiful !  Your  hand  has  not  lost  its  cunning.  Now  go  on  playing — 
and  don't  think  me  ungallant  if  for  a  few  minutes  I  close  the  door.  A  word 
or  two  with  Ridsdale — on  business.  But  we  shall  hear  you,  even  through  the 
door."  Then  he  gently,  and  as  if  regretfully,  shut  the  drawing-room  door  and 
came  back  to  the  table. 

"  Ridsdale  "- — and  there  was  an  apologetic  tone  in  the  General's  lowered 
voice — "  that  wasn't  quite  honest  of  me.  A  ruse  !  I  asked  her  to  play  the 
piano  because  I  didn't  want  her  to  disturb  us — and  I  didn't  want  her  to  hear 
what  we  were  saying." 


44 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Oh,  really  ?  "    Ridsdale  smiled,  and  glanced  at  the  closed  door. 
"  A  confidence  !    I  may  trust  you,  mayn't  I  ?  " 
Of  course." 

"  Implicitly,  eh  ?  But  that  goes  without  saying.  I  have  trusted  you  so 
greatly  already,  haven't  I  ?  The  boy — to  consign  him  to  your  guidance. 
Well,  you  know  what  he  is  to  me.  I  couldn't  have  better  shown  the  faith  I 
had  in  you  " 

"  You're  very  kind,  General.    I — I've  done  my  best  with  him." 

"  Exactly.  But — well,  this  isn't  about  the  boy.  It's  about  myself.  I  am 
in  trouble." 

"  Really  ?  " 

"  I  wasn't  honest,  either,  in  my  explanation  of  why  I  came  hurrying  home. 
No,  Ridsdale,  it  wasn't  a  sudden  caprice.    I  had  serious  reasons  for  coming." 

"  Oh,  had  you  ?  " 

"  Yes.  I  am  in  great  trouble."  And  the  General  looked  at  Ridsdale 
keenly,  as  if  seeking  in  his  impassive  face  some  expression  of  sympathy  or 
encouragement ;  then  he  dropped  his  eyes  and  paused  before  he  continued 
speaking.  "  I  wonder  if  I  ought  to  tell  you  ?  Yes,  I  will.  You  are  one  of 
ourselves.  We  have  made  you  one  of  ourselves — something  more  than  an 
acquaintance — a  friend,  eh  ?    Yes*  I'll  tell  you  the  whole  thing." 

"  I  am  all  attention." 

"  Thank  you." 

From  the  other  room  came  the  sound  of  Cynthia's  plaintive  melody,  and, 
half-consciously  listening  to  it,  the  General  seemed  to  have  transferred  its 
wistful  cadence  to  his  own  voice.  His  manner  had  changed  completely.  He 
looked  preternaturally  grave  and  sad,  as  he  sat  frowning  at  the  tablecloth 
and  tracing  a  small  circle  of  its  pattern  with  a  strong  brown  finger,  while  he 
murmured  his  story. 

"  No,  Ridsdale,  what  brought  me  home  was  a  letter — a  warning  letter — 
about  my  wife." 

"  Before  you  tell  me  any  more,  may  I  say  this  ?  As  a  schoolmaster  I 
often  have  to  deal  with  anonymous  letters,  and  my  experience  has  convinced 
me  that  the  only  thing  to  do  with  them  is  just  to  chuck  them  into  the  " 

"  Just  so.    But  this  wasn't  an  anonymous  letter." 

"  No  ?  " 

"  No.  The  writer  is  a  tried  friend — a  person  of  my  own  blood.  I  have 
the  letter  in  my  pocket  here,  but  I  won't  bother  you  to  read  it.  The  warning 
conveyed  was  simple  enough.  It  amounted  to  this  :  I  was  to  guard  my  wife 
carefully  if  I  did  not  want  to  risk  losing  her — because  a  man  was  attacking  my 
peace  and  honour." 

"  Oh,  I  say  " — Mr.  Ridsdale  spoke  indignantly — "  it  would  be  an  insult 
to  Lady  Beckford  not  to  treat  such  a  communication  with  the  absolute  con- 
tempt and  " 

"  But,  my  dear  Ridsdale,"  said  the  General,  sombrely,  ''it  is  the  com- 
munication that  I  have  always  prepared  myself  to  receive,  that  I  have  been 
expecting  to  receive  at  any  hour  in  the  last  few  years." 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


45 


"  Nothing,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  firmly,  "  would  persuade  me  to  suspect 
Lady  Beckford  of  " 

"  No,  no,  of  course  not.    Please  leave  her  out  of  it.    I'm  not  thinking  of 
her.    I'm  thinking  only  of  myself — the  attempted  blow  to  m^." 
You  shouldn't  for  one  moment  believe  " 

"  Why  not  ?  "  said  the  General,  sadly.  "  One  is  vain,  but  there  are 
limits  to  one's  vanity.  One  hopes  just  at  first,  perhaps — but  later  one  begins 
to  think  and  to  understand.  You  know,  with  Cynthia  and  me,  it  was  a  con- 
venient marriage — although  it  wasn't  a  marriage  of  convenience." 

"  Indeed,  no — I  know  that  well." 

"  Regard — and  more  than  regard — entered  into  it.    But  there  was  the 
difference  of  years.    At  my  age  one  has  not  the  adaptability  of  youth  ;  one 
cannot  change  one's  ways,  even  if  one  wishes  to.    So  I  foresaw  that  with  mar- 
riages of  that  sort  a  crisis  sooner  or  later  comes.    Well,  our  crisis  has  come." 
I — I  am  sure  you  are  mistaken." 

"  You  heard  what  she  said  about  Lady  Jane  boring  her.  Well,  /  bore  her. 
Recently  she  has  shown  it  plainly.  In  fact,  that  is  why  I  went  away — not  to 
give  myself,  but  to  give  her,  a  holiday." 

"  My  good  sir,"  said  Mr.  Ridsdale,  earnestly,  almost  irritably,  "  I  can 
assure  you  she  has  spoken  of  you  every  day  in  the  most  affectionate  terms — 
regretting  your  absence,  saying  how  she  missed  you,  and  so  on." 

"  Has  she  ?  "  said  the  General,  with  a  sigh.  "  That  may  have  been  from 
a  sense  of  duty — contrition — ^remorse.  Pity  for  the  old  fogey  whose  presence 
could  but  weary  her." 

He  got  up,  went  to  the  drawing-room  door,  and  opened  it. 
Thank  you,  Cynthia.    Charming  !    Don't  stop  playing.    Please  go  on," 
and  he  shut  the  door  again. 

Ridsdale,  rising  from  the  table  also,  had  gone  to  the  fireplace.  He  pulled 
out  a  cambric  handkerchief,  and  rubbed  the  palms  of  his  hands  with  it.  Then 
he  put  his  hands  in  his  pockets,  and,  standing  with  his  back  to  the  fire,  turned 
towards  the  General,  politely  attentive  to,  if  not  cordially  sympathetic  with, 
the  General's  doubts  and  fears. 

"  Now,  look  here,  Ridsdale,  that's  all  about  it.  I've  given  you  the  facts, 
and  I  ask  you  to  help  me." 

"  Delighted.    But  how  could  I  possibly  " 

"  Help  me  to  find  the  man." 

"  Why,  I  don't  believe  he  exists." 
Oh,  yes,  he  does." 

"  Did  your  friend  give  you  no  hints — of  any  kind  ?  " 

"  None  whatever." 

"  Ah,  just  what  I  thought !  Believe  me,  it's  some  ridiculous  misappre- 
hension." 

"  No  ;  my  informant  is  not  a  fool,  or  a  person  who  supposes  that  I  am 
lightly  to  be  trifled  with." 

The  General's  manner  had  changed  again.  The  sadness  had  gone  from 
his  eyes  and  the  wistfulness  from  his  voice.    Pride  was  the  note  that  sounded 


46 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


now  in  the  carefully  suppressed  voice.  He  squared  his  big  shoulders,  threw 
back  his  massive  head,  and,  indeed,  looked  somebody  who  would  be  extremely 
unlikely  to  be  trifled  with,  either  by  chance  acquaintances  or  old  friends. 

I  am  a  soldier,  and  I  think  as  soldiers  used  to  think  in  the  bygone  days, 
when  we  were  taught  that  we  ought  to  harden  our  thoughts  until  they  become 
as  undeviating  as  instincts.  If  I'm  called  upon  to  guard  and  defend  some- 
thing placed  in  my  charge,  the  thought  of  what  to  do  is  an  instinct — to  go  out 
and  meet  the  danger  half-way.  The  safest  method  of  defence  is  to  deal  promptly 
with  the  enemy  that  threatens.  Now,  where  is  the  enemy  ?  Help  me  if 
you  can.  His  name  has  been  withheld  from  me — ^for  obvious  reasons  " — and 
the  General  snorted  scornfully.  I  am  advised  to  be  moderate,  to  avoid  a 
scandal.  It  was  a  woman  who  wrote  to  me.  It  was  Lady  Jane  " — and  he 
gave  another  snort.  "  She  didn't  want  to  make  mischief — as  she  calls  it — 
and  she  implores  me  not  to  be  old-fashioned.  But  I  am  old-fashioned — I'm 
not  ashamed  of  it  either — so  old-fashioned  that  when  I  have  found  my  man 
I  shall  force  him  to  give  me  satisfaction." 

"  A  duel  ?  " 

"  Yes." 

Mr.  Ridsdale  laughed  deprecatingly. 

"  That's  all  very  well ;  but,  really.  Sir  John,  you  can't  put  back  the  clock 
quite  so  far  as  that.    This  is  1912,  not  1812,  you  know." 
I  don't  care  whether  it  is  or  it  isn't." 

Though  he  did  not  raise  his  voice,  the  General  spoke  with  so  much  intensity 
that  Ridsdale  started. 

"  That  may  be  ;  but — ah — Sir  John,  you  won't  easily  get — ah — other 
people  to  share  your  opinions." 

"  I'll  get  him  to  share  them,  and  that'll  be  enough  for  me.  Ridsdale, 
you're  not  a  woman — you  needn't  take  your  cue  from  Lady  Jane  and  urge 
moderation.    At  least  you  can  guess  at  what  I'm  feeling." 
Yes  ;  but  I  think  without  cause — quite  without  cause." 

"  This  century  or  the  last,  it  must  be  the  same  code  when  things  dearer 
than  life  are  at  stake.  That's  how  I  feel.  So  you  may  guess  if  I'll  follow 
the  mode  of  1912,  and  seek  aid  from  a  private  detective  office,  or  ask  for  repara- 
tion in  a  court  of  law." 

"  No,  I'd  never  suggest  that  you  should.  What  I  beg  you — what  your 
best  friend  of  either  sex  would  beg  you — is  not  to  do  anything  rash,  not  to 
excite  yourself  needlessly." 

In  truth,  General  Beckford  was  exciting  himself.  His  voice  vibrated 
harshly ;  one  could  see  the  immense  effort  required  to  keep  it  at  its  low  pitch. 
He  stared  and  glared,  shook  his  shaggy  hair,  and  looked  altogether  like  some 
grey  old  lion  who  had  been  brought  to  bay  in  a  cruel  hunt,  and  was  ready 
to  spring  upon  his  closest  tormentors. 

"  All  right,  Ridsdale.  But  help  me,  don't  preach  to  me.  There,  I  swear 
I'll  do  nothing  without  thought.  I  have  thought.  I  have  thought  it  all  out. 
Bring  me  face  to  face  with  my  enemy.  I  answer  for  the  rest.  Now,  who  is 
he  ?    We  don't  know  so  many  people,  she  and  I.    Help  me  to  run  over  their 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


47 


names,  or,  better  still,  use  your  brains  on  my  behalf.  She  has  been  more  or  less 
under  your  observation  lately.  You  must  have  seen  her  comings  and  goings 
— the  people  she  was  in  touch  with.    Have  you  observed  anything  suspicious  ?  " 

"  No  ;  nothing  whatever." 

"  Some  too  attentive  visitor  ?  " 

"No." 

It  doesn't  matter."  The  General  shook  his  grey  mane  and  paced  to 
and  fro.  I'll  find  him  unassisted,"  and  he  stopped  abruptly.  "  Ridsdale, 
so  surely  as  I  stand  here,  I'll  find  that  man,  and  compel  him  to  satisfy  me." 

Ridsdale  drew  out  the  cambric  handkerchief  and  passed  it  across  his 
forehead.  Then  he  laughed  lightly.  "  General,  please  forgive  me  for  laugh- 
ing. But  really  when  any  one  is  so  carried  away  by  excitement — well,  you 
yourself  will  laugh  to-morrow  when  you  remember  the  wild  things  you  have 
said  in  your  excitement." 

You  think  that  the  fellow  perhaps  isn't  a  gentleman,  and  that  he  may 
try  to  refuse  ?  " 

"  I  think  that,  whether  he  is  a  gentleman  or  not,  he  will  certainly  refuse 
to  break  the  law  of  the  land  at  your  bidding." 

"  Yes  ;  but  I'm  prepared."  And  the  General  smiled  grimly,  and  spoke 
with  a  kind  of  sly  triumph.  I  shall  ignore  his  refusal.  I  shall  put  a  pistol 
into  his  hand  and  make  him  fight." 

"  I  doubt  it." 

"  An  unloaded  revolver !  Ridsdale,  don't  you  see  ?  I'll  give  him  an 
unloaded  revolver,  with  six  cartridges.  I'll  have  the  same  myself — and  I'll 
begin  to  load.  When  he  sees  me  load  he'll  know  that  he  must  do  something 
if  he  means  to  save  his  skin.  When  he  sees  me  load  my  weapon,  he'll  load  his 
weapon  too.  I  shall  watch  him  as  a  cat  watches  a  mouse.  If  he  raises  his 
arm,  up  goes  mine.  If  he  fires,  I  fire.  We  bang  at  each  other  at  the  same 
moment." 

"  Impossible." 

"  Why  impossible  ?    If  I  get  him  alone  he  can't  help  himself." 
"  He'd  treat  you  as  a  madman — ^give  you  in  charge  to  the  nearest  police- 
man." 

"  Oh,  no,  he  wouldn't.    I'd  get  between  him  and  the  door." 
"  Apart  from  the  fact  that  it  would  be  murder  if  you  succeeded,  you  wouldn't 
succeed." 

"  I  should.  You  don't  know  how  the  pressure  of  immediate  peril  quickens 
people's  movements.  Point  by  point  I'd  press  him  down  the  line  I  meant 
him  to  take.  It's  so  simple — not  a  weak  spot  in  the  infallible  logic  of  the 
thing.    The  clock  would  be  put  back  as  rapidly  as  if  destiny  moved  its  hands." 

Ridsdale  laughed  again,  very  lightly. 

"  Look  here,"  said  the  General,  eagerly,  "  try  it.    You  don't  understand 
what  I  mean.    Let  me  show  you  what  I  mean.    Act  it  with  me." 
"  Act  it  ?    I— I  don't  follow." 

"Rehearse  it.  Let  me  show  you  how  it  works.  We'll  go  through  it  point  by 
point — and  if  you  can  show  me  a  weak  spot,  I'll  thank  you  with  all  my  heart." 


48 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


As  he  spoke,  eagerly  and  enthusiastically,  but  still  almost  in  a  whisper,  the 
General  had  hurried  across  to  the  chair  that  held  his  ugly  leather  bag. 

"  See  here  !  "  He  had  opened  his  bag,  and  the  electric  light  flashed  upon 
the  bright  metal  of  a  pistol.  "  Here — another  one,"  and  the  light  flashed 
again.  "  A  revolver  for  him  and  for  me.  Now  help  me  to  rehearse  the  trick. 
Here.    Take  your  weapon.    You  see  it's  open  at  the  breech." 

He  had  come  to  the  fireplace  and  was  offering  one  of  the  two  revolvers. 

Mr.  Ridsdale  hesitated  about  taking  it.  "  Really,  you  know.  General,  1 
doubt  if  I  ought  to  encourage  you  in  " 

"  Catch  hold.  You're  not  afraid  of  firearms,  are  you  ?  "  And  the  General 
smiled. 

"  No,  of  course  not." 

Mr.  Ridsdale  took  the  pistol,  and  the  General  hurried  across  the  room  to 
the  door  that  led  into  the  hall. 

"  Watch  me  carefully,"  he  whispered.    "  I  am  locking  this  door." 

For  the  second  time  the  aspect  of  the  pleasant,  comfortable  room  had 
altered  ;  the  prettiest  things  in  it  looked  ungraceful,  grim,  forbidding  ;  its 
atmosphere — even  the  air  one  breathed — was  different.  What  was  happening 
in  the  room  seemed  dream-like,  grotesque,  quite  unreal ;  and  this  sense  of 
unreality  involved  one's  perception  of  the  material,  unaltered  world  outside 
the  room.  The  sounds  of  music  floated  towards  one  as  if  from  an  immeasur- 
able distance. 

But  probably  the  queer  notion  of  unsubstantiality  in  surrounding  objects 
was  directly  caused  by  the  strangeness  and  oddness  of  the  General's  antics. 
He  was  no  longer  himself ;  he  was  a  person  acting  a  part — as  it  would  be  acted 
on  a  brilliantly  lighted  stage. 

"  See  !  "  he  whispered,  as  he  came  creeping  back  towards  the  leather 
bag.  "  I  have  manoeuvred  you  into  the  worst  possible  position.  I  have 
cut  you  off  from  escape.    That  door  is  locked.    This  door  I  guard." 

One  could  hear  one's  heart  beating  above  the  far-off  ripple  of  the  music. 

"  Watch  me,"  said  the  General.  "  Never  take  your  eyes  off  my  hands. 
See  !  Here  are  six  cartridges — and  I  put  them  down,  so — on  your  side  of  the 
table."  He  stepped  back  swiftly  and  cautiously.  "  See  !  Here  are  six  cart- 
ridges for  me — on  my  side  of  the  table."  And  he  sprang  away,  to  his  old 
post  in  front  of  the  drawing-room  door.  "It  is  all  fair  play.  I  give  as  good 
a  chance  as  I  take  myself.  We  stand  at  equal  lengths  from  our  ammunition. 
You  follow  it  all,  don't  you  ?    You  catch  my  meaning  ?  " 

Mr.  Ridsdale,  staring  at  his  empty  revolver,  nodded. 

"  Very  well.  Now,  if  you  value  your  life,  prepare  to  defend  it.  See  ! 
I  am  going  to  load." 

The  General's  acting  was  rather  good.  Deriving  stimulus  from  his  natural 
emotions,  he  achieved  some  fine  artistic  effects.  His  flushed  face,  his  bent 
brows,  his  fierce  attitude  and  swift  movements,  indicated  the  determination 
of  implacable  wrath. 

And  Ridsdale,  too,  represented  his  assumed  character  well  enough.  His 
cheeks  were  livid,  his  breath  came  gaspingly,  the  hand  that  carried  the  revolver 


■'  'The  coward  !     she  wailed.    '  The  miserable  cowardi'"  (page  49). 


AN  IMPOSSIBLE  PERSON 


49 


shook  perceptibly — altogether  an  excellent  simulation  of  surprise,  apprehensive 
doubts,  if  not  of  craven  fear. 
One  I  " 

The  General  had  crept  to  the  table,  taken  a  cartridge,  and  was  slipping 
it  into  the  chamber. 

There !  "    he  whispered.    "  Automatically  you  have  done  it  too.  I 
told  you  so.    Wait !    Lift  your  hand  at  your  peril.    My  turn.    Two  !  " 

Ridsdale,  copying  the  General's  slightest  movement,  was  loading  as  the 
General  loaded. 

"  Three  !  That's  it.  Three  left.  When  you  take  the  last,  step  back. 
I'll  not  raise  my  arm  till  you  are  back  on  the  hearth.    I  swear  it.    Four  !  " 

The  music  had  ceased,  but  neither  of  them  noticed.  In  a  silence  broken 
only  by  the  sound  of  panting  respirations,  they  loaded  the  fifth  and  sixth 
cartridges,  and  simultaneously  sprang  away  from  the  table. 

"  Now  !  "  The  General  had  been  the  quicker.  His  arm  was  up.  "  Now 
answer  me."  The  ferocity  in  the  hissing  words  was  terrible  to  hear.  Are 
you  the  man  ?  " 

"  I — I   Upon  my  word,  I — don't  understand  such  folly." 

"  You  blackguard  !  This  is  not  acting."  The  concentrated  passion  behind 
the  words  seemed  to  send  forth  waves  that  struck  one's  beating  heart  with 
flame  and  ice.    "  Now  answer  me,  or — so  help  me,  God  I — I'll  shoot  you." 

Then  the  drawing-room  door  opened.  The  General,  instinctively  dropping 
his  arm  and  turning,  shouted  at  his  wife  : 

"  Go  back  !    Go  back,  I  tell  you  !  " 

There  was  a  blaze  as  if  all  the  electric  lamps  had  exploded,  and  a  crash 
that  seemed  to  shake  the  walls.  Then  again  came  the  flash  and  the  roar. 
Mr.  Ridsdale  had  fired  twice. 

For  a  moment  the  room  was  full  of  smoke.  Then  the  dusty  cloud  rose, 
grew  thin.  The  lamplight,  shining  unimpeded,  showed  General  Beckford 
still  upon  his  feet,  standing  square  and  erect,  with  Cynthia  desperately  clinging 
to  his  breast. 

"  What's  this  ?"  said  the  General,  loudly  and  sternly.  "  Has  the  smoke 
blinded  you,  Cynthia  ?  Why  have  you  come  to  me  ?  Your  place  is  not 
here.    Go  to  your  lover's  arms." 

But  she  clung  to  him  closer.  She  was  stretching  her  slender  figure  to  its 
fullest  height,  trying  to  cover  his  limbs  with  her  limbs,  his  face  with  her  face, 
madly  straining  to  make  a  shield  of  trembling  flesh  large  enough  to  protect 
him  from  danger. 

"  The  coward  !  "  she  wailed.  "  The  miserable  coward  !  He  shot  at  you 
when  you  weren't  looking.    He  tried  to  kill  you  !  " 

"  Then  get  out  of  the  way,"  said  the  General,  "  and  let  him  try  again. 
Can't  you  see  how  you're  hampering  him  ?  This  is  his  chance  and  yours. 
Don't  spoil  it.    Let  him  set  you  free." 

But  Cynthia  only  trembled,  sobbed,  and  clung. 

"  Very  well,"  and  the  General  laughed  harshly.    "  We  have  been  inter- 
rupted, and  my  opponent  must  kindly  understand  that  his  chance  is  gone. 
2* 


50 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Cynthia,  do  you  hear  ?  He  won't  shoot  again.  Now,  stop  whimpering,  and 
answer  me." 

"  Yes,  I  want  to  tell  you  everything." 

"  Is  this  man  your  lover  ?  " 

"  No— no." 

"  But  he  has  endeavoured  to  be  ?  " 
"  Yes." 

"  Then  why  has  he  remained  here  ?  " 

"  I  was  afraid  tp  send  him  away." 
Why  ?    What  were  you  afraid  of  ?  " 

"  You.    I  thought  if  you  knew  you'd  do  something  dreadful." 

It  was  curious,  but  it  seemed  as  if  suddenly  these  two — ^the  husband  and 
the  wife — were  quite  alone.  If  the  man  they  spoke  of  had  been  swept  a 
thousand  miles  from  the  room,  they  could  not  have  disregarded  him  more 
completely  than  they  did  now.  Cynthia  had  linked  her  hands  round  the 
General's  neck  ;  she  was  looking  up  into  his  stern,  unflinching  eyes,  her  voice 
was  strong  and  clear  as  she  answered  each  question. 

"  When  did  he  first  insult  you  ?  " 

"  Two  days  ago." 
But  you  knew  what  he  meant  before  that  ?  " 

"  No,  I  didn't.  I  knew  he  admired  me — and  I  thought  it  rather  amusing  ; 
but  I  never  dreamed  he  would  dare.  And  then,  when  he  did  dare,  I  thought 
if  you  heard  or  guessed  it  would  be  too  dreadful.  I  blamed  myself — yes,  I 
blamed  myself.  But  I  thought  it  was  only  two  days,  and  then  he'd  be  gone 
for  ever — with  no  fuss  and  no  scandal.    My  darling,  don't  you  believe  me  ?  " 

"  Is  there  nothing  else  to  tell  ?  " 

The  General  was  glaring  down  into  his  wife's  eyes. 

"  Before  God,  that  is  all.    Oh,  don't  you  believe  me  ?  " 

"  Before  God,  I  do." 

Very  gently  Sir  John  released  himself  from  the  clinging  hands,  held  one 
of  them  for  a  moment ;  then,  bowing  ceremoniously,  kissed  it. 

"  Mr.  Ridsdale  !  "  His  manner  was  perfectly  calm  as  he  turned  to  the 
ignored  guest,  and  he  spoke  quietly  but  heavily,  with  an  old-fashioned  style 
of  humour  that  was  too  pompous  to  be  quite  successful.  "  My  wife  called  you 
a  coward  just  now  ;  but,  honestly,  I  could  not  apologise  if  she  had  called 
you  a  fool  as  well.  Those  are  blank  cartridges  that  we  have  been  playing 
with.  Oh,  yes,  it  would  have  been  dangerous  otherwise.  But  I'm  always 
careful.  In  fact,  when  I  have  to  deal  with  gentlemen  of  your  kidney,  I'm  almost 
as  afraid  of  firearms  as  you  are  yourself.  And,  a  propos,  the  hall  door  is  open 
I  didn't  really  lock  it." 

Mr.  Ridsdale  silently  crossed  the  room. 
Then  good  night  to  you.    Yates  will  be  back  directly,  and  when  he  has 
packed  your  things,  where  shall  he  take  them  ?  " 

"  Ah — er — say,  the  St.  Pancras  Hotel." 

"  And  I  may  send  your  cheque  to  that  address  ?  Thank  you.  Good 
night  1  " 


The  Veil  of  Flying  Water 

By  Theodore  Goodridge  Roberts 

\st  Canadian  Expeditionary  Force 
I 

In  those  days  an  active  man  could  not  keep  on  friendly  terms  with  every- 
bod}^  If  he  acted  honestly  by  his  own  clan,  or  his  own  village,  he  was  sure 
to  be  in  bad  odour  with  some  other  clan  or  tribe.  So  it  was  with  Walking 
Moose,  a  young  chief  of  that  clan  of  the  Maliseets  that  had  a  white  salmon 
for  its  totem. 

This  Walking  Moose  was  chief  of  a  sub-tribe  that  had  its  habitation  and 
hunting-grounds  far  to  the  west,  within  twenty  miles  of  the  source  of  old 
Woolastook.  Here  the  great  river,  beloved  of  Gluskap  and  his  children, 
which  advances  seaward  so  placidly  throughout  the  latter  half  of  its  course, 
dashes  between  walls  of  rock  and  gloomy  curtains  of  spruce-trees  that  cling 
with  brown,  exposed  roots  that  suggest  the  gripping  fingers  of  giants.  Rapids 
of  twisting  green  and  writhing  white  clang  and  shout  in  its  narrow  valley. 
Here  and  there  are  amber  pools  and  green-black  eddies  ;  here  and  there  a 
length  of  shallows  that  flashes  silver  and  gold  at  noon  ;  and  here  is  that  roar- 
ing place  where  the  river  leaps  a  sheer  fall  of  thirty  feet  in  one  unbroken  white 
curve — the  Veil  of  Flying  Water. 

This  is  a  rough  country,  full  of  shaggy  forests  and  broken  hills  alive  with 
game,  and  swift  water  alive  with  fish  ;  and  in  the  days  of  Walking  Moose 
the  Mohawks  had  their  black  lodges  of  undressed  hides  close  to  its  western 
borders.  The  Mohawks  were  the  age-old  enemies  of  the  Maliseets.  Before 
Walking  Moose  grew  to  manhood  and  power,  the  peace-loving  Maliseets  had 
been  content  to  flee  down  river  and  seek  the  protection  of  the  larger  villages 
whenever  word  came  to  them  that  the  Mohawks  contemplated  a  raid.  Walk- 
ing Moose  was  not  content  to  flee  periodically  from  his  good  hunting-grounds, 
however,  and  so  the  enmity  of  the  raiders  became  bitter  against  him.  Walking 
Moose  hemmed  three  sides  of  his  village  with  a  tangle  of  fallen  trees — the  river 
kept  the  fourth  side — lopped  the  upper  and  outer  branches  of  these  prostrate 
trees  to  within  three  or  four  feet  of  the  trunks,  and  sharpened  the  ends  and 
hardened  them  with  fire.  Also,  he  dug  pits  and  covered  them  with  brush, 
and  set  up  many  sharp  posts  in  unexpected  places.    These  things  were  good, 

51 


52 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


but  Walking  Moose  was  not  satisfied.  He  brought  twenty  families  from  one 
of  the  more  sheltered  villages,  built  lodges  for  them  within  his  defences,  and 
gave  them  equal  rights  of  hunting  with  the  older  villagers.  During  that 
summer  the  Mohawks  came  three  times,  and  three  times  they  went  away 
without  so  much  as  a  scalp  or  a  back-load  of  smoked  salmon.  During  the 
winter  Walking  Moose's  men  were  busy  at  making  shields  and  weapons  ;  and 
late  in  March,  when  the  depths  of  snow  were  covered  with  a  tough  crust,  a 
war  party  of  the  people  of  the  White  Salmon  went  swiftly  to  the  westward  and 
fell  upon  and  destroyed  a  village  of  the  Mohawks.  But  the  only  men  who 
died  at  the  hands  of  the  victors  were  those  who  fell  fighting.  No  prisoners 
were  made  on  that  occasion.  The  women  and  children  were  not  harmed, 
the  lodges  and  storehouses  were  spared.  Only  the  weapons  of  the  warriors 
were  taken. 

"  We  do  not  want  your  food  and  furs,"  said  Walking  Moose,  "  for  we  have 
plenty  of  our  own.  We  do  not  want  your  women,  for  we  have  better  women 
of  our  own." 

Then  he  returned  to  his  own  country,  with  the  victorious  warriors  at  his 
heels.  Some  of  these  warriors  had  to  be  drawn  on  toboggans  ;  a  few  remained 
behind,  their  spirits  sped  to  even  finer  hunting-grounds  than  those  of  their 
nativity. 

Walking  Moose's  first  raid  into  the  land  of  the  Mohawks  made  a  deep 
impression  on  that  warlike  people.  History  contained  no  record  of  an}^ 
previous  outrage  of  the  kind.  In  the  old,  old  days  Gluskap  had  smitten  the 
Mohawks  on  more  than  one  occasion,  so  tradition  said,  but  to  be  smitten  with 
magic  by  a  god  and  victoriously  invaded  by  Maliseets  were  misfortunes  of  a 
very  different  nature.  The  warriors  were  furious,  and  the  insulting  fact  that 
Walking  Moose  had  left  their  lodges  standing,  their  storehouses  full,  and 
their  families  beside  them  added  to  their  fury.  They  bandaged  their  wounds, 
put  their  dead  away,  and  sent  the  only  uninjured  man  of  the  village  to  carry 
the  outrageous  news  westward  and  raise  a  war-party.  But  worse  than  this 
was  planned.  Hawk-in-the-Tree,  the  daughter  of  the  chief  of  the  defeated 
village,  brooded  darkly  over  the  scornful  words  of  Walking  Moose.  His  gaze 
had  been  upon  her  face  when  he  had  said,  "  We  do  not  want  your  women, 
for  we  have  better  women  of  our  own."  Yes,  his  gaze  had  been  fair  upon 
the  face  of  Hawk-in-the-Tree,  and  she  was  the  woman  whom  three  great  chiefs 
wanted  in  marriage,  many  warriors  had  fought  for,  and  Long  Tongue  had 
made  songs  about.  She  sat  in  her  father's  lodge  and  thought  of  the  words 
of  the  young  Maliseet  and  recalled  the  look  in  his  eyes.  Her  slim  hands  were 
clasped  tightly  in  her  lap,  her  small,  sleek  head  was  bowed  demurely,  and  her 
beautiful  eyes  were  upon  the  beaded  hem  of  her  skirt  of  dressed  moosehide. 
A  tender  pink  shone  in  her  dusky  cheeks,  her  red  lips  were  parted  in  a  faint 
smile,  but  there  was  no  mirth  in  her  vain  and  angry  heart. 

Walking  Moose  was  unmarried.  All  his  thoughts  were  given  to  the  pursuit 
of  power — of  power  for  himself  and  his  tribe.  He  was  great  in  the  chase, 
and  greater  on  the  warpath.  His  mind  and  hand  were  at  once  subtle  and 
daring.    Though  he  forgot  the  words  he  had  said  about  the  women  of  the 


"  He  saw  a  girl's  face  looking  timidly  out,  and  a  pair  of  dark  eyes  gazing 
shyly  down  upon  him"  (page  54). 


THE  VEIL  0^^  FLYING  WATER 


5S 


Mohawk  village,  he  remembered  everything  else  that  he  had  said  and  done  on 
that  expedition ;  and  so  he  suspected  that  the  enemy  would  strike  back 
before  long,  with  all  their  strength  and  cunning.  He  sent  swift  runners  down 
river  with  word  of  his  raid  and  victory.  These  returned  after  five  days  with 
a  band  of  daring  young  braves  from  the  more  sheltered  villages  of  the  tribe 
— adventurous  spirits  who  were  attracted  by  the  promise  of  warfare  against 
the  Mohawks  under  a  successful  leader.  Walking  Moose  welcomed  these 
reinforcements  cordially. 

It  was  not  until  all  the  snow  was  gone  from  the  hills  and  the  ice  from  the 
river  that  the  Mohawks  returned  Walking  Moose's  call.  They  had  planned 
their  arrival  for  the  dark  hours  between  midnight  and  dawn,  but  the  sentries 
brought  word  of  their  approach  to  Walking  Moose,  and  so  it  happened  that 
instead  of  their  finding  him  in  his  own  lodge,  he  found  them  in  a  little  valley 
two  miles  distant  from  the  village.  By  dawn  all  the  invaders  had  vanished 
save  those  who  had  lost  command  of  their  legs.  And  the  Maliseets  had  vanished 
from  the  little  valley  also,  on  the  trail  of  the  retreating  Mohawks.  They 
followed  that  trail  all  day  and  half  the  night,  and  at  last  overtook  and  made 
an  end  to  that  war  party.  One  young  man  escaped,  one  whose  lungs  were 
stronger  than  his  heart.  He  carried  word  of  the  disaster  throughout  the 
Mohawk  country. 

Spring  passed  and  summer  came.  The  village  of  which  Walking  Moose 
was  chief  enjoyed  quiet  and  security.  The  warriors  of  the  White  Salmon 
carried  on  their  fishing  in  all  the  swift  brooks  and  rivers,  but  they  kept  their 
shields  and  war  clubs  beside  them,  and  far-sighted  runners  were  on  guard 
in  the  hills,  day  and  night. 

In  the  Mohawk  country  quiet  reigned  also.  But  it  was  a  sinister,  brooding 
quiet.  Big  chiefs  met  and  parted,  only  to  meet  again.  Rage  gnawed  them, 
but  they  were  afraid  to  strike  openly  at  the  strong  village  of  the  Maliseets. 
About  this  time,  Hawk-in-the-Tree  spoke  to  her  father,  standing  modestly 
before  him  with  her  glance  cast  down  at  her  beaded  moccasins. 

"  The  strength  of  that  village  is  all  in  the  head  and  heart  of  Walking  Moose," 
she  said. 

"It  is  so,"  replied  the  chief. 

"  Then  if  death  should  find  him  " 

"  What  death  ?  "  returned  her  father,  testily.  "  The  medicine-men  have 
been  questioned  in  this  matter.  You  are  but  a  squaw,  my  child,  and  cannot 
see  the  truth  of  these  things." 

"  True,  I  am  but  a  squaw,"  returned  Hawk-in-the-Tree,  modestly.  "  But 
will  not  my  father  tell  me  the  words  of  the  medicine-men  ?  " 

So  the  chief  told  her  what  the  wise  ones  of  the  nation  had  said  about  Walk- 
ing Moose.  He  did  not  know  that,  as  usual,  their  wise  words  were  nothing 
more  than  a  clever  fiction  to  mystify  the  warriors  and  retain  the  awe  of  the 
laity  for  the  dark  arts.  To  soothe  the  inj^.red  pride  of  the  chiefs  they  had 
said  that  the  prowess  of  Walking  Moose  was  due  to  magic  ;  that  he  could 
not  be  killed  in  battle,  or  by  the  spilling  of  blood,  or  by  fire  ;  that  starvation 
only  could  kill  him,  and  that  within  bowshot  of  his  own  village.     It  was 


54 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


a  clever  invention.  No  wonder  the  chiefs  and  warriors  were  puzzled  and 
impressed. 

"To  be  starved  within  bowshot  of  his  own  village  ?  "  repeated  Hawk-in- 
the-Tree,  reflectively.  "  Then  he  must  first  be  caught  and  bound — then 
hidden  in  a  place  where  his  warriors  cannot  find  him." 

"It  is  so,"  replied  the  chief. 

Hawk-in-the-Tree  drew  him  into  the  lodge.  The  scornful  words  and 
heedless  glance  of  the  Maliseet  were  hot  and  clear  in  her  memory.  She  talked 
to  her  father  for  a  long  time.  He  smiled  sneeringly  at  first,  but  after  a  while 
he  began  to  nod  his  head. 

II 

Walking  Moose  did  not  devote  all  his  time  in  the  summer  months  to  the 
catching  and  smoking  of  salmon  and  trout.  He  wandered  about  the  country, 
in  seeming  idleness,  but  in  reality  his  brain  was  busy  with  ambitious  plans. 
And  always  his  eyes  were  open  and  his  ears  alert.  He  did  not  expect  another 
attack  from  the  Mohawks  before  the  time  of  the  hunter's  moon,  but  he  con- 
tinued to  place  his  outposts  far  and  near,  and  to  visit  them  at  unexpected 
moments.  Though  his  village  had  doubled  in  size  within  the  year,  and  leapt 
into  fame,  he  was  not  satisfied.  He  wanted  to  drive  the  Mohawks  far  to  the 
westward  and  break  them  so  that  they  would 'never  again  venture  into  the 
fringes  of  the  Maliseet  country,  and  he  dreamed  of  the  day  when  all  the  scattered 
clans  and  villages  of  the  Maliseets  would  name  him  for  their  head  chief. 

One  morning  in  July  he  followed  the  edge  of  Woolastook's  rocky  valley 
for  a  distance  of  about  five  miles  above  the  village,  then  clambered  down 
the  bank  and  crossed  the  brawling  stream — for  at  this  point  old  Woolastook, 
the  father  of  Maliseet  rivers,  was  no  more  than  a  lively  brook.  Beneath  the 
farther  bank  was  a  flat  rock  and  an  amber  pool.  He  laid  aside  his  shield  and 
bow,  and  reclined  on  the  rock  to  dream  his  ambitious  dreams.  So  he  lay  for 
an  hour,  and  the  sunlight  slanted  in  upon  him  and  gilded  his  dreams. 

Suddenly  Walking  Moose  sprang  to  his  feet  and  turned,  his  shield  on  his 
left  arm  and  his  bow  in  his  right  hand.  His  glance  flashed  to  the  over- 
hanging fringe  of  spruce  branches  above  his  head.  He  saw  a  girl's  face  looking 
timidly  out,  and  a  pair  of  dark  eyes  gazing  shyly  down  upon  him.  He  did 
not  know  the  face.    It  was  not  that  of  any  girl  of  his  own  village. 

"  What  do  you  want  ?  "  he  asked,  watchful  for  some  sight  or  sound  to 
betray  the  presence  of  some  hidden  menace. 

Hawk-in-the-Tree  answered  him  in  his  own  tongue,  for  she  had  learned  it 
from  a  prisoner  when  she  was  a  child.  Until  recently,  the  Mohawks  had 
never  lacked  opportunity  of  acquiring  the  Maliseet  language. 

"  I  sometimes  fish  in  that  pool,  chief.  But  I  will  go  away  and  fish  some- 
where else,"  she  replied,  modestly. 

"  Do  not  go,"  he  said.  "  Come  down  and  fish  here  if  you  want  to.  The 
pools  of  the  river  are  free  to  all  honest  Maliseets." 

Without  more  ado,  the  girl  crawled  forward,  turned,  and  slid  down  to  the 
flat  rock  beside  Walking  Moose.    In  her  left  hand  she  held  a  short  coil  of 


THE  VEIL  OF  FLYING  WATER 


55 


transparent  fish-line  made  from  the  intestines  of  some  animal.  Her  small 
face  was  flushed.  She  stood  beside  Walking  Moose  with  downcast  eyes. 
The  young  man  gazed  at  her  with  frank  interest. 

"  You  are  a  stranger,"  he  said.    "  You  do  not  belong  to  my  village." 

She  met  his  glance  for  a  second. 

"  Have  you  ever  seen  me  before,  chief  ?  "  she  asked. 

"  I  am  not  sure,"  he  replied,  puckering  his  brows  in  reflection.  But  I 
know  that  you  do  not  live  in  my  village.  You  do  not  look  like  those  young 
women." 

"  They  are  more  pleasant  of  appearance,  perhaps  ?  " 
He  smiled  at  that. 

"  Perhaps  you  say  the  truth,  but  I  think  your  cheeks  are  pinker  and  your 
eyes  brighter  than  the  young  women  I  know." 
The  girl  turned  her  face  away  from  him. 

"  I  must  fish,"  she  said,  "  else  my  poor  old  grandfather  will  go  hungry." 

Walking  Moose,  feeling  an  interest  that  was  new  to  him,  and  prompted 
by  a  little  devil  that  had  never  troubled  him  before,  dropped  his  bow  and 
put  out  his  hand  and  took  the  coiled  fish-line  from  the  girl.  Their  fingers 
touched — and  he  was  astonished  at  the  thrill  which  he  felt. 

"  You  must  tell  me  who  you  are,  and  where  you  come  from,"  he  said, 
and  his  voice  had  a  foolish  little  break  in  it.  This  vocal  tremor  was  not  lost 
on  the  girl. 

"  I  belong  to  a  small  village  on  the  great  river,  three  days'  journey  from 
here,"  she  said.  "  My  old  grandfather  is  my  only  friend.  His  name  is  Never 
Sleep.  Because  of  his  sharp  tongue  he  became  disliked  by  the  people  of  the 
village,  and  so  we  journeyed  to  this  place,  and  built  a  little  hidden  lodge. 
Never  Sleep  is  very  old,  and  spends  all  his  days  in  brewing  healing  liquors 
from  roots  and  barks.    It  is  my  work  to  keep  the  pot  boiling." 

Walking  Moose  was  impressed. 

"  You  are  a  good  girl  to  take  such  care  of  your  old  grandfather,"  he  said. 
"  But  why  have  you  not  brought  him  into  my  village  to  dwell  ?  " 

"  The  noises  of  a  village  disturb  him,"  she  replied.  "  And  though  his 
heart  is  kind,  his  tongue  is  bitter.  He  fears  no  one  when  he  is  angered,  and 
rushes  out  of  his  lodge  and  calls  people  terrible  names.  He  fears  a  great 
chief  no  more  than  a  giggling  papoose." 

The  young  man  smiled. 

"  Then  it  is  well  that  he  should  continue  to  live  in  quiet,"  he  said.  "  But 
you  have  not  told  me  your  name,"  he  added. 

She  glanced  at  him  swiftly,  and  as  swiftly  away  again,  and  the  glow  deepened 
in  her  cheeks. 

"  My  name  is  poor  and  unknown,"  she  said.  "  It  is  for  mighty  chieftains 
such  as  Walking  Moose  to  give  names  to  their  people." 

At  this  Walking  Moose,  who  planned  greatness  and  fought  battles  without 
disturbing  a  line  of  his  thin  face,  looked  delighted  and  slightly  confused. 

"  Sit  down,"  he  said,  "  while  I  catch  some  fish  for  you  and  your  grand- 
father ;  and  while  I  am  fishing  I  may  think  of  a  name  for  you." 


56 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


The  girl  sat  down,  smiling  demurely.  Walking  Moose  uncoiled  the  trans- 
parent line,  placed  a  fat  grasshopper  on  the  hook,  and  cast  it  lightly  upon 
the  surface  of  the  pool.  He  stepped  close  to  the  edge  of  the  rock  and,  with 
his  right  hand  advanced,  flicked  the  kicking  bait  artfully.  The  sun  was  in 
front  of  him,  so  his  shadow  did  not  fall  upon  the  pool.  Suddenly  there  was 
a  movement  in  the  amber  depths  as  swift  as  light,  and  next  instant  the  grass- 
hopper vanished  in  a  swirl  of  bubbling  water.  The  line,  held  taut,  cut  the 
surface  of  the  pool  in  a  half-circle  like  a  hissing  knife-blade.  The  line  was 
strong,  and  in  those  days  men  fished  for  the  pot  and  gave  little  thought  to 
the  sport.  So  Walking  Moose  pulled  strongly,  to  judge  the  resistance,  then 
took  a  lower  hold  with  his  right  hand  and  gave  a  quick  and  mighty  jerk  on 
the  line.  The  big  trout  came  up  like  a  bird,  described  a  graceful  curve  in 
the  sunlight,  and  descended  smack  upon  the  rock.  He  was  dispatched  in  a 
moment  by  a  blow  at  the  base  of  the  head. 

"  There  is  a  fine  trout  for  your  cooking-pot,"  said  Walking  Moose,  boyishly 
delighted  with  his  success.    "  Now  I'll  see  if  there  is  another  in  the  pool." 

"  But  you  have  not  made  a  name  for  me  yet,"  said  the  girl. 

"  True,"  replied  the  young  man.  "  Catching  fish  is  easier."  He  looked 
shyly  at  the  girl,  then  very  steadily  at  the  gleaming  dead  trout.  "  You  are 
like  a  trout,"  he  said,  with  hesitation.  "  You  are  bright — and  slender — 
and  the  beads  on  your  skirt  are  red  and  blue  like  the  spots  along  the  trout's 

sides.    I  might  name  you  Beautiful  Trout,  or  Little  Trout — but  your  eyes  " 

He  paused  and  glanced  at  her  uncertainly. 

She  did  not  return  his  glance,  but  sat  with  her  head  bent  and  her  hands 
clasped  loosely  in  her  beaded  lap.  Her  hair,  in  two  dusky  braids,  was  drawn 
in  front  of  her  slender  shoulders,  and  hung  down  her  breast. 

"  They  are  not  like  a  trout's,"  he  said.  No,  they  are  not  at  all  like  the 
eyes  of  a  fish." 

"  What  are  they  like  ?  "  she  asked,  her  voice  small  and  shy. 

Walking  Moose  fiddled  with  the  line  in  his  fingers  and  shufiied  his  feet 
uneasily.    "  How  should  I  know  ?    I  cannot  see  them." 

"  But  you  have  seen  them.    Can't  you  remember  ?  " 

"  I  remember.  They  are  like — like  things  that  have  never  been  seen  by 
any  man  alive,  for  they  are  like  black  stars." 

The  girl  laughed,  and  the  sound  was  like  the  music  of  thin  water  flittering 
over  small  pebbles. 

"  Is  Walking  Moose  a  poet  as  well  as  the  conqueror  of  the  Mohawks, 
that  he  makes  a  fool  of  a  poor  young  woman  with  talk  of  black  stars  ?  " 
she  asked,  turning  her  gaze  full  upon  him  for  a  moment  with  a  look  of  tender 
mockery. 

His  heart  expanded,  then  twitched  with  a  pang  of  doubt.  This  mention 
of  the  Mohawks  was  grateful  to  his  vanity,  but  it  was  disturbing  too.  Here 
he  had  been  talking  to  a  girl  and  catching  a  trout,  when  his  mind  should  have 
been  intent  on  plans  against  the  enemy.  He  felt  ashamed  of  himself.  What 
would  be  the  end  of  his  good  fighting  and  great  dreams  if  he  spent  any  more 
time  in  such  foolishness  ? 


THE  VEIL  OF  FLYING  WATER 


57 


"  I  am  not  a  poet,'*  he  said.  A  man  who  pushes  his  shield  between 
the  lodges  of  the  Mohawks  has  no  time  for  the  making  of  songs." 

Already  his  air  was  preoccupied.    Hawk-in-the-Tree  noticed  this. 

"  Or  for  the  making  of  names,  chief,"  she  said.  "  I  do  not  wonder  that 
your  mind  is  uneasy  and  that  fear  tingles  in  your  heart,  for  the  Mohawks 
are  mighty  enemies," 

Walking  Moose  stared  at  her,  then  smiled. 

"  Yes,  they  are  mighty  against  those  who  run  away,"  he  said.  "  The 
hare  that  jumps  from  the  fern  strikes  as  much  terror  in  my  heart  as  all  the 
Mohawks  who  stand  in  moccasins."  He  laughed  softly,  gazing  down  at  the 
amber  water  of  the  pool.  "  But  I  have  a  name  for  you,"  he  added.  "  Shining 
Star  is  your  name  in  my  country." 

Then  he  put  the  line  into  her  hand,  took  up  his  bow  and  shield,  and  crossed 
the  stream.  He  climbed  the  short,  steep  ascent  and  forced  his  way  through 
the  tangled  branches.  So  he  advanced  for  about  ten  yards,  making  a  good 
deal  of  stir.  Then  he  halted,  turned,  and  crawled  noiselessly  back  to  the 
edge  of  the  bank.  He  lay  motionless  for  several  minutes,  peering  out  between 
the  drooping  spruces.  He  had  no  suspicion  of  the  girl,  but  it  was  a  part  of 
his  creed  to  look  twice  and  carefully  at  everything  that  was  new  to  him.  He 
watched  her  bait  the  hook  and  cast  it  on  the  pool.  She  skipped  it  here  and 
there  across  the  calm  surface  ;  and  presently  a  fish  rose  and  took  it,  and  was 
deftly  landed  upon  the  rock  for  his  trouble.  Walking  Moose  was  satisfied 
that  the  girl  had  no  intentions  against  anything  but  the  trout.  He  crawled 
noiselessly  back  through  the  brush,  then  got  to  his  feet,  and  returned  to  the 
bank  without  any  effort  at  concealment.  She  looked  up  as  he  appeared  above 
the  stream. 

"  I  have  come  back,"  he  said,  "  to  accompany  you  to  your  lodge.  I  must 
see  your  grandfather.  Never  Sleep.  It  is  my  duty  as  chief  to  know  all  my 
people  and  the  whereabouts  of  every  lodge." 

The  girl  coiled  the  wet  line  and  took  up  the  two  trout.  Her  head  was 
bowed,  so  the  young  man  did  not  see  the  smile  on  her  red  lips.  It  was  in 
her  thoughts  that  something  more  than  a  poor  fish  had  risen  to  her  hook  ; 
but  Walking  Moose  really  thought  that  he  was  but  doing  his  duty  as  chief 
of  the  clan  of  the  White  Salmon.  As  this  couple  had  come  to  his  country 
from  the  lower  river,  it  was  clearly  his  place  to  know  something  of  their  position 
so  that  he  might  protect  them  in  time  of  need. 

Walking  Moose  climbed  the  steep  bank  first  and  then  reached  down  a 
helping  hand  to  the  girl  whom  he  had  named  Shining  Star.  This  was  an  unusual 
attention  from  a  brave  to  a  squaw.  On  reaching  the  top  the  girl  took  the  lead. 
She  walked  swiftly  and  gracefully,  and  the  twigs  and  branches  that  sprang 
into  place  behind  her  switched  the  warrior  ;  but  so  intent  was  he  in  follow- 
ing this  Shining  Star  that  he  paid  no  attention  to  the  switchings.  She  led 
straight  to  the  south,  over  hummocks,  and  across  open  places  and  tangled 
valleys.  So  for  about  a  mile  ;  and  then  she  halted  and  turned  a  glowing 
face  to  her  follower. 

"  I  must  let  Never  Sleep  know  that  I  am  bringing  a  stranger,"  she  said. 


58 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"or  he  will  be  in  a  terrible  rage.  He  is  not  agreeable  when  he  is  angry.  If 
I  whistle  twice,  he  will  know  that  I  am  not  alone." 

"  He  must  be  an  unpleasant  old  man  to  live  with,"  said  Walking  Moose  ; 
and  because  of  the  foolishness  that  was  brewing  in  his  heart  he  felt  no  suspicion. 
He  stood  inert,  gazing  down  at  Shining  Star's  glossy  head,  while  she  gave  vent 
to  two  long,  shrill  whistles. 

"  That  will  let  him  know  that  a  visitor  is  coming,"  she  said.  It  will 
give  him  time  to  get  a  pleasant  smile  on  his  face." 

This  appeared  to  Walking  Moose  as  the  most  excellent  wit.  Again  they 
advanced,  and  soon  they  came  to  a  little  lodge  of  birchbark  set  in  a  grove 
of  young  firs.  A  faint  haze  of  smoke  crawled  up  from  the  hole  in  the  roof. 
The  door-flap  of  hide  was  fastened  open,  showing  a  shadowy  interior  and  the 
glow  of  a  fallen  fire.  The  girl  laid  her  fish  on  the  moss  beside  the  door,  and 
peered  into  the  lodge. 

"  Walking  Moose,  the  mighty  chief,  has  come  to  see  you,"  she  said. 

"  Walking  Moose  is  welcome  to  my  poor  lodge,"  returned  a  feeble  voice. 
"  Let  him  enter  and  speak  face  to  face  with  old  Never  Sleep." 

The  girl  drew  back  and  nodded  brightly  to  the  chief. 

"  You  go  first,"  said  he,  his  native  caution  flickering  up  for  a  moment. 
"  The  lodge  is  so  dark,  that  I  am  afraid  that  I  might  step  upon  the  old  man." 

She  read  the  reason  for  his  hesitation,  and  the  blood  tingled  in  her  cheeks, 
but  she  entered  without  a  word.  He  paused  at  the  door  for  long  enough  to 
accustom  his  eyes  to  the  dark  within.  He  could  see  no  one  but  Shining  Star, 
and  a  robed,  stooped  figure  seated  on  the  ground.    He  stepped  inside. 

"  The  thong  of  my  moccasin  became  unfastened,"  he  said,  by  way  of  ex- 
plaining his  hesitation  at  the  door. 

A  dry  chuckle  came  from  the  robed  figure. 

"  He  is  a  wise  man  who  halts  and  sets  his  feet  and  eyes  to  rights  at  the 
threshold  of  a  strange  lodge,"  said  the  feeble  voice  of  Never  Sleep. 

Walking  Moose  felt  absurdly  young  and  transparent.  He  stood  beside 
the  fire  and  stared  over  it  at  the  old  man.  He  could  see  little  but  the  living 
gleam  of  the  face  and  a  hint  of  two  watchful  eyes. 

"  What  do  you  want  of  me,  great  chief  ?  "  asked  Never  Sleep. 

"  I  met  your  granddaughter  at  the  river,  where  she  was  fishing,"  replied 
the  warrior.  "  She  told  me  her  story,  and  so  I  came  home  with  her  to  mark 
the  position  of  your  lodge.  All  who  dwell  in  my  country  are  in  my  care.  It 
is  well  for  me  to  know  where  to  find  every  one  of  my  people,  in  case  of  need." 

"  You  will  find  me  of  small  use  to  you  in  time  of  need,"  returned  the  other, 
"  for  I  am  old  and  weak,  and  my  fighting  days  are  over.  Only  in  one  way 
can  I  serve  you,  chief.    I  brew  potent  liquors  for  the  cure  of  all  bodily  ills." 

"It  is  well,"  said  Walking  Moose,  with  a  full  recovery  of  his  usual  manner. 
"  But  you  twist  the  truth  of  my  words.  I  do  not  ask  for  your  help,  old  man  ; 
but  you  and  your  granddaughter  may  need  mine,  some  time.  Brew  your  liquor 
in  peace — and  in  danger  send  word  to  Walking  Moose." 

With  that  he  turned  on  his  heel  and  left  the  lodge. 

Next  morning  found  the  chief  of  the  people  of  the  White  Salmon  again 


THE  VEIL  OF  FLYING  WATER 


59 


reclined  on  the  flat  rock  above  the  amber  pool ;  and  again  his  dreams  of  am- 
bition and  plans  of  warfare  were  disturbed  by  the  girl  whom  he  had  named 
Shining  Star.  Again  she  slid  down  to  the  rock,  with  the  coiled  fish-line  in 
her  hand.  Again  he  took  the  line  from  her  and  caught  a  trout  for  her  dinner. 
So  it  happened  for  six  days,  and  by  that  time  the  dreams  of  Walking  Moose 
were  all  of  Shining  Star  instead  of  ambition.  He  even  made  a  song,  and  it 
seemed  to  please  Shining  Star.  But  of  these  strangers  he  said  nothing  in  the 
village.    It  would  be  time  to  speak  of  them  when  he  had  won  the  prize. 

On  the  seventh  morning  the  chief  waited  on  the  rock  above  the  amber  pool 
for  an  hour.  After  that  he  spent  another  hour  in  walking  up  and  down  the 
bed  of  the  stream  for  a  distance  of  several  hundred  yards  each  way.  He  flushed 
hot  and  cold  with  anxiety. 

"  Has  something  happened  to  her  ?  "  he  asked  of  the  lonely  stream.  "  Or 
have  they  both  gone  away  as  quietly  as  they  came  ?  " 

Unable  to  stand  the  torment  of  anxiety  any  longer,  he  ascended  the  bank 
above  the  pool,  and  set  off  swiftly  towards  Never  Sleep's  lodge.  He  found  the 
old  man  crouched  before  the  door. 

"  The  girl  has  a  fever,"  said  the  old  man.  "  But  I  have  given  her  a  potent 
liquor  that  will  drive  it  out  of  her  blood." 

Such  fear  gripped  the  young  chief's  heart  at  these  words  as  he  had  never 
felt  before.    His  staring  face  showed  it  to  the  sharp  eyes  of  Never  Sleep. 

"  She  rests  quietly  now,"  said  the  old  man.  "  She  must  not  be  disturbed. 
In  the  morning  she  will  be  well,  I  think.  But,  in  the  meantime,  the  pot  is 
empty." 

So  Walking  Moose  went  into  the  forest  to  hunt  for  flesh  for  Never  Sleep's 
cooking-pot.  He  walked  slowly,  for  his  feet  felt  as  heavy  as  stones  when 
turned  away  from  the  lodge  where  Shining  Star  lay  sick.  His  eyes  were  dim, 
and  the  sunlight  on  the  trees  and  the  azure  sky  above  looked  desolate  and 
terrible  to  him.  He  stumbled  as  he  walked.  He  wandered  aimlessly  for  more 
than  an  hour  before  the  thought  returned  to  him  that  Never  Sleep's  pot  was 
empty,  and  that  his  mission  was  to  fill  it.  But  the  thought  flashed  away 
again  as  swiftly  as  it  had  returned,  and  so  he  continued  his  aimless  wanderings. 

"  I  love  that  girl — that  Shining  Star  !  "  he  murmured.  "  I  must  tell  her 
of  it  soon,  in  plain  words — to-morrow,  when  the  fever  is  gone  from  her." 

It  was  close  upon  sunset  when  Walking  Moose  at  last  got  back  to  the  lodge 
of  Never  Sleep.  He  carried  two  young  ducks  at  his  belt.  The  old  man  came 
to  the  door  of  the  lodge. 

"  Has  the  fever  gone  ?  "  whispered  the  chief. 

"  She  still  sleeps,"  replied  the  other.  The  fever  is  passing.  But  you 
are  weary,  my  son.  Drink  this  draught  to  refresh  your  sinews  and  lighten 
your  spirit.  Then  sleep,  and  when  you  awake  you  will  find  that  the  fever  has 
passed  away  from  the  girl." 

Walking  Moose  took  the  stone  cup  in  a  trembling  hand  and  swallowed 
the  bitter-sweet  liquid  it  contained.  Then  he  lay  down  on  the  warm  moss 
beside  the  lodge.  How  light  his  body  felt !  What  beautiful,  faint  music 
breathed  in  his  ears  !    His  lids  slid  down,  but  he  raised  them  with  an  effort. 


60 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  I  must  sleep— for — a— little— "  His  voice  trailed  away  to  silence. 
Again  his  lids  fluttered  down. 

Never  Sleep  stooped  above  him,  but  the  face  was  no  longer  that  of  a  feeble 
old  man,  but  of  the  Mohawk  chief — the  father  of  Hawk-in-the-Tree. 

"  The  liquor  has  done  its  work,"  he  said. 

Then  the  girl  to  whom  Walking  Moose  had  given  the  name  of  Shining  Star 
came  out  of  the  lodge. 

Ill 

Walking  Moose  slept  a  deep  and  dreamless  sleep.    The  Mohawk  bound 
him  at  ankles  and  wrists,  and  then  lifted  him  to  his  massive  shoulders. 
"  Lead  the  way  !  "  he  commanded. 

The  girl  took  up  her  father's  weapons  and  a  long,  tough  rope  of  twisted 
leather,  and  entered  the  forest  behind  the  lodge.  The  big  warrior,  with  his 
limp  burden,  followed  close  upon  her  heels.  They  moved  silently,  through 
deep  coverts  and  shadowed  valleys,  by  an  unmarked,  twisting  way.  The 
sun  slid  down  behind  the  western  spruces  and  twilight  deepened  over  the 
wilderness. 

"  For  such  a  mighty  chief  he  was  wonderfully  simple,"  remarked  the  Mohawk, 
Hawk-in-the-Tree  did  not  reply. 

At  last  they  came  to  the  river  above  the  fall  that  was  called  the  Veil  of 
Flying  Water.  .  The  twilight  had  thickened  to  darkness  by  now  ;  but  these 
two  required  only  a  little  light,  for  they  had  studied  this  part  of  the  river 
and  the  bellowing  fall  night  after  night.  The  man  laid  Walking  Moose  on 
the  ground  and  drew  a  small  canoe  from  under  a  blanket  of  moss  and  bushes. 
He  made  one  end  of  the  raw-hide  rope  fast  to  the  bars  and  gunnels  of  the 
canoe.  He  tied  the  other  end  strongly  to  a  tree  at  the  edge  of  the  bank.  He 
felt  no  uncertainty  as  to  the  strength  and  exact  length  of  the  rope.  Everything 
had  been  tested  ;  the  whole  amazing  deed  had  been  done  before,  as  far  as 
that  had  been  possible  without  the  presence  of  Walking  Moose. 

Now  the  Mohawk  placed  the  canoe  at  the  very  edge  of  the  water  and  lifted 
the  drugged  chief  into  it.  He  fastened  one  end  of  a  shorter  line  around  his 
victim's  body  just  below  the  shoulders  and  under  the  arms.  Then  he  cut 
the  thongs  that  bound  wrists  and  ankles. 

"  He  will  die  of  hunger  within  bowshot  of  his  own  village,"  he  muttered. 

With  the  slack  of  the  long  rope  in  his  hand  he  edged  the  canoe  into  the 
racing  current,  stepped  aboard,  and  let  it  ease  slowly  down  towards  the  top 
of  the  sheer,  out-leaping  fury  of  white  water.  At  the  very  brow  of  the  scream- 
ing slope  the  canoe  hung  for  more  than  a  minute.  Then  it  came  slowly  back 
to  where  the  girl  waited  on  the  shore.  The  big  Mohawk  stepped  out  of  it, 
grinning  broadly.    Walking  Moose  had  vanished. 

The  Mohawk  unfastened  the  rope  and  coiled  it  over  his  arm.  With  the 
girl's  help  he  returned  the  canoe  to  the  little  hollow  and  covered  it  with  moss. 
Hawk-in-the-Tree  stood  behind  him,  trembling.  This  was  her  father  ;  but 
the  young  man  who  now  lay  with  death  above  and  below  and  on  every  side 
— what  of  him  ?    She  had  hated  him  at  one  time.    But  now  


THE  VEIL  OF  FLYING  WATER 


61 


She  held  the  shorter  of  the  two  ropes  of  leather  in  her  hands.  She  made 
a  noose  of  it.  Her  father  stooped  before,  spreading  the  moss  over  the  canoe. 
She  crouched  suddenly,  gripped  his  ankles,  and  jerked  his  feet  backwards, 
from  under  him.    He  pitched  headfirst  into  the  hollow  with  stunning  force. 

IV 

Cold  spray  flying  over  his  face  aroused  Walking  Moose  at  last  from  his 
drugged  sleep.  For  a  little  while  he  lay  still,  too  shocked  and  bewildered 
by  the  quaking  of  the  wet  rock  on  which  he  lay  and  the  roar  and  thunder 
in  his  ears,  to  think  or  move.  He  saw  something  pale,  wide,  and  alive  close 
in  front  and  curving  above  him.  He  put  out  his  right  hand  and  felt  cold, 
dripping  rock  behind  him.  He  put  out  his  left  hand.  Here  was  more  wet 
rock — and  there  the  sharp  edge  of  it — and  space — ^within  a  few  inches  of  his 
side.  He  sat  upright,  and  as  he  gazed  he  remembered  the  liquor  he  had  taken 
from  the  hands  of  Never  Sleep. 

"  This  is  the  work  of  that  old  man  !  "  he  exclaimed.  He  stood  up  on  the 
narrow  ledge  and  raised  his  hand  to  the  dim-lit,  flying  arc.  It  was  struck 
down,  and  his  face  was  dashed  with  bubbling  water.  Then  horror  seized  him, 
and  he  leaned  weakly  against  the  dripping  rock — for  he  realised  that  he  was 
behind  the  Veil  of  Flying  Water,  hemmed  in — in  a  deathtrap. 

Walking  Moose  soon  regained  his  usual  composure.  He  stood  with  his 
back  to  the  dripping  rock,  his  feet  firmly  set  on  the  quaking  ledge,  and  gazed 
calmly  at  the  roof  and  wall  of  thin,  hissing  water.  He  thought  of  the  girl 
to  whom  he  had  given  the  name  of  Shining  Star ;  but  in  a  second  he  put  that 
hateful  vision  from  him.  The  spray  came  up  from  the  boiling  cauldron  under 
the  ledge  and  drenched  him.  He  stared  with  dull  interest  at  the  arching 
water,  and  at  last  decided  that  the  pale  radiance  that  lit  it  was  that  of  the 
moon.  So  the  time  must  be  early  night.  Suddenly  he  was  aware  of  some- 
thing foreign  on  the  luminous  front  of  his  prison.  It  was  a  slender  line  of 
blackness,  sharply  curved,  that  struck  the  veil,  vanished,  and  struck  again 
on  a  level  with  his  eyes.  Spray  flew  when  it  touched.  He  leaned  forward 
and  put  out  his  right  hand.    The  thing  was  of  twisted  leather. 

He  shot  out  his  hand  and  gripped  the  line  firmly.  He  pulled  it  towards 
him.  It  came  half-way,  seeming  to  be  slack  only  at  one  end  ;  then  it  began 
to  straighten  and  draw  strongly  outward  and  upward.  He  advanced  to  the 
very  edge  of  the  rocky  shelf,  still  gripping  the  rope  with  his  right  hand.  He 
stood  on  tiptoe.  Then  he  grasped  the  rope  with  both  hands  and  sprang  through 
the  roof  of  falling  water. 

When  Walking  Moose  felt  the  solid  rocks  under  his  feet  he  loosed  the  grip 
of  his  fingers  and  fell  forward,  exhausted.  Then  the  girl  whom  he  had  named 
Shining  Star  knelt  beside  him  and  raised  his  head  against  her  shoulder. 

The  Mohawk  chief,  recovered  from  his  fall,  looked  out  upon  them  from 
the  bushes.  Then  he  turned  and  went  back  to  his  own  country,  cursing  a 
magic  that  had  not  been  foretold  by  the  medicine -men. 


"Bill  Bailey" 

By  Ian  Hay 

Argyll  and  Sutherland  Highlanders 
I 

THE  COMING  OF  "  BILL  BAILEY  " 

FOU  SALE. — A  superb  S-seated  Biahlement-Odorant  Touring  Car,  12-15  h.-p., 
1907  model,  with  Cape-cart  hood,  speedometer,  spare  wheel,  fanjare  horn, 
and  lamps  complete.  Body  French-grey  picked  out  with  red.  Cost  £S50. 
Will  take  

The  sum  which  the  vendor  was  prepared  to  take  was  so  startHng,  that  to 
mention  it  would  entirely  spoil  the  symmetry  of  the  foregoing  paragraph. 
It  is  therefore  deleted.  The  advertisement  concluded  by  remarking  that 
the  car  was  as  good  as  new,  and  added  darkly  that  the  owner  was  going  abroad. 

Such  was  the  official  title  and  description  of  the  car.  After  making  its 
acquaintance  we  devised  for  ourselves  other  and  shorter  terms  of  designation. 
I  used  to  refer  to  it  as  My  Bargain.  Mr,  Gootch,  our  local  cycle-agent  and 
petrol-merchant,  dismissed  it  gloomily  as  "  one  of  them  owe-seven  Oderongs." 
My  daughter  (hereinafter  termed  The  Gruffin)  christened  it  "  Bill  Bailey," 
because  it  Uwsually  declined  to  come  home  ;  and  the  title  was  adopted  with 
singular  enthusiasm  and  unanimity  by  subsequent  passengers. 

I  may  preface  this  narrative  by  stating  that  until  I  purchased  Bill  Bailey 
my  experience  of  motor  mechanics  had  been  limited  to  a  motor-bicycle  of 
antique  design,  which  had  been  sold  me  by  a  distant  relative  of  my  wife's.' 
This  stately  but  inanimate  vehicle  I  rode  assiduously  for  something  like  two 
months,  buoyed  up  by  the  not  unreasonable  hope  that  one  day,  provided  I 
pedalled  long  enough  and  hard  enough,  the  engine  would  start.  I  was  doomed 
to  disappointment;  and  after  removing  the  driving-belt  and  riding  the  thing 
for  another  month  or  so  as  an  ordinary  bicycle,  mortifying  my  flesh  and  en- 
larging my  heart  in  the  process,  I  bartered  my  unresponsive  steed — it  turned 
the  scale  at  about  two  hundredweight— to  Mr.  Gootch,  in  exchange  for  a  set 
of  new  wheels  for  the  perambulator  Teresa — we  called  it  Teresa  after  our 
first  cook,  who  on  receiving  notice  invariably  declined  to  go — was  immediately 
put  into  working  order  by  Mr.  Gootch,  who,  I  believe,  still  wins  prizes  with  her 
at  reliability  trials. 

62 


"BILL  BAILEY" 


68 


To  return  to  Bill  Bailey.  I  had  been  coquetting  with  the  idea  of  purchasing 
a  car  for  something  like  three  months,  and  my  wife  had  definitely  made  up 
her  mind  upon  the  subject  for  something  like  three  years,  when  the  advertise- 
ment already  quoted  caught  my  eye  on  the  back  of  an  evening  paper.  The 
car  was  duly  inspected  by  the  family  en  bloc,  in  its  temporary  abiding-place 
at  a  garage  in  distant  Surbiton.  What  chiefly  attracted  me  was  the  price. 
My  wife's  fancy  was  taken  by  the  French-grey  body  picked  out  with  red, 
and  the  favourable  consideration  of  The  Gruffin  was  secured  by  the  idea  of 
a  speedometer  reeling  off  its  mile  per  minute.  The  baby's  interest  was  chiefly 
centred  in  the  fanfare  horn. 

My  young  friend,  Andy  Finch — one  of  those  fortunate  people  who  feel 
competent  to  give  advice  upon  any  subject  under  the  sun — obligingly  offered 
to  overhaul  the  engine  and  bearings  and  report  upon  their  condition.  His 
report  was  entirely  favourable,  and  the  bargain  was  concluded. 

Next  day,  on  returning  home  from  the  City,  I  found  the  new  purchase 
awaiting  me  in  the  coach-house.  It  was  a  two-seated  affair,  with  a  precarious- 
looking  arrangement  like  an  iron  camp-stool — known,  I  believe,  as  a  spider- 
seat — clamped  on  behind.  A  general  survey  of  the  car  assured  me  that  the 
lamps,  speedometer,  spare  wheel,  and  other  extra  fittings  had  not  been  abstracted 
for  the  benefit  of  the  gentleman  who  had  gone  abroad  ;  and  I  decided  there 
and  then  to  take  a  holiday  next  day  and  indulge  the  family  with  an  excursion. 


II 

THE  PROVING  OF  "  BILL  BAILEY  " 

Where  I  made  my  initial  error  was  in  permitting  Andy  Finch  to  come 
round  next  morning.  Weakly  deciding  that  I  might  possibly  be  able  to  extract 
a  grain  or  two  of  helpful  information  from  the  avalanche  of  advice  which 
would  descend  upon  me,  I  agreed  to  his  proposal  that  he  should  come  and 
assist  me  to    start  her  up." 

Andy  arrived  in  due  course,  and  proceeded  to  run  over  the  car's  points 
in  a  manner  which  at  first  rather  impressed  me.  Hitherto  I  had  contented 
myself  with  opening  a  sort  of  oven  door  in  the  dish-cover  arrangement  which 
concealed  the  creature's  works  from  view,  and  peering  in  with  an  air  of  intense 
wisdom,  much  as  a  diffident  amateur  inspects  a  horse's  mouth.  After  that 
I  usually  felt  the  tyres,  in  search  of  spavins  and  curbs.  Andy  began  by  removing 
the  dish-cover  bodily — I  learned  for  the  first  time  that  it  was  called  the  bonnet, 
— and  then  proceeded  to  tear  up  the  boards  on  the  floor  of  the  car.  This 
done,  a  number  of  curious  and  mysterious  objects  were  exposed  to  view  for 
the  first  time,  with  the  functions  and  shortcomings  of  each  of  which  I  was 
fated  to  become  severally  and  monotonously  familiar. 

Having  completed  his  observations,  Andy  suggested  a  run  along  the  road. 
I  did  not  know  then,  as  I  know  now,  that  his  knowledge  of  automobilism 
was  about  on  a  par  with  my  own  ;  otherwise  I  would  not  have  listened  with 


64 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


such  respect  or  permitted  him  to  take  any  further  liberties  with  the  mechanism. 
However,  I  knew  no  better,  and  this  is  what  happened. 

I  had  better  describe  the  results  in  tabular  form : — 

12.15.  Andy  performs  a  feat  which  he  describes  as  tickling  the  carbu- 
retter." 

12.16-12.20.  Andy  turns  the  handle  in  front. 
12.20-12.25.  I  turn  the  handle  in  front. 
12.25-12.30.  Andy  turns  the  handle  in  front. 
12.30-12.45.  Adjournment  to  the  dining-room  sideboard. 
12.45-12.50.  Andy  turns  the  handle  in  front. 
12.50-12.55.  I  turn  the  handle  in  front. 

12.55-1.  Andy  turns  the  handle  in  front  and  I  tickle  the  carburetter. 

1-1.5.  I  turn  the  handle  in  front  and  Andy  tickles  the  carburetter. 

At  1.5  Andy  announced  that  there  was  one  infallible  way  to  start  a  re- 
fractory car,  and  that  was  to  let  it  run  down  hill  under  its  own  momentum, 
and  then  suddenly  let  the  clutch  in.  I  need  hardly  say  that  my  residence 
lies  in  a  hollow.  However,  with  the  assistance  of  The  Gruffin,  we  manfully 
trundled  our  superb  1907  Diablement-Odorant  out  of  the  coach-house,  and 
pushed  it  up  the  hill  without  mishap,  if  I  except  two  large  dents  in  the  back 
of  the  body,  caused  by  the  ignorance  of  my  daughter  that  what  looks  like  solid 
timber  may  after  all  be  only  hollow  aluminium. 

We  then  turned  the  car,  climbed  on  board,  and  proceeded  to  descend  the 
hill  by  the  force  of  gravity.  Bill  Bailey  I  must  say  travelled  beautifully, 
despite  my  self-appointed  chauffeur's  efforts  to  interfere  with  his  movements 
by  stamping  on  pedals  and  manipulating  levers.  Absorbed  with  these  exercises, 
Andy  failed  to  observe  the  imminence  of  our  destination,  and  we  reached  the 
foot  of  the  hill  at  a  good  twenty-five  miles  an  hour,  the  back  wheels  locked 
fast  by  a  belated  but  whole-hearted  application  of  the  hand-brake.  How- 
ever, the  collision  with  the  confines  of  my  estate  was  comparatively  gentle, 
and  we  soon  disentangled  the  head-light  from  the  garden  hedge. 

The  engine  still  failed  to  exhibit  any  signs  of  life. 

At  this  point  my  wife,  who  had  been  patiently  sitting  in  the  hall  wearing 
a  new  motor-bonnet  for  the  best  part  of  two  hours,  came  out  and  suggested 
that  we  should  proclaim  a  temporary  truce  and  have  lunch. 

At  2.30  we  returned  to  the  scene  of  operations.  Having  once  more  tickled 
the  now  thoroughly  depressed  carburetter  to  the  requisite  pitch  of  hilarity, 
Andy  was  on  the  point  of  resuming  operations  with  the  starting-handle,  when 
I  drew  his  attention  to  a  small  stud-like  affair  sliding  across  a  groove  in  the 
dash-board. 

"  I  think,"  I  remarked,  "  that  that  is  the  only  thing  on  the  car  which  you 
haven't  fiddled  with  as  yet.    Supposing  I  push  it  across  ?  " 

Andy,  I  was  pleased  to  observe,  betrayed  distinct  signs  of  confusion.  Re- 
covering quickly,  he  protested  that  the  condemned  thing  was  of  no  particular 
use,  but  I  could  push  it  across  if  I  liked. 

I  did  so.  Next  moment,  after  three  deafening  but  encouraging  back- 
fires, Bill  Bailey's  engine  came  to  life  with  a  roar,  and  the  car  proceeded  rapidly 


"BILL  BAILEY" 


65 


backwards  down  the  road,  Andy,  threaded  through  the  spare  wheel  Uke  a 
camel  in  a  needle's  eye,  slapping  down  pedals  with  one  hand  and  clutching 
at  the  steering-gear  with  the  other. 

"  Who  left  the  reverse  in  ?  "  he  panted,  when  the  car  had  at  length  been 
brought  to  a  standstill  and  the  engine  stopped. 

No  explanation  was  forthcoming,  but  I  observed  the  scared  and  flushed 
countenance  of  my  daughter  peering  apprehensively  round  the  coach-house 
door,  and  drew  my  own  conclusions. 

Since  Bill  Bailey  was  obviously  prepared  to  atone  for  past  inertia  by  frenzied 
activity,  our  trial  trip  now  came  within  the  sphere  of  possibility.  My  wife 
had  by  this  time  removed  her  bonnet,  and  flatly  declined  to  accompany  us, 
alleging  somewhat  unkindly  that  she  was  expecting  friends  to  tennis  at  the 
end  of  the  week.  The  Gruffin,  however,  would  not  be  parted  from  us,  and 
presently  Bill  Bailey,  with  an  enthusiastic  but  incompetent  chauffeur  at  the 
wheel,  an  apprehensive  proprietor  holding  on  beside  him,  and  a  touzled  long- 
legged  hoyden  of  twelve  clinging  grimly  to  the  spider-seat  behind,  clanked 
majestically  out  of  the  garden  gate  and  breasted  the  slope  leading  to  the  main 
road. 

Victory  at  last !  This  was  life  !  This  was  joy  !  I  leaned  back  and  took 
a  full  breath.  The  Gruffin,  protruding  her  unkempt  head  between  mine  and 
Andy's,  shrieked  out  a  hope  that  we  might  encounter  a  load  of  hay  en  route. 
It  was  so  lucky,  she  said.    She  was  not  disappointed. 

From  the  outset  it  was  obvious  that  the  money  expended  upon  the  fanfare 
horn  had  been  thrown  away.  No  fanfare  could  have  advertised  Bill  Bailey's 
approach  more  efficaciously  than  Bill  himself.  He  was  his  own  trumpeter. 
Whenever  we  passed  a  roadside  cottage  we  found  frantic  mothers  garnering 
stray  children  into  doorways,  what  time  the  fauna  of  the  district  hastily  took 
refuge  in  ditches  or  behind  hedges. 

Still,  all  went  well,  as  they  say  in  reporting  railway  disasters,  until  we 
had  travelled  about  four  miles,  when  the  near-side  front  wheel  settled  down 
with  a  gentle  sigh  upon  its  rim,  and  the  tyre  assumed  a  plane  instead  of  a 
cylindrical  surface.  Ten  minutes'  strenuous  work  with  a  pump  restored  it 
to  its  former  rotundity,  and  off  we  went  again  at  what  can  only  be  described 
as  a  rattling  pace. 

After  another  mile  or  so  I  decided  to  take  the  helm  myself,  not  because 
I  thought  I  could  drive  the  car  well,  but  because  I  could  not  conceive  how  any 
one  could  drive  it  worse  than  Andy. 

I  was  wrong. 

Still,  loads  of  hay  are  proverbially  soft ;  and  since  the  driver  of  this  one 
continued  to  slumber  stertorously  upon  its  summit  even  after  the  shock  of 
impact,  we  decided  not  to  summon  a  fellow-creature  from  dreamland  for 
the  express  purpose  of  distressing  him  with  unpleasant  tidings  on  the  sub- 
ject of  the  paint  on  his  tail-board.  So,  cutting  loose  from  the  wreck,  we  silently 
stole  away,  if  the  reader  will  pardon  the  expression. 

It  must  have  been  about  twenty  minutes  later,  I  fancy,  that  the  gear-box 
fell  off.  Personally  I  should  never  have  noticed  our  bereavement,  for  the 
8 


66 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


din  indigenous  to  Bill  Bailey's  ordinary  progress  was  quite  sufficient  to  allow 
a  margin  for  such  extra  items  of  disturbance  as  the  sudden  exposure  of  the 
gear-wheels.  A  few  jets  of  a  black  and  glutinous  compound,  which  I  after- 
wards learned  to  recognise  as  gear-oil,  began  to  spout  up  through  cracks  in 
the  flooring,  but  that  was  all.  It  was  The  Gruffin  who,  from  her  retrospective 
coign  of  vantage  in  the  spider-seat,  raised  the  alarm  of  a  heavy  metallic  body 
overboard.  We  stopped  the  car,  and  the  gear-box  was  discovered  in  a  dis- 
integrated condition  a  few  hundred  yards  back  ;  but  as  none  of  us  was  capable 
of  restoring  it  to  its  original  position,  and  as  Bill  Bailey  appeared  perfectly 
prepared  to  do  without  it  altogether,  we  decided  to  go  on  in  statu  quo. 

The  journey,  I  rejoice  to  say,  was  destined  not  to  conclude  without  wit- 
nessing the  final  humiliation  and  exposure  of  Andy  Finch.  We  had  pumped 
up  the  leaky  tyre  three  times  in  about  seven  miles,  when  Andy,  struck  by 
a  brilliant  idea,  exclaimed  : 

"  What  mugs  we  are !  What  is  the  good  of  a  Stepney  wheel  if  you  don't 
use  it  ?  " 

A  trifle  ashamed  of  our  want  of  resource,  we  laboriously  detached  the 
Stepney  from  its  moorings  and  trundled  it  round  to  the  proper  side  of  the  car. 
I  leaned  it  up  against  its  future  partner  and  then  stepped  back  and  waited.  So 
did  Andy.    The  Gruffin,  anxious  to  learn,  edged  up  and  did  the  same. 

There  was  a  long  pause. 

''Go  ahead,"  I  said  encouragingly,  as  my  young  friend  merely  continued 
to  regard  the  wheel  with  a  mixture  of  embarrassment  and  malevolence.  "  I 
want  to  see  how  these  things  are  put  on." 

"It's  quite  easy,"  said  Andy  desperately.  *'  You  just  hold  it  up  against 
the  wheel  and  clamp  it  on." 

"  Then  do  it,"  said  I. 

"  Yes,  do  it !  "  said  my  loyal  daughter  ferociously.  With  me  she  was 
determined  not  to  spare  the  malefactor. 

A  quarter  of  an  hour  later  we  brought  out  the  pump,  and  I  once  more 
inflated  the  leaky  tyre,  while  Andy  endeavoured  to  replace  the  Stepney  wheel 
in  its  original  resting-place  beside  the  driver's  seat.  Even  now  the  tale  of 
his  incompetence  was  not  complete. 

"  This  blamed  Stepney  won't  go  back  into  its  place,"  he  said  plaintively. 
"  I  fancy  one  of  the  clip  things  must  have  dropped  off.  It's  rather  an  old- 
fashioned  pattern,  this  of  yours.  I  think  we  had  better  carry  it  back  loose. 
After  all,"  he  added  almost  tearfully,  evading  my  daughter's  stony  eye,  "  it 
doesn't  matter  how  you  carry  the  thing,  so  long  " 

He  withered  and  collapsed.  Ultimately  we  drove  home  with  The  Gruffin 
wearing  the  Stepney  wheel  round  her  waist,  lifebuoy  fashion.  On  reaching 
home  I  sent  for  Mr.  Gootch  to  come  and  take  Bill  Bailey  away  and  put  him 
into  a  state  of  efficiency.  Then  I  explained  to  Andy,  during  a  most  con- 
soling ten  minutes,  exactly  what  I  thought  of  him  as  a  mechanic,  a  chauffeur, 
and  a  fellow-creature. 


"BILL  BAILEY' 


67 


III 

THE  PASSING  OF  "  BILL  BAILEY  " 

It  is  a  favourite  maxim  of  my  wife's  that  any  woman  can  manage  any 
man,  provided  she  takes  the  trouble  to  thoroughly  understand  him,  (The 
italics  and  split  infinitive  are  hers.)  This  formula,  I  soon  found,  is  capable 
of  extension  to  the  relations  existing  between  a  motor-car  and  its  owners. 
Bill  Bailey  and  I  soon  got  to  understand  one  another  thoroughly.  He  was 
possessed  of  what  can  only  be  described  as  an  impish  temperament.  He  seemed 
to  know  by  instinct  what  particular  idiosyncrasy  of  his  would  prove  most 
exasperating  at  a  given  moment,  and  he  varied  his  repertoire  accordingly. 
On  the  other  hand,  he  never  wasted  his  energies  upon  an  unprofitable  occasion. 
For  instance,  he  soon  discovered  that  I  had  not  the  slightest  objection  to  his 
back-firing  in  a  quiet  country  road.  Consequently  he  reserved  that  stunning 
performance  for  a  crowded  street  full  of  nervous  horses.  He  nearly  always 
broke  down  when  I  took  critical  or  expert  friends  for  an  outing  ;  and  the 
only  occasions  which  ever  roused  him  to  high  speed  were  those  upon  which  I 
was  driving  alone,  having  dispatched  the  rest  of  the  family  by  train  to  ensure 
their  safe  arrival. 

Gradually  I  acquired  a  familiarity  with  most  of  the  complaints  from  which 
Bill  Bailey  suffered — and  their  name  was  legion,  for  they  were  many — together 
with  the  symptoms  which  heralded  their  respective  recurrences.  In  this 
connection  I  should  like  to  set  down,  for  the  benefit  of  those  who  may  at  any 
time  find  themselves  in  a  similar  position,  a  few  of  the  commonest  causes 
of  cessation  of  activity  in  a  motor-car,  gradual  or  instantaneous,  temporary 
or  permanent : — 

A,  Breakdowns  on  the  part  of  the  engine.    These  may  be  due  to — 

(1)  Absence  of  petroL  (Usually  discovered  after  the  entire  car  has 
been  dismantled.) 

(2)  Presence  of  a  foreign  body.  E.g.,  a  Teddy  Bear  in  the  water- 
pump.  (How  it  got  there  I  cannot  imagine.  The  animal  was  a  present 
from  the  superstitious  Grufiin,  and  in  the  role  of  Mascot  adorned  the 
summit  of  the  radiator.  It  must  have  felt  dusty  or  thirsty,  and  dropped 
in  one  day  when  the  cap  was  off.) 

(3)  Things  in  their  wrong  places.  E.g.,  water  in  the  petrol-tank  and 
petrol  in  the  water-tank.  This  occurred  on  the  solitary  occasion  upon 
which  I  entrusted  The  Grufiin  with  the  preparation  of  the  car  for  an 
afternoon's  run. 

(4)  Loss  of  some  essential  portion  of  the  mechanism.  {E.g.,  the  car- 
buretter.) A  minute  examination  of  the  road  for  a  few  hundred  yards 
back  will  usually  restore  it. 

B.  Intermediate  troubles. 

By  this  I  mean  troubles  connected  with  the  complicated  apparatus  which 
harnesses  the  engine  to  the  car — the  clutch,  the  gears,  the  driving-shaft,  etc. 
Of  these  it  is  sufficient  to  speak  briefly. 

(1)  The  Clutch.    This  may  either  refuse  to  go  in  or  refuse  to  come 


68 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


out.  In  the  first  case  the  ear  cannot  be  started,  and  in  the  second  it 
cannot  be  stopped.  The  former  contingency  is  humiliating,  the  latter 
expensive. 

(2)  The  Gears.  These  have  a  habit  of  becoming  entangled  with  one 
another.  Persons  in  search  of  a  novel  sensation  are  recommended  to 
try  getting  the  live  axle  connected  simultaneously  with  the  top  speed 
forward  and  the  reverse. 

(3)  The  Driving-Shaft.  The  front  end  of  this  is  comparatively  in- 
telligible, but  the  tail  is  shrouded  in  mystery.  It  merges  into  a  thing 
called  the  Differential.  I  have  no  idea  what  this  is.  It  is  kept  securely 
concealed  in  a  sort  of  Bluebeard's  chamber  attached  to  the  back-axle. 
Inquiries  of  mine  as  to  its  nature  and  purpose  were  always  greeted  by 
Mr.  Gootch  with  amused  contempt  or  genuine  alarm,  according  as  I 
merely  displayed  curiosity  on  the  subject,  or  expressed  a  desire  to  have 
the  axle  laid  bare. 

C.  Trouble  with  the  car.    (With  which  is  incorporated  trouble  w^ith  the 
brakes  and  steering  apparatus.) 
It  must  not  be  imagined  that  the  car  will  necessarily  go  because  the  engine 
is  running.    One  of  the  wheels  may  refuse  to  go  round,  possibly  because — 

(1)  You  have  omitted  to  take  the  brake  off. 

(2)  Something  has  gone  wrong  with  the  differential.  (I  have  no 
further  comment  to  offer  on  this  head.) 

(3)  It  has  just  dropped  off.    (N.B.  This  only  happened  once.) 

After  a  time,  then,  I  was  able  not  merely  to  foretell  the  coming  of  one  of 
Bill  Bailey's  periods  of  rest  from  labour,  but  to  diagnose  the  cause  and  make 
up  a  prescription. 

If  the  car  came  to  a  standstill  for  no  outwardly  perceptible  reason,  I  removed 
the  bonnet  and  took  a  rapid  inventory  of  Bill's  most  vital  organs,  sending 
The  Gruffin  back  along  the  road  at  the  same  time,  with  instructions  to  retrieve 
anything  of  a  metallic  nature  which  she  might  discover  there. 

When  Bill  Bailey  without  previous  warning  suddenly  charged  a  hedge 
or  passing  pedestrian,  or  otherwise  exhibited  a  preference  for  the  footpath 
as  opposed  to  the  roadway,  I  gathered  that  the  steering-gear  had  gone  wrong 
again.  The  Gruffin,  who  had  developed  an  aptness  for  applied  mechanics 
most  unusual  in  her  sex,  immediately  produced  from  beneath  the  seat  a  suit 
of  blue  overalls  of  her  own  construction,  of  which  she  was  inordinately  proud 
— I  hope  I  shall  be  able  to  dress  her  as  cheaply  in  ten  years'  time — and  pro- 
ceeded to  squirm  beneath  the  car.  Here,  happy  as  a  queen,  she  lay  upon  her 
back  on  the  dusty  road,  with  oil  and  petrol  dripping  in  about  equal  proportions 
into  her  wide  grey  eyes  and  open  mouth,  adjusting  a  bit  of  chronically  refractory 
worm-and-wheel  gear  which  I,  from  reasons  of  embonpoint  and  advancing  years, 
found  myself  unable  to  reach. 

Finally,  if  my  nose  was  assailed  by  a  mingled  odour  of  blistering  paint, 
melted  indiarubber,  and  frizzling  metal,  I  deduced  that  the  cooling  apparatus 
had  gone  wrong,  and  that  the  cylinders  were  red-hot.    The  petrol  tap  was 


"BILL  BAILEY 


69 


hurriedly  turned  off,  and  The  Gruffin  and  I  retired  gracefully,  but  without 
undue  waste  of  time,  to  a  distance  of  about  fifty  yards,  where  we  sat  down 
behind  the  highest  and  thickest  wall  available,  and  waited  for  a  fall  of  tem- 
perature, a  conflagration,  or  an  explosion,  as  the  case  might  be. 

Bill  Bailey  remained  in  my  possession  for  nearly  two  years.  During  that 
time  he  covered  three  thousand  miles,  consumed  more  petrol  and  oil  than  I 
should  have  thought  possible,  ran  through  two  sets  of  tyres,  and  cost  a  sum 
of  money  in  repairs  which  would  have  purchased  a  small  steam  yacht. 

There  were  moments  when  I  loved  him  like  a  brother  ;  others,  more  frequent, 
when  he  was  an  offence  to  my  vision.  The  Gruffin,  on  the  other  hand,  having 
fallen  in  love  with  him  on  sight,  worshipped  him  with  increasing  ardour  and 
true  feminine  perversity  the  dingier  and  more  repulsive  he  grew. 

Not  that  we  had  not  our  great  days.  Once  we  overtook  and  inadvertently 
ran  over  a  hen — an  achievement  which,  while  it  revolted  my  humanitarian 
instincts  and  filled  the  radiator  with  feathers,  struck  me  as  dirt  cheap  at  half 
a  crown.  Again,  there  was  the  occasion  upon  which  we  were  caught  in  a 
police-trap.  Never  had  I  felt  so  proud  of  Bill  Bailey  as  when  I  stood  in  the 
dock  listening  to  a  policeman's  Homeric  description  of  our  flight,  over  a  measured 
quarter  of  a  mile.  At  the  end  of  the  recital,  despite  my  certain  knowledge 
that  Bill's  limit  was  about  twenty-three  miles  an  hour,  I  felt  that  I  must  in 
common  fairness  enter  him  at  Brooklands  next  season.  The  Gruffin,  who 
came  to  see  me  through,  afterwards  assured  her  mother  that  I  thanked  the 
Magistrate  who  fined  me  and  handed  my  accusing  angel  five  shillings. 

But  there  was  another  side  to  the  canvas.  Many  were  the  excursions 
upon  which  we  embarked,  only  to  tramp  home  in  the  rain  at  the  end  of  the 
day,  leaving  word  at  Mr.  Gootch's  to  send  out  and  tow  Bill  Bailey  home. 
Many  a  time,  too,  have  Bill  and  I  formed  the  nucleus  of  an  interested  crowd 
in  a  village  street.  Bill  inert  and  unresponsive,  while  I,  perspiring  vigorously 
and  studiously  ignoring  inquiries  as  to  whether  I  could  play  "  The  Merry  Widow 
Waltz,"  desolately  turned  the  starting-handle,  to  evoke  nothing  more  than 
an  inferior  hurdy-gurdy  melody  syncopated  by  explosions  at  irregular  inter- 
vals. Once,  too,  when  in  a  fit  of  overweening  presumption  I  essayed  to 
drive  across  London,  we  broke  down  finally  and  completely  exactly  opposite 
"  The  Angel  "  at  Islington,  where  Bill  Bailey,  with  his  back  wheels  locked 
fast  in  some  new  and  incomprehensible  manner, — another  vagary  of  the 
differential,  I  suppose, — despite  the  urgent  appeals  of  seven  policemen,  in- 
numerable errand-boys,  and  the  drivers,  conductors,  and  passengers  of  an  in- 
creasing line  of  London  County  Council  electric  tramcars,  stood  his  ground 
in  the  fairway  for  nearly  a  quarter  of  an  hour.  Finally,  he  was  lifted  up  and 
carried  bodily,  by  a  self-appointed  Committee  of  Public  Safety,  to  the  side 
of  the  road,  to  be  conveyed  home  in  a  trolley. 

But  all  flesh  is  as  grass.  Bill  Bailey's  days  drew  to  an  end.  The  French- 
grey  in  his  complexion  was  becoming  indistinguishable  from  the  red  ;  his 
joints  rattled  like  dry  bones ;  his  fanfare  horn  was  growing  asthmatic.  Old  age 
was  upon  him,  and  I,  with  the  ingratitude  of  man  to  the  faithful  servant  who 


70 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


has  outlived  his  period  of  usefulness,  sold  him  to  Mr.  Gootch  for  fifteen  sove- 
reigns and  a  small  lady's  bicycle. 

Only  The  Gruffin  mourned  his  passing.  She  said  little,  but  accepted  the 
bicycle  (which  I  had  purchased  for  her  consolation)  with  becoming  meekness. 

At  ten  o'clock  on  the  night  before  Bill  Bailey's  departure — he  was  to  be 
sent  for  early  in  the  morning — the  nurse  announced  with  some  concern  that 
Miss  Alethea  (The  Gruffin)  was  not  in  her  bed.  She  was  ultimately  discovered 
in  the  coach-house,  attired  in  a  pink  dressing-gown  and  bath  slippers.  She 
was  kneeling  with  her  arms  round  as  much  of  Bill  Bailey  as  they  could  encom- 
pass ;  her  long  hair  flowed  and  rippled  over  his  scratched  and  dinted  bonnet ; 
and  she  was  crying  as  if  her  very  heart  would  break. 

IV 

"  BILL  BAILEY  "  COMES  AGAIN 

A  year  later  I  bought  a  new  car.  It  possessed  four  cylinders  and  an  in- 
numerable quantity  of  claims  to  perfection.  The  engine  would  start  at  the 
pressure  of  a  button  ;  the  foot-brake  and  accelerator  never  became  involved 
in  an  unholy  alliance  ;  it  could  climb  any  hill ;  and  outlying  portions  of  its 
anatomy  adhered  faithfully  to  the  parent  body.  Pedestrians  and  domestic 
animals  no  longer  took  refuge  in  ditches  at  our  approach.  On  the  contrary, 
we  charmed  them  like  Orpheus  with  his  lute  ;  for  the  sound  of  our  engine 
never  rose  above  a  sleek  and  comfortable  purr,  while  the  note  of  the  horn 
suggested  the  first  three  bars  of  "  Onward,  Christian  Soldiers  !  " 

My  wife  christened  the  new  arrival  The  Greyhound,  but  The  Gruffin,  faith- 
ful to  the  memory  of  the  late  lamented  Bill  Bailey,  never  referred  to  it  as  any- 
thing but  The  Egg-Boiler.  This  scornful  denotation  found  some  justification 
in  the  car's  ornate  nickel-plated  radiator,  whose  curving  sides  and  domed  top 
made  up  a  far-away  resemblance  to  the  heavily  patented  and  highly  explosive 
contrivance  which  daily  terrorised  our  breakfast-table. 

Of  Bill  Bailey's  fate  we  knew  little,  but  since  Mr.  Gootch  once  informed  us 
with  some  bitterness  that  he  had  had  to  sell  him  to  a  Scotchman,  we  gathered  that, 
for  once  in  his  life,  our  esteemed  friend  had  "  bitten  off  more  than  he  could  chew." 

The  Greyhound,  though  a  sheer  delight  as  a  vehicle,  was  endowed  with  some- 
what complicated  internal  mechanism,  and  I  was  compelled  in  consequence 
to  retain  the  services  of  a  skilled  chauffeur,  a  Mr.  Richards,  who  very  properly 
limited  my  dealings  with  the  car  to  ordering  it  round  when  I  thought  I  should 
be  likely  to  get  it.  Consequently  my  connection  with  practical  mechanics 
came  to  an  end,  and  henceforth  I  travelled  with  my  friends  in  the  back  seat. 
The  Gruffin  keeping  Mr.  Richards  company  in  front,  and  goading  that  exclusive 
and  haughty  menial  to  visible  annoyance  by  her  supercilious  attitude  towards 
the  new  car. 

Finally  Ave  decided  on  a  motor  trip  to  Scotland.  There  was  a  luggage- 
carrier  on  the  back  of  the  car  which  was  quite  competent  to  contain  my  wife's 
trunk  and  my  own  suit-case.  The  Gruffin,  who  was  not  yet  of  an  age  to  trouble 
about  her  appearance,  carried  her  batterie  de  toilette  in  a  receptacle  of  her  own, 


BILL  BAILEY" 


71 


which  shared  the  front  seat  with  its  owner,  and  served  the  additional  purpose 
of  keeping  The  Gruffin's  sHm  person  more  securely  wedged  therein. 

We  joined  the  car  at  Carlisle,  and  drove  the  first  day  to  Stirling.  On  the 
second  the  weather  broke  down,  and  we  ploughed  our  way  through  Perth 
and  the  Pass  of  Killiecrankie  to  Inverness  in  a  blinding  Scotch  mist.  The 
Greyhound  behaved  magnificently,  and  negotiated  the  Spittal  of  Glenshee 
and  other  notorious  nightmares  of  the  bad  hill-climber  in  a  manner  which 
caused  me  to  refer  slightingly  to  what  might  have  happened  had  we  entrusted 
our  fortunes  to  Bill  Bailey.  The  Gruffin  tossed  back  to  me  over  her  shoulder 
a  recommendation  to  touch  wood. 

Next  day  broke  fine  and  clear,  and  we  rose  early,  for  we  intended  to  run 
right  across  Scotland.  I  ate  a  hearty  breakfast,  inwardly  congratulating 
myself  upon  not  having  to  accelerate  its  assimilation  by  performing  calisthenic 
exercises  upon  a  starting-handle  directly  afterwards.  At  ten  o'clock  The 
Greyhound  slid  round  to  the  hotel  door,  and  we  embarked  upon  our  journey. 
Infatuated  by  long  immunity  from  disaster,  I  dispatched  a  telegram  to  an 
hotel  fifty  miles  away,  ordering  luncheon  at  a  meticulously  definite  hour, 
and  another  to  our  destination — a  hospitable  shooting-box  on  the  west  coast — 
mentioning  the  exact  moment  at  which  we  might  be  expected. 

Certainly  we  were  "  asking  for  it,"  as  my  Cassandra-like  offspring  did  not 
fail  to  remark.  But  for  a  while  Fate  answered  us  according  to  our  folly.  We 
arrived  at  our  luncheon  hotel  ten  minutes  before  my  advertised  time,  an  achieve- 
ment which  pleased  me  so  much  that  I  wasted  some  time  in  exhibiting  the 
engine  to  the  courtly  and  venerable  brigand  who  owned  the  hotel,  with  the 
result  that  we  got  awav  half  an  hour  late.  But  what  was  half  an  hour  to 
The  Greyhound  ? 

Blithely  we  sped  across  the  endless  moor  beneath  the  September  sun. 
The  road,  straight  and  undulating,  ran  ahead  of  us  like  a  white  tape  laid  upon 
the  heather.  The  engine  purred  contentedly,  and  Mr.  Richards,  lolling 
back  in  his  seat,  took  a  patronising  survey  of  the  surrounding  landscape. 
Evidently  he  rejoiced,  in  his  benign  and  lofty  fashion,  to  think  how  this  glitter- 
ing \dsion  was  brightening  the  dull  lives  of  the  grouse  and  sheep.  Certainly 
the  appearance  of  The  Greyhound  did  him  credit.  Not  a  speck  of  mud  defiled 
its  body  ;  soot  and  oil  were  nowhere  obtrusive.  Bill  Bailey  had  been  wont, 
during  periods  of  rest  outside  friends'  front  doors,  to  deposit  a  small  puddle 
of  some  black  and  greasy  liquid  upon  the  gravel.  The  Greyhound  was  guilty 
of  no  such  untidiness.  Mr.  Richards,  to  quote  his  own  respectfully  satirical 
words,  preferred  using  his  oil  to  oil  the  car  instead  of  gentlemen's  front  drives. 
Under  his  administration  my  expenditure  on  lubricants  alone  had  shrunk  to 
half  of  what  it  had  been  in  Bill  Bailey's  time. 

But  economy  can  be  pushed  to  excess.  Even  as  I  dozed  in  the  back  seat, 
sleepily  obser^dng  The  Gruffin's  flying  mane  and  wondering  whether  we  ought 
not  shortly  to  get  out  the  Thermos  containing  our  tea,  there  came  a  grating, 
crackling  sound.  The  Greyhound  gave  a  swerve  which  nearly  deposited  its 
occupants  in  a  peat-hag  ;  and  after  one  or  two  zigzag  and  epileptic  gambols 
came  to  a  full  stop. 


72 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Steering-gear  gone  wrong,  Richards  ?  "  I  inquired. 

"  I  don't  think  so,  sir,"  replied  Mr.  Richards  easily.  "  Seems  to  me  it  was 
a  kind  of  a  side  si   Get  out,  sir !    Get  out,  mum  I    The  dam  thing's  afire!" 

We  cooled  the  fervid  glowing  of  the  back-axle  with  a  patent  fire-extinguisher, 
and  sat  down  gloomily  to  survey  the  wreck.  Economy  is  the  foundation  of 
riches,  but  you  must  discriminate  in  your  choice  of  economies.  Axle-grease 
should  not  be  included  in  the  list.  Mr.  Richards,  whether  owing  to  a  saving 
disposition  or  an  aesthetic  desire  to  avoid  untidy  drippings,  had  omitted — so 
we  afterwards  discovered — ^to  lubricate  the  back-axle  or  differential  for  several 
weeks,  with  the  result  that  the  bearings  of  the  off-side  back  wheel  had  "  seized," 
and  most  of  the  appurtenances  thereof  had  fused  into  a  solid  immovable  mass. 

We  sat  in  the  declining  rays  of  the  sun  and  regarded  The  Greyhound. 
The  brass -work  still  shone,  and  the  engine  was  in  beautiful  running  order  ; 
but  the  incontrovertible  and  humiliating  fact  remained  that  we  were  ten  miles 
from  the  nearest  dwelling  and  The  Greyhound's  career  as  a  medium  of  transport 
was  temporarily  closed.  Even  the  biting  reminder  of  The  Gruffin  that  we 
could  still  employ  it  to  boil  eggs  in  failed  to  cheer  us. 

Restraining  an  impulse  to  give  Mr.  Richards  a  month's  warning  on  the 
spot,  I  conferred  with  my  wife  and  daughter.  We  might  possibly  be  picked 
up  by  a  passing  car,  but  the  road  was  a  lonely  one  and  the  contingency  unlikely. 
We  must  walk.  Accordingly  we  sat  down  to  a  hasty  tea,  prepared  directly 
afterwards  to  tramp  on  towards  our  destination. 

The  wind  had  dropped  completely,  and  the  silence  that  lay  upon  the  sleepy, 
sunny  moor  was  almost  uncanny.  Imbued  with  a  gentle  melancholy,  my  wife 
and  I  partook  of  refreshment  in  chastened  silence.  Suddenly,  as  The  Gruffin 
(considerably  more  cheerful  than  I  had  seen  her  for  some  days)  was  passing 
up  her  cup  for  the  third  time,  a  faint  and  irregular  sound  came  pulsing  and 
vibrating  across  the  moor.  It  might  have  been  the  roar  of  a  battle  far  away. 
One  could  almost  hear  the  popping  of  rifles,  the  clash  of  steel,  and  the  shrieks 
of  the  wounded.  Presently  the  noise  increased  in  intensity  and  volume.  It 
appeared  to  come  from  beyond  a  steep  rise  in  the  long  straight  road  behind  us. 
We  pricked  up  our  ears.  I  became  conscious  of  a  vague  sense  of  familiarity  with 
the  phenomenon.    The  air  seemed  charged  with  some  sympathetic  influence. 

"  What  is  that  noise,  Richards  ?  "  I  said. 

"  I  rather  think,  sir,"  replied  Mr.  Richards,  peering  down  the  road,  "  that 
it  might  be  some  kind  of  a  " 

Suddenly  I  was  aware  of  a  distinct  rise  of  temperature  in  the  neighbourhood 
of  my  left  foot.  My  daughter,  with  face  flushed  and  lips  parted,  was  gazing 
feverishly  down  the  road.  An  unheeded  Thermos  flask,  held  limply  in  her  hand, 
was  directing  a  stream  of  scalding  tea  down  my  leg.  Before  I  could  expostulate 
she  wheeled  round  upon  me,  and  I  swear  there  were  tears  in  her  eyes. 

"  It's  Bill !  "  she  shrieked.      Bill  Bailey  !    My  Bill !  " 

She  was  right.  As  she  spoke  a  black  object  appeared  upon  the  crown  of 
the  hill,  and,  incredible  to  relate.  Bill  Bailey,  pufiing,  snorting,  reeking,  jing- 
ling, back-firing,  came  lumbering  down  the  slope,  in  his  old  hopeless  but  irre- 
sistible fashion,  right  upon  our  present  encampment. 


''BILL  BAILEY" 


73 


His  lamps  and  Stepney  wheel  were  gone,  his  back  tyres  were  solid,  and 
his  erstwhile  body  of  French-grey  was  now  decked  out  in  a  rather  blistered 
coat  of  that  serviceable  red  pigment  which  adorns  most  of  the  farmers'  carts 
in  the  Highlands.    But  his  voice  was  still  unmistakably  the  voice  of  Bill  Bailey. 

He  was  driven  by  a  dirty-faced  youth  in  a  blue  overall,  who  presented 
the  appearance  of  one  who  acts  as  general  factotum  in  a  country  establish- 
ment which  supports  two  or  three  motors  and  generates  its  own  electric  light. 
By  his  side  sat  a  patriarchal  old  gentleman  with  a  white  beard,  in  tweeds, 
hobnail  boots,  and  a  deerstalker  cap — obviously  a  head  ghillie  of  high  and  ancient 
lineage. 

The  spider-seat  at  the  back  was  occupied,  in  the  fullest  sense  of  the  word, 
by  a  dead  stag  about  the  size  of  a  horse,  lashed  to  this,  its  temporary  catafalque, 
with  innumerable  ropes. 

The  old  gentleman  was  politeness  itself,  and  on  hearing  of  our  plight  placed 
himself  and  Bill  Bailey  unreservedly  at  our  disposal.  His  master.  The  M'Shin 
of  Inversneishan,  would  be  proud  to  house  us  for  the  night,  and  the  game- 
car  should  convey  us  to  the  hospitable  walls  of  Inversneishan  forthwith.  Tact- 
fully worded  doubts  upon  our  part  as  to  Bill's  carrying  capacity — we  did  not 
complicate  matters  by  explaining  upon  what  good  authority  we  spoke — 
were  waved  aside  with  a  Highlander's  indifference  to  mere  detail.  The  car 
was  a  grand  car,  and  the  Castle  was  no  distance  at  all.  Mr.  Richards  alone 
need  be  jettisoned.  He  could  remain  with  The  Greyhound  all  night,  and  on 
the  morrow  succour  should  be  sent  him. 

Mr.  Richards,  utterly  demoralised  by  his  recent  fall  from  the  summit  of 
autocracy,  meekly  assented,  and  presently  Bill  Bailey,  packed  like  the  last  'bus 
on  a  Saturday  night,  staggered  off  upon  his  homeward  way.  My  wife  and  I 
shared  the  front  seat  with  the  oleaginous  youth  in  the  overall,  while  the 
patriarchal  ghillie  hung  on  precariously  behind,  locked  in  the  embrace  of  the 
dead  stag.  How  or  where  The  Gruffin  travelled  I  do  not  know.  She  may 
have  perched  herself  upon  some  outlying  portion  of  the  stag,  or  she  may  have 
attached  herself  to  Bill  Bailey's  back-axle  by  her  hair  and  sash,  and  been 
towed  home.  Anyhow,  when,  two  hours  later,  Bill  Bailey,  swaying  beneath 
his  burden  and  roaring  like  a  Bull  of  Bashan,  drew  up  with  all  standing  at  the 
portals  of  Inversneishan  Castle,  it  was  The  Gruffin  who,  unkempt,  scarlet,  but 
triumphant,  rang  the  bell  and  bearded  the  butler  while  my  wife  and  I  uncoiled 
ourselves  from  intimate  association  with  the  chauffeur,  the  ghillie,  and  the  stag. 

Next  morning,  in  returning  thanks  for  the  princely  manner  in  which  our 
involuntary  host  had  entertained  us,  I  retailed  to  him  the  full  story  of  our 
previous  acquaintance  with  Bill  Bailey.  I  further  added,  with  my  daughter's 
hot  hand  squeezing  mine  in  passionate  approval,  an  intimation  that  if  ever  Bill 
should  again  come  into  the  market  I  thought  I  could  find  a  purchaser  for  him 

He  duly  came  back  to  us,  at  a  cost  of  five  pounds  and  his  sea-passage,  a 
few  months  later,  and  we  have  had  him  ever  since. 

Such  is  the  tale  of  Bill  Bailey.  To-day  he  stands  in  a  corner  of  my  coach- 
house, an  occupier  of  valuable  space,  a  stumbling-block  to  all  and  sundry,  and  a 
lasting  memorial  to  the  omnipotence  of  human — especially  feminine — sentiment. 


Life-Like 


By  Martin  Swayne 

Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

Colonel  Wedge  was  a  quiet,  genial  bachelor.  If  there  was  anything  that 
seemed  to  distinguish  him  from  the  familiar  type  of  retired  officer,  it  was  his 
great  breadth  of  shoulder.  He  was  well  over  fifty,  but  still  vigorous  and 
active.  On  the  day  after  his  arrival  in  Paris,  whither  he  had  come  on  a  week's 
visit,  he  breakfasted  at  nine  and  spent  the  morning  in  visiting  some  public 
places  of  interest.  He  lunched  at  a  restaurant  near  the  Porte  St.  Martin, 
where  he  found  himself  in  a  typically  Parisian  atmosphere,  and  after  smoking 
a  cigar  began  to  stroll  idly  along  the  streets.  Chance  directed  his  steps  in  a 
northerly  direction,  and  about  three  in  the  afternoon  he  found  himself  in  the 
Montmartre  district. 

He  walked  along  in  a  casual  manner,  his  hands  clasped  behind  his  back, 
watching  everything  with  infinite  relish.  While  passing  up  a  side  street  his 
eye  fell  on  a  flamboyant  advertisement  outside  a  cinematograph  show.  The 
Colonel  was  not  averse  to  cinematograph  shows,  and  it  struck  him  that  here, 
perhaps,  he  might  see  something  out  of  the  ordinary.  The  poster  was  certainly 
lurid.  It  represented  a  man  being  attacked  by  snakes,  and  Wedge  understood 
enough  French  to  read  the  statement  underneath  that  the  representation  was 
absolutely  life-like,  and  that  the  death-agony  was  a  masterpiece  of  acting. 

"  Rattlesnakes,"  reflected  the  Colonel,  eyeing  the  poster.  "  It's  wonderful 
what  they  do  in  the  way  of  films  nowadays.  Of  course,  they've  taken  out 
the  poison  glands." 

He  stood  for  a  short  time  studying  the  poster,  which  was  extremely  realistic, 
and  then  decided  to  enter.  He  went  up  to  the  ticket-office,  which  stood  on 
the  pavement,  and  paid  the  entrance  fee.  It  was  obvious  that  the  establish- 
ment was  not  of  the  first  order.  A  couple  of  rickety  wine-shops  flanked  it 
one  on  either  side,  and  the  ticket-office  was  apparently  an  old  sentry-box 
with  a  hole  cut  in  the  back. 

Wedge  took  his  ticket  and  glanced  up  the  street.  It  was  a  day  of  brilliant 
sunshine.  At  the  far  end  of  the  narrow  road  there  was  a  glimpse  of  the  white 
domes  of  the  Sacre  Cceur,  standing  on  its  rising  ground  and  looking  like  an 
Oriental  palace.   Only  a  few  people  were  about,  and  the  wine-shops  were  empty. 

A  shaft  of  sunlight  fell  on  the  poster  of  the  man  fighting  with  rattlesnakes, 

74 


LIFE-LIKE 


75 


and  the  Colonel  looked  at  it  again.  It  attracted  him  in  some  mysterious  way, 
probably  because  physical  problems  interested  him. 

"  Seems  to  be  in  a  kind  of  pit,"  he  thought.  "  Otherwise  he  could  run  for 
it.    It  is  certainly  life-like." 

He  turned  away,  ticket  in  hand.  A  man  standing  before  a  faded  plush 
curtain  beckoned  to  him,  and  Wedge  passed  from  the  bright  light  of  day  into 
the  darkness  behind  the  curtain. 

He  could  see  nothing.  Someone  took  his  arm  and  led  him  forward.  The 
Colonel  blinked,  but  the  darkness  was  complete.  Somewhere  on  his  left  he 
could  hear  the  familiar  clicking  of  a  cinematograph. 

The  hand  on  his  arm  piloted  him  gently  along,  and  he  had  the  impression 
of  walking  in  a  curve.  But  it  seemed  an  intolerably  long  curve.  Since  he 
could  not  speak  French,  he  was  unable  to  ask  how  much  farther  he  had  to  go. 
He  felt  vaguely  that  people  were  round  him,  close  to  him,  and  naturally  con- 
cluded he  was  passing  down  the  room  where  the  performance  was  being  held. 

But  where  was  the  screen  ? 

He  could  not  see  a  ray  of  light.  Heavy,  impenetrable  darkness  was  before 
him,  and  seemed  to  press  on  his  eyelids  like  a  cloth.  Suddenly  the  hand  on 
his  arm  was  lifted.    Wedge  stopped,  blinking. 

"  Look  here,"  he  said,  with  a  feeling  of  irritation,  "  where  am  I  ?  " 

There  was  no  answer.  He  waited,  listening.  He  could  hear  nothing. 
The  clicking  of  the  cinematograph  was  no  longer  audible. 

Deeply  perplexed,  he  held  out  his  arms  before  him  and  took  a  step  forward. 
His  outstretched  foot  descended  on — nothing. 

Wedge  fell  forward  and  downwards  with  a  sharp  cry.  His  fall  was  brief, 
but  it  seemed  endless  to  him.  He  landed,  sprawling,  on  something  soft.  Be- 
fore he  could  move  he  was  caught  and  held  down  with  his  face  pressed  against 
the  soft  mass  that  felt  like  a  heap  of  pillows.  A  suffocating,  pungent  odour 
assailed  his  nostrils,  and  gradually  consciousness  slipped  away. 

When  Colonel  Wedge  came  to  his  senses  he  found  himself  in  a  small  room 
lit  by  an  oil-lamp  hung  against  the  wall.  He  was  lying  on  a  heap  of  mattresses, 
bound  hand  and  foot.  At  first  he  stared  vaguely  upwards.  Directly  over- 
head was  a  circular  mark  in  the  ceiling.  The  sound  of  voices  struck  on  his 
ears,  and,  looking  round,  he  saw  a  group  of  men  talking  at  a  table  near  by. 

With  startling  suddenness  memory  came  back.  He  glanced  up  at  the  ceil- 
ing. There  was  no  doubt  that  the  circular  mark  was  the  outline  of  the  trap- 
door through  which  he  had  fallen.  He  did  not  attempt  to  struggle,  but  lay 
passively  searching  in  his  mind  for  some  explanation  of  his  position. 

The  men  at  the  table  were  talking  in  loud  voices,  but  they  spoke  in  French. 
He  could  not  understand  what  they  said. 

He  looked  round  at  them.  Five  of  them — ^there  were  half  a  dozen — were 
roughly  dressed,  with  blue  or  red  handkerchiefs  knotted  round  their  throats  ; 
but  one  of  them  was  of  a  different  type,  and  looked  like  a  prosperous  business 
man.  He  was  the  spokesman  and  leader  of  the  group,  and  Wedge  noticed 
that  he  had  a  peculiarly  evil,  energetic  type  of  face.  He  spoke  rapidly, 
occasionally  nodding  towards  the  heap  of  mattresses  and  employing  violent 


76 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


gestures.  From  time  to  time  he  thumped  the  table  before  him.  Finally  he 
rose  and  crossed  the  room. 

"  My  name  is  Dance,"  he  said.  He  stuck  the  cigar  he  was  smoking  into 
the  corner  of  his  mouth  and  went  on  speaking  between  his  teeth.  **  I'm  an 
Englishman  by  birth,  and  wonderfully  fond  of  my  fellow-countrymen.  That^s 
why  you  are  here.  You're  just  the  man  I  was  wanting,  and  when  I  saw  you 
looking  at  that  poster  I  could  have  hugged  myself.  What  did  you  think  of 
it  ?    Good,  eh  ?    Sorry  you  didn't  see  the  film." 

He  chuckled  to  himself. 

Wedge  looked  at  him  steadily  and  made  no  reply.  The  other  shrugged 
his  shoulders  and  turned  away.  Some  further  discussion  followed,  and  then 
all  six  left  the  room. 

Wedge  waited  until  the  sound  of  their  footsteps  had  died  away  in  the  passage 
without,  and  then  raised  himself.  Owing  to  the  way  in  which  he  was  bound 
he  could  not  stand  up.  He  looked  around  keenly.  There  was  only  one  door 
and  no  window.  The  walls  were  of  rough  brick,  and  it  was  clear  the  place 
was  a  kind  of  cellar.  Save  for  the  table  and  chairs  there  was  no  furniture. 
The  stone  floor  was  damp,  and  from  one  dark  corner  Wedge  could  hear  the 
trickling  of  water.  After  the  first  scrutiny  of  his  prison  he  lay  back  again  on 
the  mattresses  and  tried  to  think.  He  could  hear  no  sound  of  the  traffic  or 
footsteps  from  the  road,  and  guessed  that  it  would  be  useless  to  shout.  Save 
for  the  trickle  of  water  and  the  occasional  hissing  and  spurting  of  the  lamp, 
the  place  was  absolutely  silent. 

The  atmosphere  was  thick  and  close.  The  flame  of  the  lamp  grew  smaller 
and  smaller,  and  finally  expired.  Wedge  lay  in  the  darkness,  open-eyed, 
listening  to  the  beating  of  his  heart.  He  was  thirsty.  His  throat  was  dry 
and  his  head  ached,  and  the  cords  round  his  wrists  and  feet  bit  into  the  flesh. 
He  made  several  powerful  attempts  to  burst  them,  but  in  vain. 

For  what  purpose  did  they  want  him  ?  If  it  was  simply  a  question  of 
robbery,  why  was  he  kept  prisoner  ?  An  eternity  seemed  to  pass.  In  despair, 
he  tried  to  sleep.  But  the  question  as  to  why  he  was  in  this  prison  repeated 
itself  and  made  sleep  impossible. 

Wedge  was  a  man  of  tried  courage,  but  there  was  something  sinister  in 
his  position  that  caused  disagreeable  thrills  to  pass  down  his  back.  The  trap- 
door, the  chloroform,  the  cords,  the  group  of  evil-looking  men  were  not  re- 
assuring incidents.  Moreover,  the  isolation  in  complete  darkness  with  the 
monotonous  trickling  of  water  unnerved  him. 

An  hour  went  by,  and  he  made  another  violent  attempt  to  release  himself. 
His  breath  came  in  gasps.  Before  his  shut  eyes  he  saw  sheets  of  red  flame. 
But  his  efforts  were  useless.  Thoroughly  exhausted  he  lay  still  again,  staring 
upwards. 

Owing  to  some  trick  of  vision,  possibly  because  the  strong  sunlight  had 
intensified  the  colouring  of  the  poster  while  he  was  studying  it,  he  saw  a  shadowy 
picture  of  the  man  fighting  for  his  life  in  the  pit  full  of  rattlesnakes  hovering 
before  him  in  the  darkness.  He  thought  grimly  that  it  would  be  some  time 
before  he  would  have  the  pleasure  of  seeing  the  representation  of  that  film — 


78 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


perhaps  never.  The  latter  event  was  more  Hkely.  It  was  not  probable  that 
they  would  let  him  go  free,  because  his  freedom  would  mean  their  arrest. 

They  want  me  for  some  purpose,"  he  muttered.  "  But  what  it  is,  Heaven 
knows.  It  can't  be  simple  robbery.  There's  no  point  in  murdering  me. 
I'm  not  a  person  of  any  importance,  so  I  don't  see  where  the  object  of  kid- 
napping comes  in.  Their  game  beats  me,  unless  they've  mistaken  me  for 
someone  else." 

A  step  outside  interrupted  his  reflections.  He  heard  the  door  open.  Some- 
thing that  sounded  like  a  plate  was  put  on  the  floor,  and  the  steps  retreated 
down  the  passage.  After  a  few  minutes  they  became  audible  again,  and  a 
light  showed  in  the  doorway.  A  man  appeared  holding  a  candle.  Colonel 
Wedge  realised  that  it  was  the  intention  of  his  captors  that  he  should  take 
some  nourishment,  and  decided  that  to  do  so  would  be  the  wisest  course. 
There  was  no  reason  why  he  should  weaken  himself  by  abstinence. 

He  submitted  to  being  fed  by  his  jailer,  and  eagerly  drank  the  harsh  red 
wine  that  was  offered  to  him.  When  the  meal  was  finished  he  was  left  alone 
again,  but  the  candle  was  put  on  the  table.  By  watching  its  rate  of  decrease 
in  length  Wedge  gained  some  idea  of  the  passage  of  time.  By  a  calculation 
based  on  the  number  of  his  heart-beats,  which  were  normally  sixty  to  the 
minute,  he  deduced  that  the  candle  would  last  for  about  four  hours.  As  a 
matter  of  fact.  Wedge's  deduction  was  wrong.  The  candle  burned  for  three 
hours.    Wedge  was  unaware  that  his  heart  was  beating  eighty  to  the  minute. 

Months  seemed  to  elapse  before  the  candle  shot  up  in  a  last  flare.  The  Colonel 
stared  at  the  walls,  at  the  rough,  unfaced  bricks,  at  the  trap-door  in  the  ceiling. 
He  closed  his  eyes  and  tried  to  sleep.  He  sat  up  at  intervals  and  looked  round 
him.  He  rolled  from  one  side  to  another.  But  nothing  helped  to  make  the 
time  pass  more  quickly,  and  when  he  was  left  again  in  darkness  he  felt  for  the 
first  time  in  his  life  how  easy  it  would  be  to  go  mad. 

The  tramp  of  feet  roused  him  from  a  drowsy,  half- conscious  condition. 
The  door  was  flung  open  and  a  lantern  shone  in  Wedge's  eyes.  The  men  who 
had  sat  at  the  table  had  returned.  Two  of  them  cut  the  cords  round  his  ankles 
and  pulled  him  on  to  his  feet.    He  stood  with  difficulty,  for  his  legs  were  numb. 

The  man  Dance,  who  had  previously  spoken  to  him,  whose  evil  face  had 
made  an  impression  on  the  Colonel's  mind,  sat  down  at  the  table,  and  Wedge 
was  placed  before  him. 

"  Speak  no  French  ?  "  he  inquired. 

"  No." 

The  man  nodded,  and  played  with  a  thick  gold  ring  on  one  of  his  fingers. 
His  eyes  were  fixed  on  the  Colonel's  face. 

"  What  am  I  here  for  ?  "  asked  Wedge,  quietly. 

"  You'H  see  soon." 

"  Do  you  want  my  money  ?  " 

"  We've  taken  that  already." 

They  looked  at  each  other  steadily.  The  others  in  the  cellar  shuffled  un- 
easily. They  did  not  seem  to  be  so  certain  of  themselves  as  the  man  at  the 
table. 


LIFE-LIKE 


79 


"  You're  an  English  officer,  aren't  you  ?  " 
"  Yes." 

"  And  you've  seen  some  fighting  ?  " 

The  Colonel  shrugged  his  shoulders  and  said  nothing.  He  refused  to  submit 
to  a  cross-examination  at  the  hands  of  this  scoundrel. 

All  right,"  said  the  other.       Don't  get  angry.    I  promise  you  that  you'll 
see  some  more  fighting  before  you  die." 

Something  in  the  man's  expression  made  Wedge  take  a  quick  step  towards 
the  table. 

"  What  do  you  mean  ?    Are  you  going  to  kill  me  ?  " 

There  was  no  answer,  but  the  silence  was  enough.  Wedge  relaxed  his 
attitude  slowly. 

"Is  it  money  you  need  ?  "  he  asked,  after  a  pause. 

"  What's  the  good  of  offering  us  money  ?  Once  you  got  out  of  this  place,  you 
would  give  us  away  to  the  police.    Yes,  we  need  money,  but  not  from  you." 

One  thought  dominated  Wedge's  mind.  It  was  clear  that  the  situation 
did  not  demand  any  unnecessary  heroism.  If  anything  could  effect  his  escape 
he  was  perfectly  justified  in  making  use  of  it. 

"  I  will  give  you  a  thousand  pounds,  and  will  promise  not  to  put  the  affair 
in  the  hands  of  the  police,"  he  said. 

He  offers  money,  and  gives  his  word  of  honour  to  say  nothing  to  the 
police  !  "  exclaimed  the  other,  looking  at  the  men  behind  Wedge. 

There  was  an  outburst  of  violent  opposition.  They  were  wildly  excited. 
They  were  all  round  Wedge,  shouting  and  gesticulating  and  brandishing  their 
fists  in  his  face.  He  stood  impassively  in  the  centre  of  them  with  his  hands 
bound.  What  was  this  riot  ?  Why  did  the  eyes  of  these  men  shine  so 
strangely  ? 

Two  thousand,"  he  said  steadily. 

*'  Impossible  !  "  The  man  at  the  table  jumped  up.  "  This  is  only  a  waste 
of  time." 

He  caught  up  the  lantern  and  went  out.  The  others,  pushing  Wedge 
before  them,  followed.  They  passed  through  a  long  stone  corridor,  down  some 
narrow  steps,  and  stopped  before  an  iron  door.  Wedge  heard  the  fumbling 
of  keys,  the  creak  of  a  rusty  lock,  and  the  door  swung  open.  The  interior 
was  dark. 

Dance  stood  by  the  door,  holding  the  lantern  aloft.    In  obedience  to  a 
brief  command  Wedge's  hands  were  released. 
"Hand  him  the  club." 

A  stout  cudgel  of  twisted  wood,  with  a  heavy  nobbed  end,  was  thrust  into 
his  hands.  But  Wedge  was  a  man  of  action,  and  he  saw  in  a  flash  that  if  he  was 
to  escape  from  his  unknown  fate  the  opportunity  had  come.  They  were 
trying  to  push  him  through  the  door  into  the  dark  interior. 

"  Vite  !    II  est  danger eux  !  "  exclaimed  the  man  with  the  lantern. 

But  Wedge  was  too  quick.  He  swung  the  club  swiftly  round,  and  the 
lantern  fell,  smashed  to  atoms.  In  a  moment  he  was  seized  by  half  a  dozen 
hands.    He  fought  powerfully,  but  they  hung  on  to  him  grimly,  and  little  by 


80 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


little  he  was  thrust  forward.  He  had  not  enough  space  to  use  the  club.  He 
dropped  it  and  used  his  fists,  and  more  than  once  struck  the  stone  walls  in  the 
confusion  of  the  struggle  in  the  dark.  Then  someone  got  hold  of  his  throat, 
while  the  others  fastened  on  his  arms,  and  he  was  thrown  backwards.  He 
heard  the  clang  of  the  iron  door  and  lay  gasping  on  the  floor. 

A  blinding  white  light  suddenly  shone  down  on  him.  He  staggered  to 
his  feet  and  looked  round,  shading  his  eyes  with  his  hands  from  the  dazzling 
glare.  He  was  in  a  circular  space  bounded  by  smooth  white  walls.  The 
floor  was  sanded.  Above  him  burned  half  a  dozen  arc-lamps,  whose  brilliant 
rays  were  reflected  directly  downwards  by  polished  metal  discs.  The  upper 
part  of  the  place  was  in  shadow,  but  he  could  make  out  an  iron  balcony  running 
partly  round  the  wall,  about  fifteen  feet  above  the  sanded  floor. 

Colonel  Wedge  went  to  the  wall  and  began  to  examine  its  surface.  It  was 
smooth,  and  seemed  made  of  painted  iron.  The  outline  of  the  door  through 
which  he  had  been  flung  was  visible  on  one  side,  but  directly  opposite  there 
was  the  outline  of  another  door.  He  went  towards  it.  It  was  also  made 
of  iron  like  the  surrounding  structure,  and  apparently  opened  outwards.  He 
pushed  at  it,  but  it  was  shut. 

A  sound  of  something  falling  on  the  floor  made  him  turn.  The  wooden 
cudgel  had  been  thrown  down  from  the  iron  platform  above.  Looking  up, 
he  could  dimly  see  a  number  of  faces  staring  down  at  him,  and  also  a  couple 
of  box-like  instruments,  one  at  either  end  of  the  platform.  It  was  difficult 
to  see  clearly,  for  the  light  of  the  arc-lamps  was  intense.  He  stared  up, 
shielding  his  eyes,  and  then  suddenly  he  saw  what  they  were.  A  couple  of 
cinematograph  machines  were  trained  on  the  floor  below  ! 

It  was  not  until  then  that  Wedge  fully  realised  his  position.  The  picture 
of  the  man  fighting  the  rattlesnakes  was  suddenly  explained.  He  remembered 
the  pit.  He  walked  to  the  centre  and  stood  with  clenched  fists.  Here  was 
the  pit.    Extremely  life-like  ! 

He  stooped  and  picked  up  the  cudgel.  At  any  rate,  whatever  he  had  to 
face,  he  would  make  a  fight  for  it. 

Mechanically  he  found  himself  watching  the  second  door.  It  was  through 
that  door  that  the  menace  of  death  would  come. 

Up  on  the  platform  they  were  whispering  together. 

His  brain  was  clear,  and  he  felt  calm.  He  knew  that  whatever  came  out 
from  behind  that  door  would  have  the  intention  to  kill.  And  he  knew,  also, 
that  it  was  not  the  wish  of  the  onlookers  that  he  should  triumph.  It  would 
not  be  a  fair  fight.  In  the  moments  of  suspense  he  wondered  in  a  kind  of 
deliberate,  leisurely  way  what  was  coming.  They  would  not  repeat  the  rattle- 
snake picture.  That  had  already  had  its  victim.  In  this  arena  one  man  had 
acted  the  part  of  fear  with  marvellous  realism — perhaps  others  as  well. 

Cudgel  in  hand,  ready  and  braced,  with  his  free  hand  at  his  moustache, 
Colonel  Wedge  waited,  his  eyes  fixed  on  the  door. 

"  Ah,  I  think  you  understand  now,"  said  a  voice  out  of  the  shadows  above. 
"  We  hope  that  this  will  make  a  fine  film,  the  finest  of  this  series  that  we  have 
done  yet." 


LIFE-LIKE 


81 


Wedge  did  not  move  a  muscle. 

"  We  rely  on  you  to  do  your  best  for  us." 

Somewhere  at  the  bottom  of  his  heart  the  Colonel  registered  a  vow  that 
if  he  ever  got  out  of  that  place  alive  he  would  kill  Dance. 

A  chuckle  followed  and  then  silence,  except  for  the  sizzling  of  the  arc-lamps. 
Then  he  heard  a  sound  of  clicking.  The  cinematograph  machines  had  begun. 
"  Ready  ?  " 

Wedge  took  his  breath  slowly.    The  door  was  opening. 

He  saw  a  gap  of  blackness  widening  in  the  white  circular  wall.  The  hand 
that  was  at  his  moustache  fell  to  his  side.  The  cudgel  rose  a  trifle,  and  the 
muscles  of  his  right  arm  stiffened.  Inch  by  inch,  without  a  creak,  the  door 
swung  outwards  until  it  stood  widely  open. 

For  a  few  seconds  nothing  appeared.  The  suspense  was  becoming  un- 
endurable, and  Wedge  had  just  made  up  his  mind  to  approach  when  he  saw  an 
indistinct  form  moving  in  the  background  of  the  shadowy  interior,  and  next 
moment  a  big  yellow  beast  slipped  out  and  stood  blinking  in  the  strong  light. 
He  recognised  the  flat  diamond  head  and  tufted  ears  in  a  moment.  The  door 
clanged  behind  it. 

"  Puma,"  he  muttered,  with  his  eyes  on  the  brute,  and  a  spark  of  hope  glowed 
in  his  heart.  There  were  worse  brutes  to  face  single-handed  than  pumas,  and  he 
knew  something  of  the  capriciousness  of  the  animal.    It  was  just  possible  

His  thoughts  ceased  abruptly.  The  beast  was  moving.  It  slunk  on  its 
belly  to  the  wall,  and  began  to  walk  slowly  round  and  round.  Wedge,  turning 
as  it  moved,  always  faced  it.  It  quickened  its  pace  into  a  trot,  and  as  it  ran  it 
looked  only  occasionally  at  the  man  in  the  centre.  It  seemed  more  interested 
in  the  wall.    At  times  it  stretched  its  head  and  peered  upwards. 

In  its  lean  white  jaw  and  yellow  eyes  there  was  no  message  of  hatred  for 
the  moment.  Suddenly  it  stopped  and  listened.  The  clicking  of  the  cinemato- 
graph had  attracted  it.  It  stood  up  against  the  wall,  clawing  at  the  paint. 
Then  it  squatted  on  its  haunches,  with  its  back  to  Wedge,  and  blinked  up  at 
the  platform  overhead. 

The  heavy  fetid  odour  of  the  beast  filled  the  air.  Wedge  relaxed  himself 
a  little,  but  the  puma  heard  the  movement,  for  it  looked  round  swiftly.  It 
behaved  as  if  it  had  seen  him  for  the  first  time,  and  began  to  pace  round  and 
round  again,  eyeing  him.  It  came  to  a  halt  near  the  door  from  which  it  had 
emerged,  and  lay  down  flat,  with  its  paws  outstretched,  watching  Wedge. 
He  caught  the  sheen  of  its  eyes.  He  remained  still,  for  at  the  slightest  move- 
ment the  brute  quivered. 

As  yet  he  could  read  nothing  vindictive  in  its  look,  but  he  knew  that  at  any 
moment  it  might  change  into  a  raging,  snarling  demon  and  spring.  Being 
a  believer  in  the  idea  that  animals  are  in  some  way  conscious  of  the  emotional 
state  in  others  and  act  accordingly,  he  tried  to  banish  all  sense  of  fear  and 
all  sense  of  ill-will  from  his  mind,  and  look  at  it  calmly  and  indifferently. 

The  puma,  with  its  fore-paws  extended  on  the  sand  and  its  head  raised, 
blinked  lazily  at  him.    It  seemed  half  asleep  by  its  attitude.  Sometimes 
the  brilliant  eyes  were  almost  shut. 
3* 


82 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Mordieu  !  "  said  a  voice  above.    "  He  wants  rousing." 

In  a  flash  the  animal  was  on  its  feet,  rigid  and  glaring  up.  Apparently 
the  platform  overhead  roused  its  anger.  Its  tail  began  to  whip  from  side  to 
side,  and  its  lip  lifted  at  one  corner  in  a  vicious  snarl,  uncovering  the  white  fang. 

A  clamour  of  voices  broke  out.  The  whole  aspect  of  the  beast  changed. 
Its  eyes  blazed.  It  stooped  on  its  belly,  glaring  upwards.  Was  it  possible 
it  recognised  an  old  enemy  amongst  the  spectators  ? 

Wedge  waited  anxiously,  and  the  sweat  began  to  break  out  on  his  brow. 

With  bared  claws,  the  animal  crouched,  still  looking  upwards.  It  seemed 
to  have  forgotten  Wedge.  The  men  were  shouting  at  it  and  stamping  with 
their  feet  on  the  iron  floor  of  the  platform.  The  beast  put  one  paw  out  and 
crept  forward.    The  muscles  rippled  and  bulged  under  the  skin. 

"  It's  going  to  spring,"  thought  Wedge.    "  But  it's  not  looking  at  me." 

Slowly  step  by  step  the  beast  advanced.  It  passed  scarcely  two  feet  away 
from  Wedge,  and  went  on  without  looking  at  him.  When  it  was  almost  directly 
under  the  platform  it  stopped  and  snarled  upwards. 

Then  someone  threw  a  lighted  match  on  its  back,  and  straightway  it  became 
transformed  into  the  devil-cat  of  tradition. 

Wedge  was  never  quite  clear  as  to  its  movements  after  that,  for  it  flashed 
round  the  arena  like  a  streak  of  yellow  lightning  He  raised  his  club,  but  the 
brute  was  not  after  him.  It  went  twice,  and  then  a  third  time,  round  the 
white  walls,  and  stopped  for  an  instant,  taut  and  low  on  the  sandy  floor.  And 
then  it  shot  up  in  a  magnificent  leap  towards  the  shadows  above  the  arc-lamps. 

The  shouts  from  the  platform  ceased  suddenly,  and  then  a  wild  hubbub 
broke  out. 

Wedge  heard  the  rattling  and  scraping  of  the  beast's  claws  against  the  rail- 
ings above  and  a  shriek  of  terror.  There  was  a  stampede  of  feet.  A  loud 
series  of  snarls  followed  and  the  sound  of  a  body  falling  heavily. 

Wedge  stood  for  a  moment  dazed.  Then  he  dashed  across  to  the  door 
through  which  the  beast  had  entered,  and  flung  all  his  weight  against  it.  He 
tried  again  and  again  with  all  the  weight  of  his  powerful  shoulders.  It  yielded 
with  a  crash,  and  he  fell  flat  into  the  cage  on  the  other  side,  amongst  the  foul 
straw. 

He  was  up  in  an  instant.  By  the  light  of  the  arc-lamps  in  the  arena  he 
could  make  out  that  the  cage  had  an  iron  grating  on  one  side  closed  by  a  bolt. 
He  thrust  his  hand  through  the  bars  and  worked  back  the  bolt.  Next  moment 
he  was  out  of  the  cage  and  running  down  a  dark  stone  corridor,  cudgel  in 
hand,  and  determined  to  brain  anyone  who  stood  in  his  path.  At  the  top  of 
a  flight  of  steps  he  came  to  a  door  barred  from  the  inside.  He  flung  aside 
the  fastenings  and  staggered  out  into  the  sweet  night  air. 

When  the  police  raided  the  cellars  under  the  cinematograph  show  a  few 
hours  later,  led  by  Wedge,  they  found  the  puma  asleep  in  its  open  cage,  and 
above,  on  the  iron  platform,  all  that  was  left  of  Mr.  Dance,  inventor  and  pro- 
ducer of  life-like  films. 

It  was  not  until  daylight  came  that  Wedge  discovered  they  had  blackened 
his  eyebrows  and  drawn  disfiguring  lines  across  his  face. 


V 


Lame  Dogs 

By  Cosmo  Hamilton 

Royal  Naval  Air  Service 

The  sun  fell  straightly  upon  a  great  golden  cornfield.  Already  the  sickle 
had  been  at  work  upon  its  edges,  and  tall  bundles,  among  whose  feet  the  ver- 
milion poppy  peeped,  stood  head-to-head  at  regular  distances.  Among  the 
ripe  heads  of  the  uncut  corn  the  intermittent  puffs  of  a  soft  August  breeze 
whispered,  offering  congratulations  and  perhaps  condolences^ — congratulations 
mostly,  because  what  is  there  more  beautiful  and  right  in  all  the  year's  useful- 
ness than  the  glorious  fulfilment  of  the  spring's  green  promise  ? 

All  the  hours  of  a  busy  morning  had  been  marked  off  melodiously  by  the 
old  clock  of  an  older  church  which  stood  with  maternal  dignity  among  grave- 
stones several  fields  away.  It  wanted  only  a  few  moments  to  the  hour  of  one. 
A  brawny  son  of  the  soil,  tanned  of  face,  neck,  and  arms,  who  had  been  work- 
ing in  the  angle  of  the  field  nearest  the  road,  had  just  laid  down  his  sickle  and 
his  crooked  stick. 

He  was  hot,  but  satisfied.  He  was  also  sharp-set,  and  very  ready  for 
the  dinner  that  awaited  him,  with  beer,  at  his  cottage  on  the  outskirts  of  the 
village.  He  sang,  quietly  and  monotonously,  in  a  typical  burring  way,  a 
song  which  was  written  in  praise  of  boiled  beef  and  carrots.  And  while  he 
sang  he  dabbed  his  face  and  neck  with  a  startling  handkerchief  of  red  and 
yellow. 

Swallows,  flying  high,  skimmed  the  air  playfully.  Flocks  of  sparrows 
moved  quickly  among  the  standing  corn,  no  longer  frightened  by  the  tin  with 
stones  in  it,  that  was  rattled  by  a  slow-footed  boy  in  the  distance.  They 
were  eager  to  get  their  fill  of  stolen  fruits  before  their  natural  enemies  removed 
it  from  their  beaks.  The  air  was  alive  with  the  glimmering  heat,  and  the 
shadows  of  the  trees  were  almost  straight. 

One  sounded,  and  before  the  bell's  reverberations  had  blown  away,  a  note 
of  discord  in  the  delicious  harmony  was  struck  by  the  sudden  appearance 
of  a  man,  who  leaned  on  the  white  gate  which  divided  the  field  from  the  road. 

He  was  a  short,  slight,  odd-looking  creature,  dressed  in  clothes  that  were 
rather  too  smart,  and  a  green  dump  hat  a  little  the  worse  for  wear.  His  clean- 
shaven face,  mobile  and  curiously  lined,  was  pale  and  a  little  pinched,  and 
the  whole  limp  appearance  of  the  man  showed  that  he  was  only  just  recovering 
from  an  illness.    Across  one  shoulder  a  knapsack  was  slung,  and  behind  his 

83 


84 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


left  ear  there  rested  a  cigarette.  A  pearl  was  stuck  in  a  rather  loud  tie,  and 
there  was  a  large  ring  on  one  of  his  little  fingers. 

There  was  something  both  comic  and  pathetic  in  the  figure,  and  every- 
thing that  was  peculiarly  the  very  antithesis  of  the  exquisite  rural  surround- 
ings. The  initials  "  R.  D."  were  stencilled  on  the  knapsack,  and  they  stood 
for  Richard  Danby,  a  name  that  was  well  known  in  towns,  but  wholly  unknown 
among  cornfields  and  under  the  blue,  unsmoked  sky. 

Danby,  who  had  gladly  leaned  on  the  gate  to  rest,  watched  the  big,  muscular 
man  for  a  moment,  with  eyes  in  which  there  was  admiration,  and  listened 
to  the  unmusical  rendering  of  a  song  which  had  trickled,  note  by  note,  into 
the  country  from  London,  with  amusement.  He  then  adopted  an  air  of  forced 
cheerfulness  and  clapped  his  hands. 
Bravo  !  "  he  said.    "  Bravo  !  " 

Peter  Pippard  turned  slowly,  antagonistically. 
Eh  ?  "  he  said. 

The  little  man  waved  his  ringed  hand. 

"  I  said  '  Bravo  ' — well  rendered.  What  is  it  ?  An  aria  from  Faust,  or 
a  little  thing  of  your  own  ?  " 

The  big  man  was  puzzled  and  surprised. 
"  Eh  ?  "  he  said  again. 

Danby  was  not  to  be  beaten.  There  was  something  in  his  manner  which 
showed  that  he  was  in  the  habit  of  addressing  himself  to  audiences  and  talking 
for  effect. 

"  How  delightful,"  he  continued,  with  fluent  insincerity,  "  to  find  a  peasant 
in  song  !    A  merry  heart  wags  all  the  day.    Who  wouldn't  be  happy  among 
the  golden  corn,  in  touch  with  Nature,  with  the  field-bugs  gambolling  over 
one's  back  !  " 
Eh  ?  " 

Danby  laughed. 

"  You  find  me  a  little  flowery  ;  I  am  flying  too  high  for  you.  I  am  indulging 
in  aeroplanics.  I'll  come  down  to  the  good  red  earth.  Marnin',  matey. 
How's  t'crops  ?  " 

The  imitation  of  the  country  accent  was  ridiculously  exaggerated.  The 
farm-hand  examined  the  town  man  searchingly  and  suspiciously. 
"  Eh  ?  "  he  said  again. 

"  Beat  again  !  "  said  Danby,  with  a  shriek  of  laughter. 

Pippard  went  closer,  but  slowly. 

"  Want  onythin',  mister  ?  "  he  asked. 

"  No.  Oh  Lord,  no  !  I  only  want  to  get  some  other  word  out  of  you 
than  'eh.'  " 

"Oh,"  said  Pippard. 

"  Thanks.  Thanks  most  awfully.  Now  we're  moving.  .  .  .  Well,  how's 
the  corn  ?    It  looks  fine  and  fat." 

"  Ah,"  said  Pippard,  grinning  broadly  and  affectionately. 

The  little  man  bowed.  He  seemed  to  be  saying  things  which  would  arouse 
laughter  among  an  invisible  audience. 


LAME  DOGS 


85 


"  Again  I  thank  you.    Yes,  very  fine  and  fat.    You've  been  punching 
out  and  giving  them  thick  ears.    What  ?  " 
The  examination  was  continued. 
"  You  doan't  seem  ter  be  talkin'  sense,  mister." 

Another  shriek  of  laughter  disturbed  the  characteristic  peacefulness. 

"  Congratulations  !  You've  discovered  me.  How  can  I  talk  sense  when 
I'm  trying  to  be  sociable  ?  You  don't  object  to  a  little  bright  conversation, 
do  you  ?  " 

"  Noa." 

"  Well,  we'll  cut  generalities  and  come  to  facts.    How's  the  twins  ?  " 
"  Ain't  got  no  twins." 

"  Nonsense  !  I  don't  believe  it.  A  great,  big,  brawny  fellow  like  you. 
I  take  it  you've  got  some  nippers  ?  " 

Pippard  chuckled.    "  Three  girls  and  two  boys." 

"  Ah,  that's  something  like  !  Again  congratulations  !  It's  very  kind  of 
you  to  ask  me  to  come  over.  Since  you're  so  pressing,  I  think  I  will."  He 
climbed  over  the  gate  a  little  painfully  and  walked  jauntily  into  the  field. 

The  farm-hand  broke  into  a  laugh.  "Ah  reckon  as  'ow  you're  a  funny 
man,  ain't  you  ?  " 

The  little  man  became  suddenly  serious,  so  suddenly  and  so  eagerly  serious, 
that  if  Pippard  had  been  endowed  with  the  first  glimmerings  of  psychology, 
he  would  have  been  startled  and  a  little  nervous.  "  Are  you  joking,  or  do 
you  mean  it  ?    Is  it  possible  that  I  make  you  laugh  ?    Is  it  possible  ?  " 

"  The  very  sight  o'  you  gives  me  a  ticklin'  inside,"  was  the  reply. 

Danby  seized  the  brawny  and  surprised  hand  and  wrung  it  warmly.  "  God 
bless  you,  dear  old  Hodge  !  "  he  said  hoarsely.  "  God  bless  you  !  "  Then 
he  laughed  merrily.    "  You  make  me  feel  like  an  attack  of  bronchitis." 

The  feeble  joke  went  home.  Pippard  roared.  "  There  you  goes  agin," 
he  said.    "  What  are  yer,  mister  ?    A  hartist  ?  " 

"  An  artist  ?    Oh,  dear  no.    Oh,  God  bless  me,  no  !    I'm  an  artiste." 

"  What's  the  difference,  any'ow  ?  " 

If  the  little  man  had  asked  for  his  cue,  he  could  not  have  got  it  more  readily. 
"  An  artist  earns  his  bread-and-butter  by  putting  paint  on  canvas,  and  an 
artiste  gets  an  occasional  dish  of  tripe  and  onions  by  putting  paint  on  his  face." 

"  Ah  reckon  as  'ow  you're  an  artiste,  mister,  although  Ah  can't  see  no  paint 
on  yer  face." 

"  I  washed  over  twelve  months  ago,"  said  Danby  sadly.  "  Oh,  by  the  way, 
am  I  trespassing  ?  " 

"  Well,  it  all  depends  on  wot  ye're  a-goin'  ter  do." 

"  Eat,  old  boy.    If  you've  no  objection  I'm  going  to  spread  out  my  hors 
d'oeuvres  and  'pdte  de  foie  gras,  and  lunch  al -fresco." 

"  Don't  onderstand  a  blame  wurd,"  said  Pippard,  grinning. 

"  Putting  it  in  plain  English,  I'm  going  to  wrestle  with  half  a  loaf  of  bread 
and  two  slices  of  cold  ham.  Will  you  join  me  ?  Do."  The  invitation  was 
made  eagerly.  "  Stay  here  and  let  me  hear  you  laugh.  It  does  me  more 
good  than  a  whole  side  of  streaky  bacon." 


86 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Pippard  scratched  his  head  doubtfully.  "  Well,  Ah  told  th'  old  'ooman 
as  'ow  Ah'd  be  wome  for  dinner,"  he  said. 

"  The  old  woman  must  not  be  disappointed.  Do  you  pass  a  pub  on  your 
way  home  ?  " 

"  Can't  go  anywhere  from  'ere  without  passin'  a  poob." 

Danby  squeezed  a  shilling  into  the  great  sun-tanned  fist. 

"  Well,  call  in  and  get  a  drink." 

"  Thankee,  Ah  doan't  mind  if  Ah  do." 
Drink  to  my  health.  I  don't  suppose  you  want  a  drink  more  than  I 
want  health."  He  walked  round  the  farm-labourer  admiringly.  He  looked 
like  a  smooth-haired  terrier  who  had  suddenly  met  a  St.  Bernard.  "  My 
word,  I'd  give  something  to  be  a  man  like  you.  What  muscle,  what  bones, 
what  a  back  !  What  a  hand  !  It's  as  big  as  a  leg  of  mutton.  Do  you  ever 
get  tired  of  being  healthy  ?  Do  you  ever  wake  up  in  the  morning  and  say  : 
'  O  Lord,  I'm  still  as  strong  as  an  ox — why  can't  I  get  a  nice  thumping  head- 
ache to  keep  me  in  bed  ?  ' " 

It  was  altogether  too  much  for  the  man  who  rose  with  the  sun  and  went 
to  bed  with  the  sun  and  worked  out  in  the  fields  all  day  long  ;  the  big,  simple, 
healthy,  natural  man,  whose  life  was  a  series  of  seasons,  to  whom  there  was 
no  tragedy  except  bad  weather,  and  a  lack  of  work  and  wages.  This  odd 
little  creature,  who  said  unexpected  things  as  though  he  meant  them,  and  asked 
funny  questions  seriously,  was  "a  comic" — such  a  man  as  the  clown  who 
came  with  the  circus  twice  a  year,  and  played  the  fool  in  the  big  tent  which 
was  pitched  on  the  green  and  lighted  with  flares  of  gas.  Pippard  laughed 
so  loudly  that  he  scared  the  eager  sparrows. 

"  There  you  go,"  he  said.    "  Ah  reckon  as  'ow  you  was  born  funny." 

Danby  eyed  him  keenly  and  wistfully.  Are  you  laughing  at  me  ?  " 
he  asked.  ''Me?'' 

"  Laffin'  ?    Why,  you'd  make  an  old  sow  laff." 

"  You  amaze  me,"  said  Danby.  He  gave  the  man  another  shilling.  "  Get 
further  drinks  on  your  way  back.  You're — you're  a  pink  pill  for  pale  people, 
old  boy." 

"  Ah  must  go,"  said  Pippard  reluctantly. 

"  Yes,  you  trudge  off  to  the  old  woman  and  get  your  dinner.  I'll  drink 
your  health  in  a  glass  of  water  and  a  tabloid." 

Pippard  got  into  his  coat  and  re-lit  a  short  black  clay. 
"  Well,  good  day,  and  thankee." 

"  Good  day,  and  thank  you'"'  Danby  held  out  his  hand.  It  was  thin 
and  pale.  It  was  grasped  and  shaken  monstrously.  "  That's  right — hurt  it. 
Go  on  ;  hurt  it.  .  You  make  me  feel  almost  manly.  .  .  .  Good  day  and  good 
luck !  My  love  to  the  old  woman  and  the  kids,  and  the  rabbit,  and  the  old 
dog,  and  granny." 

Laughing  again,  the  big  man  marched  off,  made  small  work  of  the  gate, 
and  trudged  away.  Danby  followed  him  up  to  the  gate,  and  stood  watching 
him  curiously  and  admiringly,  and  as  he  watched  he  spoke  his  thoughts  aloud. 

"  Good  day,  giant,"  he  said.    "  Good  day,  simple  son  of  the  soil,  who  eats 


LAME  DOGS 


87 


hearty,  drinks  like  a  fish,  and  digests  everything.  Good-bye,  man  who  knows 
nothing,  and  doesn't  want  to  know  anything.  I'd  give  ten  years  of  my  Hfe 
for  five  of  yours  any  day.    Well,  well." 

He  turned  with  a  sigh,  took  off  his  hat  and  hung  it  on  a  twig  of  the  hedge, 
and  then  divested  himself  of  his  knapsack.  This  he  unstrapped,  and,  taking 
out  a  napkin,  spread  it  with  a  certain  neatness  on  the  grass,  and  set  upon  it  a 
loaf,  a  piece  of  Cheddar  cheese,  a  lettuce,  and  several  slices  of  ham  wrapped 
in  paper,  a  knife  and  fork.  To  this  not  unappetising  meal  he  added  a  large 
green  bottle  of  water. 

"  Ah  !  "  he  said.  A  sudden  thought  struck  him.  He  put  his  finger  and 
thumb  into  a  waistcoat  pocket,  and  brought  out  a  small  bottle  of  tabloids. 
He  swallowed  one  with  many  grimaces  and  much  effort.  He  sighed  again 
and  sat  down.  He  looked  with  feigned  interest  at  the  eatables  in  front  of 
him  for  several  minutes.  He  then  shook  his  head  and  gave  an  expressive 
gesture.  "  No,"  he  said  aloud,  in  order  that  he  might  not  feel  quite  so  lonely. 
"  No,  not  hungry.  Beautiful  food,  clean  napkin,  lettuce  washed  in  the 
brook,  no  appetite — not  one  faint  semblance  of  a  twist !  " 

It  appeared  from  the  startled  flight  of  a  thrush  from  the  hedge  that  R.  D. 
was  not  to  be  lonely  after  all.  Another  person  bent  over  the  gate,  and  looked 
into  the  cornfield,  seemed  perfectly  satisfied,  and  climbed  over.  "  This  is 
all  right,"  she  said.    "  Carlton,  S.W.    Oh  !  " 

The  exclamation  was  involuntary.  The  girl  caught  sight  of  the  man  and 
pulled  up  short. 

Danby  sprang  to  his  feet.  The  girl  was  pretty;  and  although  her  once 
smart  clothes  were  shabby,  and  her  shoes  very  much  the  worse  for  wear,  she 
looked  a  nice,  honest,  frank  creature,  aglow  with  health  and  youth  and  optimism. 
Danby  caught  up  his  hat,  put  it  on,  and  took  it  off  again  in  his  best  society 
manner. 

No  intrusion,"  he  said.    "  Just  a  little  al-fresco  lunch,  nothing  more." 
The  girl  smiled.    Her  teeth  wxre  very  small  and  white  and  regular.  That 
was  my  idea,"  she  said.    "  Not  in  the  way,  I  hope  ?  " 

Oh,  please,"  replied  Danby.    "  The  sight  of  some  one  eating  may  inspire 
me  and  give  me  the  much-desired  appetite."  ^ 

A  ringing  laugh  was  caught  up  by  the  gentle  breeze. 

"  I  should  like  to  be  able  to  eat  enough  to  starve  mine.    Good  morning  !  " 

"Good  morning!"  said  Danby.  He  bowed  again,  and  hung  his  hat  back 
on  the  twig.  He  was  not  a  little  disappointed.  He  had  hoped  for  conversa- 
tion and  companionship.  He  sat  down,  but  with  interested  eyes  watched  the 
girl  unpack  her  luncheon  quickly  and  deftly.  She  had  no  napkin.  She  spread 
her  bread  and  meat  on  a  sheet  of  newspaper,  and  cleaned  her  knife  by  thrust- 
ing it  into  the  earth  and  wiping  it  on  the  grass.  He  noticed  that  her  shoes  were 
very  dusty,  and  came  to  the  conclusion  that  she  had  walked  some  distance. 
He  was  right.    He  caught  her  eye  and  looked  away  quickly. 

"  I  beg  pardon  !  "  he  said. 

"  Granted,  I'm  sure."    Danby's  manners  were  excellent. 

"  You  haven't  got  such  a  thing  as  a  pinch  of  salt,  I  suppose  ?  " 


88 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  I  can  oblige  you  with  all  the  condiments,  including  a  little  Al  sauce." 
The  girl  laughed  again.    It  was  a  charming  laugh.    "  Oh,  I  can  do  without 
that,"  she  said. 

Danby,  only  too  glad  of  an  excuse  to  be  of  use,  scrambled  to  his  feet  and 
made  his  way  across  the  golden  stubble  to  the  girl's  side.  In  his  hand  he 
held  a  small  tobacco-tin.    He  opened  it  and  held  it  out. 

"  Navy-cut  ?  "  she  said,  with  wide-eyed  surprise. 

"  An  old  '  Dreadnought '  turned  into  a  merchant  ship.    It's  quite  clean." 

"  Oh,  thanks  most  awfully  !  "    She  helped  herself  to  salt. 

"  Not  at  all,"  said  Danby.  "  Any  little  thing  like  that.  .  .  .  Good  day  !  " 
Good  day  !  "  she  said. 

But  Danby  did  not  move.  The  girl's  kind  heart  was  reflected  in  her  blue 
eyes.  Never  in  his  life  had  he  needed  sympathy  and  companionship  so  desper- 
ately. He  felt  that  even  his  long-lost  appetite  would  return  if  she  were  to 
invite  him  to  eat  with  her. 

She  too  was  lonely,  although  her  indomitable  courage  did  not  permit  her 
to  own  it,  even  to  herself.  There  was,  too,  something  about  the  little  man  that 
was  very  attractive,  something  which  made  her  feel  sorry  for  him.  She  wished 
that  he  would  ask  her  if  he  might  join  her  and  bring  his  own  food.  What 
was  it  about  him  which  reminded  her  of  some  one  she  had  seen  before  ?  " 

"  Rather  nice  here,  isn't  it  ?  "  she  said. 

He  replied  quickly,  eagerly. 

"  Charming  !  "  he  said.    "  So  sylvan." 

"  So  whater  ?  " 

"  Sylvan.    French  for  rustic." 

"  Oh,  French  !  " 

"  Yes  ;  I  beg  your  pardon." 

"  Good  day  !  "  she  said. 

"  Good  day  !  "  he  replied. 

He  returned  reluctantly  to  his  pitch.  He  felt  that  he  deserved  his  dis- 
missal. It  was  a  very  foolish  thing  to  have  shown  that  he  was  something 
of  a  scholar.    Evidently  she  considered  that  he  was  putting  on  side. 

He  sat  down  and  made  a  sandwich.  He  felt  that  he  could  eat  it  with  some 
enjoyment  if  he  were  seated  on  the  other  side  of  her  square  of  newspaper. 
As  it  was  .  .  . 

The  girl  gave  a  short  laugh. 

"  I'm  afraid  I'm  a  great  nuisance,"  she  began  apologetically. 
"  Not  at  all.    Far  from  it."    There  was  another  chance,  then. 
"  You  haven't  got  such  a  thing  as  a  touch  of  mustard,  I  suppose  ?  " 
*'  Oh  yes,  I  have.    Almost  quite  fresh." 

He  got  up  again,  and  carried  a  little  cold-cream  pot  with  him. 
"  Oh,  thank  you  !  "    She  took  the  pot  and  gazed  at  its  label,  with  raised 
eyebrows. 

"  It's  a  has-been,"  he  said  hastily.  '*  I'm  a  bit  of  an  engineer.  Everything 
comes  in  useful." 

Oh— thanks  frightfully."    She  helped  herself. 


LAME  DOGS 


89 


"  Honoured  and  delighted."    He  remained  standing  over  her. 
She  looked  up. 

"  Anything  I  can  do  for  you,  now  ?  " 

"  Yes,  if  you  would.  When  you  came  here  you  said  something  about 
Carlton  Hotel." 

"  Oh,  that  was  a  poor  attempt  at  wit." 

Danby's  hand  went  up  to  his  tie.  It  was  extraordinary  how  nervous  he 
felt  these  days. 

"  Don't  think  me  intrusive,  but  suppose  we  imagine  that  this  is  the  Carlton 
Hotel,  and  that  all  the  tables  are  full  except  one." 
Well  ?  " 

"  Well,  in  that  case,  as  you  and  I  both  wish  to  lunch,  it  would  be  very  natural 
for  us  to  be  put  at  the  same  table,  wouldn't  it  ?    Do  you  take  me  ?  " 
The  girl  laughed  heartily. 
"  Come  on,  then.    Two's  company." 
How  kind  you  are  ! "  said  Danby.    "  It  will  give  me  an  appetite  for  the 
first  time  for  months."    He  hurried  to  his  belongings  and  brought  them  back. 

I  know  this  is  very  irregular,  our  not  having  been  introduced,  but  I  don't 
think  under  the  circumstances  it  will  cause  a  scandal  in  high  life." 
"  No,  nor  a  paragraph  in  the  weeklies." 

Danby  respread  his  napkin  and  arranged  his  things  on  it.  A  sudden 
unexpected  sensation  of  high  spirits  infected  him. 

He  adopted  what  he  considered  to  be  the  manner  of  a  man  of  the  world. 

"  Waitah,  waitah  !  "  he  called,  shooting  his  cuffs.  "  Great  heaven,  where's 
that  waitah  !  I  shall  really  have  to  lodge  a  complaint  with  the  manager. 
Hi  !  you  in  last  week's  shirt,  her  ladyship  and  I  have  been  waiting  here  for 
five  minutes  and  no  one's  been  near  us.  It's  a  disgrace.  Don't  stand  gaping 
there,  sir,  with  a  Swiss  grin.  Alley-vous  ang.  Gettey-vous  gone  toute  suite, 
and  bringey  moi  le  menu.  Verfluchtes,  geschweinhund  !  "  He  waved  the 
imaginary  waiter  away.    "  Pray  pardon  my  heat.  Lady  Susan." 

The  girl  was  intensely  amused. 

"  Oh,  certainly.  Lord  Edmund,"  she  replied,  assuming  an  elaborately  refined 
accent. 

Danby  kept  it  up. 

"  Do  you  find  the  glare  of  the  electric  light  too  much  for  you  ?  Shall  I 
complain  about  the  orchestra  ?  " 

"  One  must  endure  these  things  in  these  places,  your  lordship.  Were  you 
riding  in  the  Row  this  morning  ?  " 

"  Yaas."  Danby  twirled  an  imaginary  moustache.  "  I  had  a  canter. 
My  mare  cast  a  shoe — sixteen  buttons.  I  rode  her  so  hard  that  she  strained 
her  hemlock.  She's  a  good  little  mare.  Has  fourteen  hands,  and  plenty  of 
action.  She's  a  bit  of  a  roarer,  but  then  her  mother  was  ridden  by  a  Cabinet 
Minister." 

You  haven't  taken  to  a  car,  then  ?  " 

"  Oh,  yes.  I've  got  one  Fit  and  two  Damlers.  The  annoying  thing  is, 
I've  just  lost  my  chauffeur." 


90 


THE    RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Oh,  really  ?    How  ?  " 

"  He  dropped  an  oath  into  the  petrol-tank  and  was  seen  no  more." 

"  What  an  absurdly  careless  person  !  " 

Danby  dropped  acting,  and  eyed  the  girl  keenly. 

"  I  say,"  he  exclaimed,  "  that  was  good  !  " 

"  So's  that  ham,"  said  the  girl  involuntarily. 

Instantly  Danby's  fork  prodded  the  best  piece. 

"  Have  some.    Do  !  " 

"  Sure  you  can  spare  it  ?  " 

"  It  would  be  a  pity  to  waste  it.    I  can't  tackle  more  than  one  slice." 
The  girl  held  out  a  slice  of  bread. 

"  Haven't  seen  ham  for  ten  days,"  she  said  simply.  "  It's  an  awfully 
odd  thing." 

"  What  ?    The  ham  ?  " 
"  No  ;   your  face." 
Danby  laughed. 

"  You're  not  the  first  who's  thought  so." 

"  And  your  voice  is  familiar,  too,"  said  the  girl. 

Danby  pretended  to  misunderstand.  She  had  provided  him  with  a  chance 
he  simply  could  not  resist. 

"  Familiar  ?  Oh,  don't  say  that.  I  thought  I  was  behaving  like  an 
undoubted  gentleman — one  of  the  old  regime." 

The  girl  examined  the  little  man  with  a  sudden  touch  of  excitement. 

"  Look  here,"  she  said.  "  Tell  me  the  truth.  Haven't  you  been  a  picture- 
postcard  ?  " 

"  Yes,"  said  Danby  bitterly,  "  oh  dear,  yes  !  A  year  ago  I  was  to  be  found 
in  all  the  shops,  between  Hackenschmidt  and  the  German  Emperor." 

"  I've  got  it  !  "  she  cried.    "  I  know  you." 

"  No,  you  don't,"  said  Danby. 

"  I  do.    I  recognise  you." 
I  think  not.    No  one  could  recognise  me  now." 

"  But  I  do.  You're  Dick  Danby — the  Dick  Danby.  The  famous  Dick 
Danby.  The  Dick  Danby  who  used  to  set  all  London  laughing,  who  played 
Widow  Twankey  at  Drury  Lane,  and  topped  the  bill  at  the  Tivoli  and  the 
Pav." 

The  little  man's  thin  pale  hands  went  up  to  his  face. 

"  Oh,  don't  !  "  he  said,  bursting  into  tears.    "  I  can't  bear  it." 

For  a  moment  the  girl  was  not  sure  whether  this  unexpected  emotion  was 
not  part  of  the  celebrated  funny  man's  comic  method.  She  was  about  to 
laugh,  when  she  found  that  Danby's  shoulders  were  shaking  with  very  real 
and  very  terrible  sobs.  She  was  intensely  surprised  and  upset  and  touched. 
She  had  never  seen  a  man  cry  before.    She  put  a  soft  hand  on  his  arm. 

"  Oh,  Mr.  Danby,"  she  said,  "  what  is  it — what's  the  matter  ?  " 

"  Haven't  you  heard  ?  Dick  Danby's  done  for — gone  under — gone  phut. 
Dick  Danby  that  was  ;  Dick  Danby  that  is  no  more.  Dick  Danby,  that  used 
to  make  'em  laugh,  is  a  broken  man.    Oh,  my  God  !  " 


92 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Oh,  don't  go  on  like  that !  "  said  the  girl  brokenly.  *'  You'll  make  me 
cry  if  you  do.    What's  happened,  Mr.  Danby  ?  " 

The  little  man  shook  himself  angrily.  He  was  ashamed  of  himself.  He 
didn't  know  that  he  had  become  so  weak,  so  unstrung,  so  little  master  of 
himself. 

"  I'm  sorry,"  he  said.  "  I've  never  cried  before.  It  was  your  recognising 
me.  I  didn't  think  any  one  could  recognise  me  as  I  am  now.  It  was  over- 
work, overstrain,  three  halls  a  night — I  couldn't  stand  it.  I  tried  to  struggle 
on,  but  it  was  no  use.  I  earned  my  living  as  a  funny  man.  Can  you  imagine 
what  it  means  to  a  funny  man  to  find  that  his  jokes  don't  go  ?  Can  you  imagine 
what  it  meant  for  me  to  stand  waiting  in  the  wings  for  my  number  to  go  up, 
trembling  all  over  with  fear  and  fright,  and  then  to  face  the  public  that  used 
to  roar  with  delight,  and  get  a  few  scattered  hands  ?  Oh,  those  awful  nights  ! 
The  crowd,  no  longer  my  friends,  who  struck  matches  and  talked.  The  look 
of  pity  on  the  face  of  the  conductor,  and  the  few  words  from  the  stage  door 
when  I  crept  away  :  '  Never  mind,  Mr.  Danby  ;  can't  always  expect  to  knock 
'em,  y'know.'  Do  you  wonder  that  I  fretted  myself  into  an  illness  ?  Do  you 
wonder  that  I've  been  creeping  about  the  country,  afraid  to  face  the  managers  ? 
I'm  done.  I'm  a  funny  man  gone  unfunny.  I'm  the  Dick  Danby  that  can't 
get  his  laughs." 

The  girl  listened  to  this  painful  confession  with  intense  sympathy.  She 
too  had  earned  a  hard  living  on  the  music-hall  stage.  She  too  knew  what 
it  was  to  fail  in  her  anxious  endeavour  to  win  applause.  She  too  was  at  that 
moment  tramping  to  London  in  search  of  work,  with  only  a  few  shillings 
between  the  lodging-house  and  the  Salvation  Army  shelter.  There  was  some- 
thing very  different  between  her  case  and  Richard  Danby's.  She  was  an 
insignificant  member  of  a  large  army  of  music-hall  artistes  whose  place  was 
always  at  the  very  beginning  or  the  very  end  of  the  programme.  When  she 
had  the  good  fortune  to  be  in  work,  her  salary  was  a  bare  living  wage,  and  it 
was  only  by  stinting  herself  of  the  few  luxuries  of  life  that  she  could  put  by  a 
few  pounds  for  a  rainy  day.  Dick  Danby's  case  was  utterly — almost  ludicrously 
— different.  His  salary  for  years  had  been  large  enough  to  take  her  breath 
away.  He  had  earned  more  in  a  week  than  she  had  earned  in  a  year.  His 
health  had  broken  down,  and  his  nerves  and  confidence  had  left  him,  but,  at 
any  rate,  he  was  not  faced,  or  likely  to  be  faced,  with  starvation  and  the 
Embankment,  and  other  terrors  that  were  unmentionable. 

"  Don't  take  it  to  heart,  Mr.  Danby,"  she  said  cheerily.  "  You'll  get 
better,  never  fear,  and  knock  'em  again.  And,  until  then,  you  can  be  a  country 
gentleman,  and  enjoy  yourself.    Think  of  all  the  money  you've  made  !  " 

Danby  gave  a  curious  little  laugh. 

"  And  spent,"  he  said.  "  Money  ?  Oh,  yes,  I  made  money — money 
to  burn — and  I  burnt  it — in  the  usual  way.  I  thought  my  day  would  go  on 
for  ever,  but,  like  other  thoughtless  fools,  I  made  a  mistake.  It  came  to  a 
sudden  end." 

"  But — but  you  don't  mean  to  tell  me  that  you  haven't  saved,  Mr.  Danby  ?  " 
"  Saved  ?  "    Danby  laughed  again.    "  Have  you  ever  heard  that  the  word 


LAME  DOGS 


93 


'  save  '  isn't  in  the  dictionary  of  the  men  who  earn  their  Hving  behind  the 
foothghts  ?  I've  got  just  enough  left  to  keep  me  on  the  road  till  the  end  of 
the  summer." 

"  And  then  ?  " 
And  then — the  workhouse  or  the  prison." 

"  Never,  never  !  "  cried  the  girl.    "  Never  !  " 

A  great  thrill  ran  through  the  little  man's  veins.  The  emphatic  cry  was 
the  best  thing  he  had  heard  for  many  long,  depressing  months.  The  fact 
that  it  came  from  a  shabby  girl  who  might  be  in  a  worse  plight  than  himself 
did  not  seem  to  matter. 

"  But  what  am  I  to  do  ?"  he  asked. 

The  girl  did  not  hesitate. 

"  Go  back  to  the  halls  with  new  and  better  turns,"  she  said  strongly. 
Danby  shuddered,  and  went  back,  snail-like,  into  his  shell. 
"  I  couldn't.    I  couldn't  face  'em.    Who'd  have  me  now  ?  " 
"  The  Coliseum  ;  the  Hippodrome." 

"  They'd  never  look  at  me.  Me  ?  They  only  want  good  stuff — first-rate 
stuff — all  stars." 

"  But  you  are  a  star  !  " 

"  A  fallen  star.  No ;  it's  the  workhouse  for  me.  I'm  a  '  has-been,'  a 
waster." 

"  Who  will  be  again,"  said  the  girl.  "  Mr.  Danby,  I  know  you,  and  what 
you're  capable  of.  Fve  been  in  the  same  bill  with  you,  and  you  haven't  begun 
to  show  'em  what  you  can  do  yet." 

Danby  looked  at  this  girl,  whose  young  voice  quivered  with  confidence, 
with  a  new  interest. 

You  in  the  same  bill  with  me  !  " 

*'  Yes.    You've  never  heard  of  the  Sisters  Ives  ?  " 

Danby  wrinkled  up  his  forehead. 
The  Sisters  Ives  ?    Fanny  and  Emily  Ives  ?  " 

"  I'm  Fanny.  Emily's  dead.  We  did  pretty  well  together,  but  some- 
how— I  dunno,  I  don't  seem  to  catch  on  alone.  I'm  tramping  back  to  London," 
She  was  unable  to  keep  her  resolutely  cheerful  voice  quite  steady,  or  prevent 
her  smiling  mouth  from  trembling. 

Danby  bent  forward  and  caught  Fanny's  hand,  and  held  it  warmly. 

"  Oh,  my  dear,"  he  said.    "  My  dear." 

There  was  no  longer  any  need  for  society  manners  between  these  two, 
nor  introductions  nor  small-talk.  They  had  become  brother  and  sister — two 
human  beings  on  the  same  hard  road. 

"  So  we're  both  of  us  lame  dogs,  eh  ?  "  he  said. 

"  Yes,"  said  Fanny,  "  but  not  too  lame  to  give  each  other  a  hand  over 
the  stile.    Fm  not  going  to  give  up  barking,  and  you're  not,  either." 

"  I've  got  no  bark  left  in  me,"  said  Danby  sadly.    "  Not  even  a  growl." 

The  girl  sprang  to  her  feet.  Her  young  body  seemed  to  be  alight  with 
energy. 

"  Don't  talk  nonsense,  Mr.  Danby ! "  she  said.    "  Cock  up  your  tail,  go 


04 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


springy  on  your  feet,  and  come  back  to  London,  and  give  'em  a  bit  of  the  old. 
D'you  mean  to  tell  me  that  you  can't  remember  the  knack  you  had  of  doing 
the  blear-eyed  major  ?  " 

Danby  was  beginning  to  feel  horribly  excited.  His  depression  seemed 
to  be  lifting  like  a  mist. 

"  I  can  remember  nothing,"  he  said  irritably.  "  I  tell  you  I'm  no  good. 
I've  lost  my  pluck  !  "  He  said  these  things  merely  in  the  hope  that  they 
might  be  denied. 

"  Go  on.  Pluck !  You  only  want  a  shove.  I'm  not  going  to  have  any 
of  that  sort  of  thing,  believe  me.  You've  got  to  wake  up,  you  have.  You've 
got  to  be  brought  in  from  grass  and  stuck  into  harness  again.  Now,  no 
nonsense.  I'm  the  great  B.  P.,  I  am,  for  the  time  being.  Now,  then,  on 
you  come.  The  blear-eyed  major,  quick.  We'll  take  the  song  for  sung.  Come 
to  the  patter  !  " 

Danby's  fingers  twitched,  and  already  he  had  flung  out  his  chest  and  squared 
his  shoulders. 

"  I— I  can't,"  he  said. 

"  You  shall !  "  said  Fanny. 

"  But — but  what  about  make-up  ?  " 

Fanny  nearly  gave  a  shout  of  triumph.  It  had  got  as  far  as  make-up. 
She  was  winning  ! 

Make-up  !  "  she  scoffed.    "  A  great  artiste  wants  no  make-up  !  " 

But  I  must  have  a  moustache.  I  never  did  the  major  without  something 
to  twirl." 

Fanny's  quick  hands  were  up  to  her  hair. 

"  Here  you  are,"  she  said,  holding  out  a  curl.  "  Bit  of  my  extra.  Go  on 
now.    Get  it  up." 

Danby  caught  it,  and  laughed.    He  was  shaking  with  excitement. 

"  You — you  inspire  me,"  he  said.  "  You — fill  me  with  new  life.  How 
can  I  stick  it  on  ?    I  know.    Mustard  !  " 

He  rushed  to  the  cold-cream  pot,  put  his  fingers  into  it,  rubbed  the  thick 
yellow  stuff  on  his  upper  lip,  and  stuck  on  the  curl.  Then  he  seized  his  hat, 
cocked  it  on  at  an  angle  of  forty-five,  buttoned  up  his  coat,  and  strutted  about 
like  an  irascible  bantam  cock. 

"  Armay  ?  Armay  ?  My  dear  lady,  we  have  no  Armay  I  It  was  taken 
over  by  a  lawyer  as  a  hobby.  It's  a  joke,  a  bad  joke,  at  which  nobody  laughs. 
When  you  ask  about  the  Armay  you  go  back  to  the  days  of  my  youth,  when 
I  was  in  the  45th — a  deuce  of  a  feller  too,  I  give  you  my  word.  We  officers 
of  Her  Majesty's  British  Armay  were  fine  fellows,  handsome  dorgs,  my  dear 
lady  ;  and  I  think  I  may  say  I  am  the  last  of  the  fruitay  old  barkers  who  could 
make  love  as  well  as  they  could  fight.    Oh,  I'amour,  I'amour  !    Do  you  kiss  ?  " 

There  was  in  this  rapidly  touched-in  sketch  something  of  portraiture 
which  was  not  spoilt  by  the  banality  of  the  patter.  It  was,  perhaps,  the  portrait 
of  the  stage-ma, j  or,  but  it  was  the  portrait  of  a  man  who  might  conceivably 
have  lived  even  for  the  strong  note  of  caricature. 

Fanny  danced  with  delight,  and  clapped  her  hands  until  they  smarted. 


LAME  DOGS 


95 


"  Hot  stuff,  Mr.  Danby  ;  very  hot  stuff !  " 

"  No  ;  it's  rotten.  Hopeless.  You'd  better  give  me  up  !  "  Danby,  still 
afraid  to  believe  in  himself,  took  off  the  impromptu  moustache  and  unbuttoned 
his  coat. 

Give  you  up  !  I'll  see  you  further.  Now,  then.  The  woman  turn. 
Quick.    You  were  a  scream  as  a  woman,  Mr.  Danby  dear." 

"  The  woman  !  How  can  I  ?  "  He  looked  round  for  his  properties — 
wig,  bonnet,  dress,  umbrella,  little  dog.    His  hands  fluttered  impotently. 

Fanny  was  ready  for  him — ^ready  for  anything.  She  was  playing  the 
angel,  the  Florence  Nightingale.  She  was  bringing  back  a  human  being  to 
life,  to  a  sense  of  responsibility,  to  a  realisation  of  power,  putting  him  on  his 
feet  again.    She  intended  to  win. 

"  Here  you  are,",  she  said.    "  Get  into  this." 

With  quick,  deft  fingers  she  undid  her  belt  and  some  hooks,  slipped  her 
skirt  down,  stepped  out  of  it,  and  threw  it  at  him.  In  her  short,  striped  petti- 
coat she  looked  younger  and  prettier  and  more  honest  than  ever. 

Danby  gave  a  gurgle  of  excitement. 

"  Oh  !  "  he  said.    "  Oh,  Miss  Ives,  you — you  beat  me,  you  "    He  got 

into  the  skirt. 

That's  the  notion,"  she  said.  "  Now  get  into  this."  She  had  whipped 
off  her  hat  and  held  it  out. 

Danby  took  it.  If  Pippard  had  caught  sight  of  him  as  he  stood  among 
the  stubble  in  a  skirt  beneath  his  coat  he  would  have  fallen  into  what  might 
turn  out  to  be  a  dangerous  fit  of  laughter. 

"  But  how  about  hair  ?  "  asked  Danby.    "  Oh,  I  know." 

It  was  an  inspiration.  He  darted  to  the  nearest  rick,  plucked  out  a  handful 
of  golden  corn,  twisted  it  into  a  sort  of  halo,  put  it  on  turbanwise,  and  placed 
the  hat  on  top.  The  effect  was  excellent ;  but  it  was  the  expression  of  the 
little  actor's  face  which  did  more  to  put  before  his  audience  of  one  the  garrulous, 
spiteful,  prying  woman  than  the  skirt  and  hat  put  together. 

He  came  forward  with  a  life-like  walk  and  smile. 

"  Oh,  how  do  you  do,  my  dear  Mrs.  Richmansworth  ?  "  he  said.  "  I'm 
afraid  I'm  a  little  late,  but  I  only  just  remembered  that  it's  the  third  Thursday. 
I  see  you've  got  a  new  knocker.  It  represents  a  gargoyle,  or  a  Chinese  god, 
does  it  not  ?  Or  is  it  a  fancy  portrait  of  your  husband  ?  How  is  dear  Mr. 
Richmansworth  ?  Better  !  Ah,  I  wish  I  could  say  the  same  for  mine.  My 
husband  .  .  .  But  there ;  the  least  said  the  soonest  mended.  I  see  that  you've 
been  having  some  coal  in  to-day.  Isn't  it  dreadful  how  coal  has  risen  ?  I 
don't  call  it  coal  now — I  call  it  yeast.  My  husband  .  .  .  But  let  us  talk  of 
pleasant  things.  I  see  that  you've  lost  your  next-door  neighbour.  She  was 
a  good  woman,  and  a  great  personal  friend  of  mine  ;  but  I  must  say,  in  all 
fairness  and  in  very  truth,  that  she  won't  be  missed,  for  her  tongue  was  bitter 
and  her  words  poison.  No,  thank  you  !  I  will  not  take  tea.  I  was  foolish 
enough  to  drink  a  cup  at  Mrs.  Snodgrass's  ;  and  although  I  don't  wish  to  go 
into  details,  I  might  just  as  well  have  swallowed  a  cannon-ball.  I'm  that 
swollen,  I  could  hardly  put  my  gloves  on.    I  think  it's  called  gastritis." 


96 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Fanny  roared  with  delight.  The  absurd  patter  was  said  with  an  unmistak- 
able touch  of  humour  which  would  have  appealed  irresistibly  to  any  music- 
hall  audience. 

"Good  old  Dick  Danby!"  she  cried.  "It's  a  case  of  six  weeks  at  the 
Coliseum  and  fifteen  on  the  road,  with  a  star  line  on  the  bills.  Give  me  my 
skirt." 

"  I  beg  your  pardon  1  "  He  got  out  of  it  quickly.  "  Oh,  if  only  I  dared  ! 
If  only  I  had  the  pluck  to  face  my  friends  in  front  again !  '  Return  of  Mr. 
Richard  Danby,'  eh  ?  " 

"  That's  it !  It's  a  cert. !  It's  fine !  You're  up  to  your  best  form.  You 
only  want  a  couple  of  good  songs,  and  your  face  will  gleam  again  in  all  the  shop 
windows." 

Danby  put  his  trembling  hands  on  the  girl's  shoulders. 

"  Oh,  Miss  Ives  !  Oh,  Fanny,  you're  better  than  all  the  medicine.  You're 
a  lady  doctor — a  hospital  of  lady  doctors.  You've  bucked  me  up.  You've 
given  me  back  my  pluck.    Come  on — to  London — to  London  !  " 

"  Yes,"  cried  Fanny,  "  to  London  !  " 

Danby  ran  to  his  knapsack  and  began  to  pack  it  feverishly.  The  colour 
had  returned  to  his  face.  His  eyes  were  alight.  He  laughed  as  he  packed. 
They  both  laughed  ;  and  when,  a  few  minutes  later,  they  faced  each  other 
again,  ready  for  the  road,  they  both  looked  as  if  a  fairy  had  touched  them  with 
her  wand. 

"  Your  sister's  dead,"  said  Danby,  "  and  you're  down  on  your  luck.  Join 
forces  with  me,  and  we'll  do  a  turn  together — this  turn,  this  story,  just  as 
we've  done  it  here,  and  we'll  call  it  '  Lame  Dogs.'  " 

Fanny's  tears  started  to  her  eyes. 

"  Oh,  Mr.  Danby,  do  you  mean  that  ?  " 

Danby  almost  shouted  with  excitement. 

"  Mean  it  ?  I  never  meant  anything  so  seriously  in  my  life.  Dick  Danby 
and  Fanny  Ives  at  ten  o'clock  nightly.  That's  what  I  mean,  my  dear.  You've 
done  it.  You've  helped  a  lame  dog  over  a  stile.  In  future,  I  won't  work 
only  for  myself.  I'll  work  for  you  too.  Little  Dick  Danby's  on  his  feet  again. 
Little  Dick  Danby's  believed  in.  He's  come  face  to  face  with  Miss  Fanny 
Hope  Faith  Charity  Ives,  and  he  won't  let  her  go.    Is  it  a  contract  ?  " 

Fanny  tried  to  take  the  outstretched  hand.  She  tried  to  speak,  and  failed. 
Danby  bent  down  and  put  his  lips  on  her  sleeve.  Then  he  led  her  to  the  stile, 
helped  her  over,  and  together  they  took  the  road  which  led  to  London. 


The  Silver  Thaw 


By  R.  E.  Vernede 

Rifle  Brigade 

A  SILVER  thaw  had  set  in.  The  icy  rain  fell  so  suddenly  and  so  quickly  that 
Masson  felt  his  car  skid  on  what  had  been  a  dry — almost  a  dusty — high-road 
before  he  was  well  aware  of  the  cause.  Two  minutes  later  the  imperative 
necessity  of  pulling  up  became  apparent,  and  he  came  to  a  stop  at  the  end 
of  a  hundred  yards'  slide. 

''If  it  had  been  downhill,"  he  thought  to  himself,  "  the  depreciation  on 
this  particular  four  and  a  half  horse-power  de  Dion  would  have  been  con- 
siderable.   I  suppose  I'm  in  luck." 

The  luck,  on  second  thoughts,  was  of  a  very  dubious  kind.  A  mist,  following 
on  the  break  of  the  frost,  had  already  obscured  the  beauty  of  the  night ;  the 
roadway  seemed  absolutely  deserted,  and  the  nearest  approach  to  a  village 
w^as,  as  Masson  guessed,  some  five  miles  off.  His  lamps,  shining  upon  what 
might  have  been  a  frozen  canal  between  two  high  hedges,  showed  that  he 
could  as  well  have  been  twenty  miles  from  a  village  for  all  chance  he  had  of 
getting  there  either  on  foot  or  on  wheels.  Pulling  out  his  watch,  he  found 
the  time  to  be  ten  o'clock.  He  had  been  about  half  an  hour  on  the  road.  Cal- 
culating that  he  had  done  some  twelve  miles,  and  that  there  were  fifty  separating 
the  place  he  had  dined  at  from  the  place  he  had  intended  to  reach,  he  was 
still  thirty-eight  miles  from  the  latter. 

"  No  London  for  me  to-night,"  he  said,  turning  up  his  coat-collar.  "  This 
thaw  may  turn  to  rain  and  it  may  not.  The  point  is,  what  am  I  to  do  if  it 
doesn't  ?  "    He  stood  up  in  the  car  to  prospect. 

An  answer  came  in  lights  that  glowed  yellow  through  the  mist,  from  some 
house  evidently  that  stood  a  little  off  the  road  to  the  left.  They  had  been 
hidden  until  that  moment  by  the  hedge,  and  seemed  all  the  nearer  now  for 
their  suddenness.  They  meant  shelter  from  that  icy  drip,  possibly  a  bed  for 
the  night.  There  was  no  resisting  the  prospect.  Masson  climbed  gingerly 
down,  commended  the  car  to  Providence,  and  made  for  a  white  gate  in  the 
hedge  that  seemed  to  indicate  the  entrance  to  the  drive.  His  fingers  were 
so  numbed  that  he  could  scarcely  unlatch  it. 

Any  one  who  has  tried  the  business  of  walking  in  what  is  called — roman- 
tically enough — a  silver  thaw  will  know  that  romance  is  the  last  thing  that 

i 


98 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


occupies  the  mind  of  a  person  so  engaged.  The  constant  striving  to  remain 
perpendicular,  the  grovelling  with  unseizable  earth  forced  upon  a  man  who 
has  sat  down  upon  it  with  an  unexpectedness  that  is  outside  all  experience, 
the  doubts  as  to  whether  any  material  progress  can  be  made  except  on  all 
fours,  combine  to  keep  the  attention  fixed  upon  practical  things.  Add  the 
darkness  of  a  clouded  winter  sky,  a  gathering  mist,  and  a  path — if  it  could 
be  called  a  path — at  once  barely  visible  and  totally  unknown,  and  it  will  be 
clear  that  a  man  encountering  these  difficulties  will  be  justified  in  wishing 
romance  to  the  deuce.  Masson  wished  it  further  before  he  had  done  with 
it  that  night. 

The  only  warning  that  he  had  before  he  was  plunged  into  it,  willy-nilly, 
was  the  sound  of  a  whistle,  as  of  some  one  expressing  surprise,  from  the  high- 
road he  had  left.  He  imagined  that  it  proceeded  from  some  yokel  who  had 
come  upon  the  deserted  de  Dion,  and  he  sincerely  hoped  that  the  yokel  would 
not  have  the  time  or  inclination  to  overhaul  its  machinery.  For  a  moment, 
indeed,  with  some  of  the  yearning  instinct  of  the  motorist  for  his  car,  he  thought 
of  returning  to  it  and  warning  the  yokel  off.  The  very  act  of  trying  to  come 
to  a  decision,  however,  made  his  heels  go  from  under  him,  and  when  he  had 
got  them  under  control  again  the  decision  was  formed.  It  was  to  reach  the 
house — or  congeal. 

Another  five  minutes'  skidding  and  he  reached  it.  The  back  of  it  appar- 
ently, for  there  was  no  door.  The  result  of  a  polite  hail  was  that  a  window 
was  opened  from  overhead,  and  a  voice — a  girl's  voice — said  : 

"Is  it  you  ?  "    She  said  it  in  a  whisper,  only  just  audible. 

"  Who  ?  "  returned  Masson,  a  little  surprised. 

It  was  not,  perhaps,  an  intelligent  question,  but  it  did  not  seem  to  justify 
what  followed.  The  window  was  shut  with  a  little  shriek,  and  a  pair — or  two 
pairs — of  sturdy  arms  closed  about  Masson's  body.  It  did  not  require  so 
much  force  as  was  used  to  bring  him  to  the  ground,  his  antagonist  or  anta- 
gonists on  top  of  him.  He  explained  as  much  with  some  warmth  as  he  lay 
there,  but  only  had  the  satisfaction  of  hearing  one  of  the  men  say  to  the  other 
— there  were  two,  it  seemed  :  You  tak'  un  by  the  lags,  Mr.  Board,  and  ef  'e 
tries  kicken',  Ah'll  gi'e  un  a  jog  in  the  belly." 

"  Right  y'are,  Jenkins.  .  .  .  Now,  sir,  gently,  if  you  please." 

The  last  words  were  addressed  to  Masson,  and  he  guessed,  from  the  tone 
of  reluctant  respect,  that  the  speaker  was  some  house-servant.  Probably 
the  butler. 

"  All  right,"  he  said.  "  Only,  if  you're  going  to  carry  me,  for  Heaven's 
sake  be  careful.    If  you  drop  me,  it's  murder,  mind.    You'll  be  hanged  for  it." 

"  No  fear,  sir,"  said  Mr.  Board  genially.  "  We  won't  hurt  you,  never 
fear.  What  the  squire'll  do  is  another  matter,  sir,  as  I  dessay  yoi\  guess. 
Ready,  Jenkins  ?  " 

Ah,"  said  Jenkins,  and  moved  forward  with  Masson's  head.  Mr.  Board 
followed  with  his  legs.  In  this  manner,  and  with  an  unpleasant  feeling  that 
one  or  other  of  them  would  certainly  slip,  Masson  made  his  untriumphal 
procession  into  the  house. 


THE  SILVER  THAW 


99 


He  was  dumped,  brutally  by  Jenkins,  respectfully  by  Mr.  Board,  on  the 
Turkey-carpet  of  what — so  far  as  he  could  see  for  the  sudden  glare  of  lights — 
was  the  large  and  armoured  hall  of  a  manor-house. 

He  lay  for  a  moment  on  the  Turkey-carpet  with  closed  eyes.  When  he 
looked  up  there  was  a  tall  and  irascible  old  gentleman  standing  over  him  with 
a  heavy  riding-whip. 

Stand  him  on  his  feet,  Jenkins,  and  you  stand  by  the  door.  Board,  and 
see  that  he  don't  make  a  rush.  Now,  sir  " — the  old  gentleman  addressed 
himself  to  Masson  with  a  most  threatening  countenance — ^'  you're  going  to 
elope  with  my  daughter — eh,  what  ?  " 

Masson  stared.  "  Going  to  elope  with  your  daughter  ?  Might  I  ask — can 
you  explain  to  me  what  the  meaning  of  this  assault  on  me  by  your  servants 
— I  presume  they're  your  servants — means  ?  " 

"  You  might,"  said  the  old  gentleman  caustically.  They  had  their 
orders,  sir,  from  me,  to  bring  you  in  neck  and  crop,  sir — neck  and  crop,  by 
gad  !  You  didn't  expect  that  when  you  came  sneaking  round  here  after  my 
daughter — eh,  what  ?  "  He  thrashed  the  air  significantly.  Any  excuse 
to  offer  before  " 

Masson  backed  away  a  little  towards  a  light  but  solid  chair  that  stood 
near.    It  might  serve  as  a  weapon  if  this  old  madman  attacked. 

Mr.  Board — a  middle-aged  man,  unmistakably  the  butler — put  his  back 
against  the  hall  door  and  stood  rubbing  his  hands.  Jenkins,  a  gaitered 
person,  choked  a  guffaw.  It  seemed  to  Masson  that,  with  three  able-bodied 
persons  opposed  to  him,  he  had  better  try  the  discreet  before  the  valorous 
part. 

"  It  seems  to  me,"  he  said,  raising  his  voice  a  little,  "  that  the  excuse  should 
be  offered  to  me.  I  can  only  imagine  you're  labouring  under  some  delu- 
sion " 

"  Ha  !  "  said  the  old  gentleman. 

"  Which  I  am  quite  willing  to  help  to  clear,  so  far  as  I  am  concerned.  I 
haven't  the  least  idea  what  you  mean  by  accusing  me  of  sneaking  round  after 
your  daughter.  I  have  never  set  eyes  on  your  daughter.  I  don't  know  who 
she  is  or  who  you  are.  I  came  here  off  the  high-road — perhaps  I  ought  to 
say  I'm  motoring  to  London — because  the  roads  are  so  slippery  I  couldn't 
get  on.    Seeing  your  lights,  I  thought  I  could  get  some  assistance  here." 

"  That's  why  you  went  round  to  the  back  of  the  house,  eh  ?  " 

*'  My  dear  sir,"  said  Masson  impatiently,  "  are  you  aware  that  it's  a  pitch- 
dark  night,  that  the  back  and  the  front  of  your  house  are  equally  strange  to 
me,  that  the  mistake  I  made  in  going  to  the  back  instead  of  the  front  is  the 
kind  of  mistake  any  stranger  trying  to  get  here  would  make  ?  " 

He  spoke  with  a  good  deal  of  indignation,  by  no  means  soothed  to  hear 
Jenkins  snigger  :  "  He,  he  !  that's  a  good  un.  Et  was  all  along  of  a  mis- 
take.   He,  he ! "  and  the  squire's  reply,  snorted  insultingly  : 

"  Look  here,  my  young  man,  I  knew  you  were  a  rogue.  I  didn't  know 
you  were  a  cur  too.  Likely  story,  ain't  it  ?  Motoring,  eh  ?  Never  seen 
my  daughter.    What  ?    Never  seen  John  Clifton  o'  the  King's  Arms  neither, 


100 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


I  dare  say  ?  Well,  I  have.  John  Clifton  knows  me,  and  he  knows  I've  got 
him  in  my  pocket.  So  when  you  went  and  ordered  a  horse  and  trap  for  ten 
o'clock  to-night,  mentioning — hang  your  impudence — that  you  might  be 
wanting  it  for  a  young  lady  you  were  going  to  elope  with,  John  Clifton,  he 
came  round  to  me.  '  He'll  be  waiting  about  ten-thirty  to-night,  under  missy's 
window.  That's  the  arrangement,  squire.'  John  Clifton  told  me  that.  '  Ten- 
thirty,'  said  he,  and,  by  gad,  ten-thirty  it  is." 

"  I've  never  heard  of  John  Clifton  in  my  life,"  said  Masson  soothingly. 

"  Stick  to  your  lie,"  snorted  the  squire. 

"  Stick  to  your  mulish  idiocy,"  returned  Masson,  equally  enraged  ;  "  only, 
if  you  want  to  avoid  making  a  drivelling  fool  of  yourself,  send  for  your  daughter. 
I  imagine  she'll  be  able  to  inform  you  that  you've  made  a  mistake,  so  far  as 
I'm  concerned." 

Whether  the  squire,  thus  braved,  would  have  proceeded  at  once  to  carry 
out  the  intention  his  hands,  twitching  at  the  whip,  suggested,  Masson  hardly 
knew.  At  that  moment  an  elderly  lady  opened  a  door  at  the  far  end  of  the 
hall  and  entered. 

"  Oh,  Reginald  !  "  she  cried. 

"  What  is  it  ?  "  asked  the  squire,  turning  at  her. 
"  Is  this  the  young  man  ?  " 

"  Is  this  the  "  the  squire  choked.    "  No,  it  isn't.    This  is  the  young 

man  who  swears  he  isn't  the  young  man.  That's  who  this  young  man  is. 
Wants  me  to  call  Judith  down  to  verify  him.    I'll  be  " 

"  Merely  in  justice  to  the  young  lady,"  said  Masson  scornfully,  as  the 
squire  stopped  for  breath. 

"  Perhaps  "  said  the  elderly  lady,  in  a  deprecating  voice.    "  Possibly, 

Reginald,  it  would  be  fairer.  You  have  never  seen  the  young  man  before, 
have  you  ?    Judith  " 

"  Judith's  a  minx  !  "  said  the  squire  furiously. 

"  But  she  has  never  told  a  lie,"  said  the  elderly  lady. 

"  Call  her  !  "  The  squire  rumbled  the  order,  and  the  elderly  lady  fled. 
"  Judith,  my  dear,  Judith  !  "  Masson  could  hear  her  twittering  to  her  charge 
as  he  leaned  on  the  back  of  the  chair  which  was  to  have  served  him  for  a  weapon 
in  case  the  squire  had  proceeded  to  extremities.  He  supposed  the  matter  was 
now  as  good  as  ended,  and  could  afford  a  smile  at  the  disappointed  expression 
of  Jenkins,  who  was  evidently  the  squire's  principal  backer  in  the  scheme 
of  force  majeure.  Mr.  Board,  indeed,  had  allowed  a  sigh,  as  of  relief,  to  escape 
him  at  the  new  turn  of  affairs,  and  was  for  leaving  his  post  at  the  door. 

"  Didn't  I  tell  you  to  stay  there  ?  "  said  the  squire  sharply  ;  and,  observing 
Masson's  smile,  "  Don't  you  imagine,  my  fine  fellow,  that  you've  escaped 
your  thrashing  yet.    Ha  !  " 

The  last  word  was  an  acknowledgment  of  his  daughter's  arrival  under 
the  wing  of  the  elderly  lady.  Masson  looked  at  the  girl  with  interest.  She 
was  tall  and  slender — a  pretty  girl.  There  was,  Masson  judged,  some  grounds 
for  the  squire's  suspicions,  for  she  was  dressed  for  out  of  doors,  in  hat  and 
furs,  and  seemed  pale  and  upset.    She  avoided  Masson's  eyes. 


Masson  looked  about  him  wildly.  .  .  .  '  My  name  is  Henry,'  he  explained 
*  Henry  Masson '  "  (page  101). 


THE  SILVER  THAW 


101 


"  You  wanted  me,  father,"  she  said. 

"  No,  I  didn't ;  confound  it !  "  said  the  squire  rudely.  "  It  was  your 
aunt  wanted  you.  This  rogue  " — he  indicated  Masson  with  his  riding- whip 
— "  wants  to  save  his  skin  ;  says  he  isn't  your  man.  Ha  !  What  do  you 
say  ?  " 

Masson  waited  in  all  serenity  for  her  reply.  She  seemed  to  hesitate  and 
gulp  for  words.  It  was  excusable,  Masson  thought.  The  old  curmudgeon 
had  frightened  the  wits  half  out  of  her. 

"  What  do  you  say  ?  "  roared  the  squire,  again. 

She  twisted  her  hands  together,  took  a  step  forward,  and,  in  a  trembling 
voice,  addressing  Masson  : 

"  Oh,  Dick  !  "  she  said  fondly. 

Masson  became  aware  that  the  dropping  of  a  pin  might  have  been  audible 
but  for  Mr.  Board's  respectful  sigh  of  dismay  at  the  door.  For  a  second  he 
doubted  his  full  possession  of  his  senses. 

"  What  did  you  say  ?  "  he  stammered. 

"  Oh,  Dick  !    Why,  why  did  you  come  ?    I  wish  "   she  burst  into 

gentle  sobs. 

Masson  looked  about  him  wildly.    He  felt  a  mere  fool. 

"  My  name  is  Henry,"  he  explained — "  Henry  Masson." 
Just  so,"  said  the  squire  grimly.  "  Martha,  take  Judith  upstairs. 
Send  her  to  bed.  Quickly  now  ;  no  talking.  Now,  sir  "  (to  Masson  as  the 
door  closed  upon  the  two  ladies),  "  are  you  going  to  take  your  thrashing  stand- 
ing up  or  lying  down  ?  "  He  had  recovered  his  self-possession,  and  it  was 
Masson  who  felt  his  leaving  him.  Only  for  a  moment,  however.  Then, 
"  Standing  up,"  he  said,  and  gave  Jenkins,  as  that  individual  advanced  to 
collar  him,  a  kick  that  brought  him  to  the  ground.  He  seized  the  momentary 
advantage  to  dodge  the  squire's  whip  and  to  give  a  swing  of  the  chair  into 
Mr.  Board's  bread-basket.  Mr.  Board  fell  back — unfortunately,  against  the 
hall  door,  which  was  against  Masson' s  chance  of  escaping.  It  is  probable 
that  the  next  five  minutes  offered  as  good  an  exhibition  of  rough-and-tumble 
fighting  as  the  hall  of  the  manor-house  had  ever  been  privileged  to  witness. 
Only  superior  agility  enabled  Masson  to  keep  his  end  up,  for,  though  Mr. 
Board's  attack  was  reluctant,  it  was  not  devoid  of  cunning,  and  both  the 
squire  and  Jenkins  were  bulls  for  fierceness.  Indeed,  Masson,  panting  hard, 
was  having  his  chair  wrenched  from  him  by  the  latter,  while  he  dodged  the 
squire's  attempts  to  clinch,  when  he  felt  the  other  door,  through  which  the 
ladies  had  vanished,  scrape  his  back.  It  gave  him  an  idea,  and  he  acted  on 
it.  Letting  Jenkins  have  the  chair  at  full  grip,  which  sent  him  staggering 
backwards,  Masson  butted  the  squire,  turned  the  handle,  and  was  through. 
He  hung  on  to  the  handle  desperately,  feeling  for  a  key.  There  was  none. 
The  opposition  forces  had  got  their  hold,  and  were  forcing  the  door  open. 

It  was  at  this  crisis  that  the  elderly  lady  again  made  her  appearance.  She 
came  bustling  into  Masson's  back,  crying  aloud,  "  She's  gone  !  She's  gone 
with  the  other  young  man  !  Oh,  dear  "  (as  she  perceived  Masson),  what  is 
happening  ?    Where  is  my  brother  ?  " 


102 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  In  there,"  said  Masson,  and  let  go. 

"  Reginald  !  "  she  cried,  as  the  squire  came  bouncing  through.  "  Stop  ! 
It's  not  this  young  man.  It's  another  young  man  ;  and  Judith's  gone.  She 
got  out  of  her  bedroom  window,  and  they're  driving  off  now  !  " 

"  What  ?  "  cried  the  squire. 

"  Perhaps,"  said  Masson  politely,  "  you  will  now  believe  what  I  said." 

He  might  as  well  have  addressed  the  walls  for  all  the  attention  he  received. 
The  squire  had  no  sooner  grasped  the  new  situation  than  he  was  foaming  for 
the  front  door,  giving  directions  at  the  top  of  his  voice. 

"  Put  in  the  mare,  Jenkins.  Saddle  Black  Beauty.  Tell  the  boy  to  ride 
for  the  police.    Drat  and  confound  this  " 

Masson  gathered  that  the  squire's  broken  sentences  signified  that  he  had 
stepped  out  into  the  ice-paved  night,  with  the  inevitable  results.  However, 
he  must  have  picked  himself  up,  for  his  halloaing  grew  fainter. 

"  But  how  it  will  all  end.  Heaven  only  knows,"  said  the  elderly  lady  to 
Masson,  in  a  despairing  way. 

"  I'm  afraid  you're  right,"  said  Masson.    "  Good  evening,  madam." 

The  hall  door  was  open,  his  late  antagonists  had  disappeared,  but  since 
there  was  no  knowing  when  they  would  return,  or  in  what  frame  of  mind, 
it  was  not  wise  to  lose  an  opportunity.  Stepping  out  into  the  darkness,  Masson 
found  that  the  silver  thaw  had  turned  to  rain,  and  that  the  path,  though 
slippery  in  parts,  was  safety  itself  to  what  it  had  been.  He  followed  the 
winding  drive  until  he  came  to  the  white  gate  and  the  road  beyond.  There, 
unnoticed,  it  seemed,  and  untouched,  stood  his  car  by  the  side  of  the  road. 
He  started  it  and  moved  on  at  a  moderate  pace.  A  couple  of  minutes  later 
he  neared  two  figures  going  at  a  plodding  canter  in  the  light  of  his  lamps. 
The  one  that  led  was  tall  and  large.  "  The  squire,"  thought  Masson,  and 
hooted  vigorously. 

"  A  hundred  pounds  if  you'll  give  me  a  lift,"  cried  the  squire.  "  I  want 
to  catch  up  a  horse  and  trap — just  ahead.  Won't  take  you  three  minutes. 
A  hundred  pounds  !    Come  !  " 

"  For  mercy's  sake,  sir,  do  !  "  said  the  other — Mr.  Board,  it  was  clear. 
Neither  of  the  two  seemed  to  know  whom  they  were  addressing  ;  or  else  they 
had  forgotten  the  events  of  the  evening,  which  hardly  seemed  possible. 

"I'm  afraid — very  sorry — but  I  can't  stop,"  said  Masson  politely.  He 
bore  them  no  grudge,  on  the  whole  ;  but,  having  witnessed  the  squire  in  the 
fulness  of  his  raging,  he  felt  no  desire  to  cumber  himself  with  him  any  more. 
It  would  be  conniving  at  manslaughter.  "  Quite  impossible,"  he  repeated, 
as  he  whizzed  by  them. 

He  put  on  speed,  turned  a  bend  of  the  highway  a  minute  and  a  half  later, 
and  pulled  up  just  in  time  to  avoid  not  mere  connivance,  but  actual  committal 
of  manslaughter.  For  there,  in  the  very  centre  of  the  road,  was  the  horse 
and  trap  which  the  others  were  so  anxious  to  come  up  with.  Only  it  was  no 
longer  a  horse  and  trap  united,  but  a  horse  and  a  trap  quite  separate  entities — of 
which,  moreover,  the  trap  lay  on  one  side,  minus  a  wheel  and  with  broken  shafts. 

So  much  Masson's  lights  showed  him  as  he  came  to  a  stop  just  in  time. 


THE  SILVER  THAW 


ICS 


A  little  shriek  that  arose  at  the  same  moment  from  the  bank  at  the  side  of 
the  road  revealed  more. 

Oh,  Dick,  is  it— father  ?  " 

*'  No,"  said  Mr.  Masson.  With  every  wish  to  be  neutral  in  this  family 
affair,  he  could  not  resist  giving  so  much  consolation.  A  young  man,  who 
had,  it  seemed,  been  divided  between  soothing  the  author  of  the  little  shriek 
and  holding  on  to  the  frightened  horse — not  altogether  a  simple  division  of 
labour — came  forward  at  this.  "  Excuse  me,  sir,"  he  said  to  Masson :  ''I 
don't  know  who  you  are,  but  " 

"  Oh,  Dick,  it's  the  other  young  man — ^Mr. — Mr,  Henry."  The  squire's 
daughter  spoke  from  the  bank. 

"  Henry  Masson,"  said  that  gentleman  ;  "  not  Dick  !  I  should  have 
been  obliged,"  he  continued,  with  a  good  deal  of  urbanity,  "  if  you  could 
have  mentioned  that  fact  half  an  hour  ago."  He  bore  the  squire's  daughter 
no  grudge,  on  the  whole,  but  he  felt  that  he  was  entitled  to  that  small  piece 
of  irony  at  least.    It  was  not  altogether  amusing  to  be  "  the  other  young  man." 

The  young  man — the  real  Dick — had  apparently  received  only  a  partial 
account  of  the  evening's  proceedings. 

"  I'm  afraid  I  don't  understand,"  he  said  frankly.  "  I  know  something 
went  wrong  up  at  the  house — Judy  was  telling  me  just  as  our  horse  came 
down — confound  that  ice  thaw  !    The  squire  mistook  you  for  me,  didn't  he  ?  " 

"  Well,"  said  Masson,  "  the  squire  couldn't  very  well  help  making  the 

mistake  when  "    A  fierce  bellowing  not  far  in  the  rear  interrupted  him. 

"  That  is  the  squire,  I  suppose,"  he  went  on.  "  I  passed  him  a  couple  of 
minutes  ago.    He  seemed  anxious  to  come  up  with  you." 

"  Good  heavens  !  "  said  the  young  man.  "  Look  here,  sir.  I  don't  know 
if  you  know  the  state  of  affairs.  This  lady  and  I  wish  to  get  married.  You 
see  what's  happened  ?    Cart  smashed.    If  you  could  give  us  a  lift  " 

He  spoke  very  pleasantly  and  yet  earnestly.  Masson  bore  no  grudge 
against  him.  As  he  hesitated,  the  squire's  daughter  came  from  the  hedge 
bank,  where  she  had  been  sitting,  into  the  light  of  his  lamps. 

"  You  will  forgive  me,  won't  you  ?  "  she  said  winningly.  "  It  was  my 
only  chance  of  getting  away.  I  was  frantic."  She  looked  very  piteous  and 
pretty  in  the  light  of  the  lamps.    "  You  will,  won't  you  ?  "  she  repeated. 

"  Certainly,"  said  Masson  ;  "  there's  nothing  to  forgive.  Pray  get  in. 
I  ought  to  think  myself  lucky  to  have  been  the  young  man,  if  it  was  only 
for  ten  minutes." 

"  Come,  Dick — quick  !  "  cried  the  squire's  daughter. 

The  young  man  let  the  horse  go  and  climbed  into  the  car. 

"Just  in  time,  I  think,"  he  said,  as  Masson  backed  a  little  and  slipped 
the  car  past  the  fallen  trap  to  a  loud  chorus  of  "  Stop,  you  rogue  !  " 

"  Good  night,  squire  !  "  they  all  cried,  as  they  went  ahead  through  the 
thin,  falling  rain. 

Later  on,  when  Masson  accepted  an  invita.tion  to  be  best  man  at  the  wedding 
of  Mr.  Richard  Castle  with  Miss  Judith  Trelawney,  he  realised  that  he  bad 
not  come  so  badly  out  of  that  silver  thav\^.    He  felt  magnanimous,  in  fact. 


Carnage 

By  Compton  Mackenzie 

Royal  Navy 

I  AM  not  a  man  naturally  fond  of  adventure,  but  on  the  contrary  have 
preserved  from  earliest  youth  an  ambition  to  stay  at  home  and  watch 
from  a  sunny  window-seat  the  orderly  course  of  humanity  along  an  orderly 
street. 

Fortune,  however,  by  depriving  my  parents  of  everything  except  myself, 
and  myself  of  everything  except  a  flute,  made  me  a  raggle-taggle  wanderer, 
dependent  for  my  livelihood  on  the  charms  of  music. 

Ignorant  of  luxury  through  the  exigencies  of  a  nomadic  existence,  I  owned 
nevertheless  a  very  fastidious  taste  which  often  led  me  to  despise  the  miseries 
of  my  situation — so  much  so  that  I  believe  I  would  rather  a  thousand  times 
depend  on  the  hard  ground  than  sacrifice  my  sensibility  in  the  endurance 
of  an  uncongenial  bedfellow. 

So  much  by  way  of  explaining  the  following  adventure,  which  was 
actually  produced  by  my  inability  to  suffer  a  common  hardship  of  the 
wanderer's  lot. 

On  a  December  dusk  of  the  year  1753,  I  found  myself,  with  apparently 
no  prospect  of  a  lodging,  on  a  bleak  high-road  in  the  middle  of  Cornwall.  What 
horrid  impulse  took  me  to  that  barbarous  peninsula,  I  cannot  now  recall 
exactly  ;  but  probably  my  journey  was  connected  with  some  roadside  rumour 
of  prosperity  to  be  found  in  the  West  of  England  at  the  holiday  season. 

My  first  experience  of  Cornish  hospitality  was  not  happy  ;  for,  having 
begun  to  flute  merrily  in  the  yard  of  an  outlying  farmhouse,  the  savage  owner 
loosed  a  pair  of  lean  hounds,  who  followed  me  with  a  very  odious  barking 
nearly  half  a  mile  along  the  road.  I  was  determined  to  avoid  such  places 
in  future,  and  to  keep  my  breath  for  a  town,  where  the  amenity  of  a  closer 
social  intercourse  might  have  evolved  a  more  generous  spirit  among  the 
inhabitants. 

With  gloomy  thoughts  I  trudged  on,  without  a  glimpse  of  any  village  or 
hamlet,  or  even  of  an  isolated  dwelling  such  as  I  had  lately  tried. 

The  night  was  coming  up  fast  behind  me,  and  I  was  already  pondering 
the  imminent  extinction  of  my  life's  flame  in  the  wind-swept  bogs  on  either 

104 


CARNAGE 


105 


side  of  the  path,  when  I  came  suddenly  on  a  small  inn,  not  visible  before 
on  account  of  the  road's  curve  and  a  clump  of  firs  shorn  and  blistered  by 
the  prevailing  wind. 

Here  I  asked  for  a  bed  ;  but  on  being  informed  that  I  must  share  it  with 
a  degraded  idiot  whom  I  perceived  slobbering  in  a  corner  of  the  taproom,  I 
scorned  the  accommodation  and  inquired  the  distance  and  direction  of  the 
nearest  village. 

"  There's  no  village  for  another  five  mile  or  more,"  said  the  landlord. 
"  What's  your  trade,  master  ?  " 

I  did  not  wish  to  gratify  the  bumpkin's  curiosity  ;  but  reflecting  that  I 
might  hear  of  a  junketing  in  the  neighbourhood,  told  him  I  was  a  musician. 
Then  why  don't  'ee  make  for  Cannebrake  ?  "  he  asked. 
Cannebrake  ?  "  I  exclaimed.    "  How  on  earth  shall  I  make  for  a  place 
of  whose  existence  I  am  only  this  moment  aware  ?  " 

Never  heard  of  Cannebrake  o'  the  Starlings  ?  "  he  exclaimed.  "  Why, 
'tis  a  famous  place  here  around,  and  the  old  lord  he  might  be  proud  to  listen 
to  a  parcel  o'  music.    Come,  I'll  show  'ee  the  road." 

A  burst  of  gibberish  from  the  idiot  made  up  my  mind,  and  I  hurried  after 
the  landlord,  who  with  much  circumlocution  described  my  route.  I  left  him 
by  the  inn  door,  and  when  I  turned  once  or  twice  to  wave  a  farewell,  saw  him 
still  standing  there,  a  white  patch  in  the  fading  light. 

I  passed,  according  to  his  directions,  a  dry  tree,  a  slab  of  granite  shaped 
like  an  elephant's  back,  and  a  stretch  of  waste  water  stuck  here  and  there  with 
withered  reeds  like  an  old  brush,  until  I  reached  a  tall  Celtic  cross  that  leaned 
very  forbiddingly  towards  the  path.  Here  a  side  track  dipped  down  from 
the  main  road  to  a  valley  whose  ample  vegetation  contrasted  strangely  with 
the  barren  moors  above.  My  path  was  soon  overarched  with  trees.  A  smell 
of  damp  woodland  pervaded  its  gloom,  and  my  footsteps  were  muffled  by 
the  drift  of  wet  leaves.  Had  it  not  been  for  the  deep  ruts  into  which  from 
time  to  time  I  slipped,  I  should  have  concluded  I  had  missed  the  path  and 
was  penetrating  towards  the  heart  of  a  forest. 

I  emerged  from  the  avenue  at  last ;  though  by  now  it  was  so  dark  that 
only  the  fresher  air  and  the  rasping  of  my  feet  on  stones  told  me  I  was  again 
in  open  country.  But  it  was  impossible  to  advance,  and  I  was  beginning  to 
regret  the  inn  and  rail  at  myself  for  objecting  to  the  idiot's  company,  when 
I  saw  above  a  black  hill -top  the  yellow  rim  of  the  full  moon,  whose  light, 
increasing  every  moment,  was  presently  strong  enough  to  show  me  I  was  not 
fifty  yards  from  the  great  gates  of  Cannebrake. 

Yet  I  was  half  afraid  to  set  them  creaking  in  the  silence,  so  menacing  were 
they  between  their  tall  stone  pillars,  so  complete  was  the  absence  of  any 
welcome. 

I  have  often  had  occasion  to  visit  the  seats  of  the  nobility  and  gentry  in 
more  civilised  corners  of  England,  and  the  air  of  abandonment  that  surrounded 
the  entrance  of  Cannebrake  did  not  seem  to  consort  with  the  traditions  of 
any  famous  or  honoured  name. 

The  very  moonlight  in  that  hollow  was  tainted  with  a  miasma,  setting 


106 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


no  clear  contrasts  of  shadow  and  silver,  robbing  the  pillars  of  all  solidity 
and  giving  the  landscape  the  tremulous  outlines  of  a  half-remembered 
dream. 

I  had  never  before  experienced  the  sensation  of  absolute  decay.  I  had 
been  affected  by  the  fall  of  autumn  leaves  from  dripping  branches,  by  the 
melting  of  ice  on  warm  winter  mornings  ;  but  here  dissolution  was  silent, 
without  a  curlew's  cry  or  lisp  of  withered  grass  to  mark  its  accomplishment. 

At  last,  by  an  effort  of  common  sense,  I  pushed  the  gates  ajar,  and  the 
creaking  of  them,  as  they  swung  back  upon  their  hinges,  followed  me  up  the 
moss-grown  drive  with  a  wailful  indignation. 

The  shrubbery  planted  round  the  gates  did  not  extend  far,  and  the  drive 
soon  unfolded  its  direction,  running  straight  and  bare  over  a  wide,  undulating 
grassland  populated  with  the  shadowy  forms  of  cattle,  to  the  doors  of  Canne- 
brake — a  long,  low  building  of  the  undistinguished  architecture  which  I  had 
already  learned  to  associate  with  Cornish  houses. 

I  stood  awhile  contemplating  the  mansion  that  seemed  impalpable  in 
the  webs  of  the  moon. 

There  was  neither  barking  of  dogs  nor  any  sign  of  human  life  until  I 
observed  the  shadow  of  a  man  carrying  from  room  to  room  of  the  second 
story  a  circle  of  candlelight  increasing  and  diminishing  with  each  entrance 
and  exit.  I  supposed  it  to  be  a  servant's  nightly  round  of  inspection,  and, 
assured  of  the  existence  of  life  within,  moved  across  to  the  heavily  nailed 
door. 

I  would  have  pulled  at  once  the  great  iron  bell-chain,  had  it  not  been 
for  a  strange  disinclination  to  destroy  the  quiet  with  so  wild  a  sound.  As  it 
was,  I  stood  there  holding  my  breath,  I  believe,  while  I  deciphered  the 
coat-of-arms  above  the  door — a  medley  of  Turks'  heads  and  birds. 

Then,  with  the  slight  knowledge  of  French  gleaned  on  my  wanderings,  I 
fell  to  translating  the  motto  of  the  family,  "  Aux  amis  I'amour,  aux  ennemis 
la  mort." 

Notwithstanding  the  pledge  of  this  sentiment  in  stone,  I  could  not  spur 
myself  into  arousing  the  inmates ;  but  as  there  was  a  rank  growth  of  grass 
between  the  drive  and  the  house  itself,  I  availed  myself  of  its  quiet  to  crawl 
round  and  peer  unheard  into  the  windows  on  the  ground  floor. 

On  a  closer  view  of  the  window  to  the  right  of  the  door,  I  saw  glinting  on 
the  darkness  of  heavy  curtains  a  thin  line  of  light.  Without  more  ado  I  pulled 
out  my  flute  and  started  "  Come,  Lasses  and  Lads." 

This  harmless  old  air  seemed  to  produce  a  most  distressing  effect  upon  the 
inmates,  for  the  curtains  were  immediately  flung  back  and  an  elderly  gentle- 
man, with  wig  all  awry  and  hands  tugging  at  his  stock,  stared  out  into  the 
night  as  if  afraid  of  hell. 

I  tapped  gently  with  my  flute  upon  the  lattice,  and  in  response  to  my 
knocking,  but  with  evident  dismay,  my  listener  was  persuaded  to  throw 
it  open. 

Whether  the  sight  of  him  pale  and  horror-struck  had  led  me  to  expect 
a  timid  inquiry  as  to  my  business,  I  do  not  know,  but  I  doubt  if  I  ever  heard 


CARNAGE 


107 


so  deep  a  voice  from  any  human  creature  before.  It  rumbled  like  a  bull's 
and,  I  vow,  alarmed  me  more  than  the  music  of  my  instrument  had  alarmed 
its  owner. 

A  horrid  stream  of  blasphemies  heralded  his  demand  to  know  my  business. 

"  My  name,  my  lord,  is  Tripconey — Peter  Tripconey,  a  flute-player,  and 
your  lordship's  very  humble,  obedient  servant  to  command." 

This  frank  avowal  had  the  effect  of  slightly  mitigating  his  wrath,  and  he 
was  pleased  to  ask  me  what  I  did  in  his  park  at  such  an  ungodly  hour. 

"  Indeed,  my  lord,  I  was  sent  here." 

"  Sent  here,  you  vagabond  ?    By  whom  ?  " 

"  By  an  inn-keeper  who  plies  a  poor  trade  on  the  desolate  moors  adjacent 
to  your  lordship's  estate." 

He  seemed  relieved  by  my  information,  and  was  gracious  enough  to  ask 
if  I  could  play  any  sea-songs.  I  answered  I  could  play  and  sing  the  "  Ballad 
of  the  Golden  Vanity"  and  many  more  besides,  as  well  as  any  man  alive. 

Hark  'ee,  Cynthia,"  he  said,  turning  to  address  another  inmate.  "  There's 
a  musician  outside.  Shall  we  have  him  in,  girl  ?  Shall  we  have  a  merry- 
making ?  The  poor  wretch  looks  as  if  a  good  supper  would  do  him  no  harm. 
Hi,  sirrah,  can  you  eat  ?  "  he  asked,  turning  round  again  to  me. 

I  assured  him  I  had  a  very  tolerable  appetite,  and  he  bade  me  ring  the 
bell  forthwith,  vowing  he  would  give  me  bed  and  board  for  a  night's  music. 
I  made  haste  to  obey  his  orders,  and  when  I  stepped  into  the  great  hall,  lighted 
by  a  score  of  candles  and  the  blaze  of  a  gigantic  fire  roaring  on  the  hearth,  was 
glad  I  had  done  so. 

His  lordship  with  much  condescension  presented  me  to  his  daughter,  the 
Honourable  Miss  Cynthia  Starling,  who  received  me  with  the  courtesy  it 
delights  a  woman  of  rank  to  exercise.  In  the  presence  of  this  lovely  creature 
I  threw  off  every  evil  foreboding,  and  made  haste  to  entertain  the  noble 
company  with  as  much  wit  as  I  could  command.  I  may  say  I  was  very 
successful. 

His  lordship  laughed  very  heartily  at  all  my  sallies,  and  once  or  twice  I 
plainly  detected  a  faint  smile  pass  over  the  classic  features  of  the  honourable 
and  handsome  young  woman. 

His  lordship  excused  himself  from  joining  me  at  supper,  pointing  out 
with  much  intelligence  that,  having  already  dined,  a  second  meal  so  soon 
after  the  other  would  be  likely  to  injure  his  night's  rest.  I  cordially  agreed 
with  him,  and  drank  his  health  in  a  pint  bumper  of  a  very  level  and  solid  old 
Burgundy.  His  lordship  was  pleased  to  acknowledge  my  toast,  and  indeed 
went  so  far  as  to  drink  prosperity  to  the  humble  flute-player  sheltered  by  his 
hospitable  roof. 

When  I  had  eaten  as  much  as  I  wanted,  my  host  called  out  in  his  great 
voice  for  the  butler,  whom  I  disliked  at  first  sight.  He  was  a  tall,  thin  man, 
with  pouched  eyes  and  an  unnaturally  sleek  face  the  colour  of  tallow.  His 
hands  were  hairy,  blue  with  gunpowder,  and  criss-crossed  with  livid  scars. 

However,  I  soon  forgot  him  in  racking  my  memory  for  the  old 
sea-tunes  which  his  lordship  wished  to  hear.    The  latter  sat  upright  in  the 


108 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


ingle,  beating  time  to  the  choruses  with  his  ebony  cane,  or  rather  crutched- 
stick,  which  he  leaned  upon  very  heavily  in  his  walk,  being,  as  I  supposed, 
a  sufferer  from  the  gout.  The  crutch  itself  was  very  massive  and  bound  with 
gold  bands. 

I  also  played  some  polite  melodies  for  the  pleasure  of  her  ladyship,  which 
she  commended  very  earnestly;  but  when  she  had  wished  us  a  good  night 
and  retired  to  her  chamber,  my  Lord  Cannebrake  set  out  to  curse  all  love- 
songs  and  country  dances,  and  bade  me  get  back  immediately  to  the  sea-tunes 
which  he  loved  so  well. 

Presently  he  called  for  the  butler,  Springle,  and  to  my  surprise,  and  I 
may  add  profound  vexation,  invited  him  to  take  a  chair  by  the  fire  and  join 
in  the  choruses.  I  was  shocked  to  see  the  familiar  way  in  which  this  fellow 
treated  his  master,  and,  for  my  own  part,  was  quick  to  put  the  insolent  rogue 
in  his  place  as  often  as  I  could,  thus  showing  him  very  plainly  how  I  esteemed 
his  presumption. 

One  or  two  of  my  hits  went  very  well  with  his  lordship ;  and  though  Mr. 
Springle  snarled  at  me  from  his  chair,  I  was  not  at  all  afraid  to  bait  him 
whenever  the  circumstances  of  the  conversation  gave  me  an  opportunity. 

"  Springle,"  said  his  lordship  after  a  round  of  tunes,  "  Mr.  Tripconey  must 
whet  his  whistle.  Bring  in  another  bottle  of  Burgundy  and  warm  me  a  noggin 
of  rum." 

I  was  amazed  to  hear  a  nobleman  favour  the  plebeian  beverage  of  rum, 
and  still  more  deeply  amazed  to  hear  his  butler  answer  him  very  saucily,  "  Aye, 
aye,"  without  offering  to  move  himself. 

"  Get  up,  you  impudent  swab  !  "  bellowed  Lord  Cannebrake.  "  What ! 
Disobey  orders,  would  you,  you  dog  !  You  whimpering,  sneering,  dirty  ship's 
steward." 

Mr.  Springle,  perceiving  he  had  made  too  free  with  his  master's  affable- 
ness,  rose  at  once  and  slunk  from  the  hall. 

My  Lord  Cannebrake  growled  to  himself  awhile,  and  then  sat  moodily 
silent,  staring  into  the  fire. 

I  seized  the  occasion  of  the  butler's  absence  to  ask  him  point  blank  why 
the  first  sounds  of  my  flute  had  alarmed  him  so  violently.  "  For,"  said  I, 
"  there  is  nothing  surprising  at  this  jolly  season  of  the  year,  when  waits  and 
mummers  are  abroad,  in  hearing  the  sound  of  music  by  night." 

"  Did  I  look  frightened,  eh  ?  "  asked  his  lordship.  "  Hah,  and  I  was 
frightened,  woundily  frightened.  I  come,  sir,  of  a  plaguy  old  family,  and  I 
live  in  a  plaguy  old  house,  and  I've  inherited  very  little  else  but  a  plaguy  crew 
of  ghosts." 

"  And  you  mistook  me  for  one  of  'em  ?  "  I  laughed. 

"  We  Starlings,"  he  went  on,  "  like  most  old  families,  have  our  omens  and 
death  cries  and  what  not,  and  it  has  always  been  accounted  very  ill  work  for 
a  Starling  to  hear  a  starling's  whistle." 

I  was  somewhat  put  about  to  learn  that  my  playing  had  been  mistaken 
for  a  vulgar  bird's  whistle,  but,  concealing  my  annoyance  very  genteely,  laughed 
the  matter  off. 


CARNAGE 


109 


"  Indeed,  my  lord,  I  believe  that  is  the  first  time  that  ever  my  flute  was 
taken  for  a  bird." 

"  Yes,"  he  murmured,  more  to  himself  than  to  me,  "  yes,  I  heard  that 
whistle  forty  days  out  from  Sierra  Leone,  and  the  next  day  we  was  flinging 
half-cooked  niggers  into  the  sea  and  " 

He  stopped  suddenly  and  looked  me  full  in  the  face,  but  I  thought  his 
mind  was  wandering  and  paid  small  attention  to  his  wild  words. 

"  And  I  heard  it  again  when  we  were  careening  in  the  Pearl  Islands  off 
Panama  just  before  I  was  took  with  Yellow  Jack,  but  I've  never  heard  it 
since  till  to-night.  Ecod,  I  don't  like  being  my  Lord  Cannebrake,  with  ghosts 
thick  as  seagulls  round  about.  I  was  happier  before  ;  I  was  happier  in  the 
pleasant  Isle  of  Thanet  with  the  sea-wind  singing  day  and  night  round  my 
cottage.  I  used  to  do  nothing  mostly,  except  sight  the  craft  beating  round 
the  Foreland,  and  think  of  'em  so  white  and  handsome  in  the  Downs,  a-stroking 
all  the  while  my  little  daughter's  light-brown  hair.  And  now  look  at  me, 
stuck  in  a  low,  dirty  swamp  ten  miles  from  the  sound  of  breakers,  wi'  nothing 
to  think  of  but  ghosts.  That's  bad  for  a  man  who,  mark  you,  was  a-seafaring 
once.  But  there  came  an  ague  and  took  one  ;  and  another  broke  his  neck 
out  hunting  ;  and  the  third,  he  fell  into  the  pool  fishing  for  carp  ;  and  so  I 
became  Lord  Cannebrake." 

I  was  at  a  loss  to  know  why  this  elderly  nobleman  honoured  me  with  his 
confidence,  but  ascribed  it  to  the  influence  of  the  old  sea-songs  and  my  own 
insignificance,  for  I  doubt  he  never  thought  me  a  person  of  much  importance, 
and  he  went  on  with  his  monologue  without  seeming  to  expect  any  comment 
from  me. 

"  Then  there's  Cynthia.  Cannebrake's  no  place  for  a  high-spirited  young 
woman.  London's  the  place  for  her,  where  she  can  meet  women  of  quality 
and  learn  the  ways  of  fashion.  She's  a  sweet  maid.  I  never  knew  a  sweeter. 
But  what's  to  become  of  her,  buried  alive,  in  a  manner  of  speaking,  and  like 
to  grow  into  a  mumbling,  fumbling  old  maid  with  nothing  to  watch  all  her 
life  but  the  sun's  rise  and  set,  and  winter  coming  in  cold,  and  the  spring-time 
rain,  and  a  few  flowers  of  summer  ?  " 

Here  I  made  bold  to  offer  a  suggestion  that  he  should  go  back  to  the  Isle 
of  Thanet. 

"  Ah,  why  don't  I,  Mr.  Flute-player  ?  I'll  tell  you  why,"  and  he  leaned 
over,  whispering  in  my  ear  : 

"  Because  I  dare  not.  Because  I  lived  a  vile,  bad  life  when  I  was  young, 
and  I'm  afraid.  That's  a  terrible  thing  for  you  to  ponder,  Mr.  Tripconey — 
an  old  man  living  alone  in  a  dip  of  these  wild  moors — afraid.  Listening  to 
the  clock  tick-ticking,  and  all  the  time  fast  afraid.  You've  seen  me,  white 
and  shaking,  when  you  tapped  on  the  window :  me — Captain  Starling — 
afraid." 

Springle's  entrance  with  rum  enough  for  half  a  dozen  put  an  end  to  further 
reminiscence. 

"  Why,  Conrad,"  said  his  lordship,  why,  Conrad,  boy,  I  see  you've  set 
a  glass  for  yourself.    That  was  thoughtful  of  you,  Conrad." 


110 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Then  suddenly  the  old  man's  fury  broke  out — very  terrible. 

"  And  so  you'd  make  a  nincompoop  of  me  before  my  guests,  would  you  ? 
Below  deck,  you  swab  !  "  he  roared,  and,  picking  up  one  of  the  heavy  cut- 
glass  goblets,  flung  it  between  the  butler's  legs  as  he  hurried  from  the  hall. 
Lord  Cannebrake  laughed  and  made  me  fill  up  my  glass,  while  he  poured  out 
for  himself  an  extra  strong  allowance  of  rum. 

"  Master  Spr ingle  thinks  he  can  do  as  he  likes  because  I  give  him  a  moderate 
amount  of  freedom,  seeing  that  we  were  shipmates  once." 

"It  is  indeed  a  condescension  on  your  side,  my  lord,  for  which  the  fellow 
shows  himself  monstrous  ungrateful.   I  drink  your  lordship's  very  good  health." 

He  acknowledged  the  compliment  by  draining  his  glass  to  me,  and  I  could 
not  forbear  my  admiration  to  see  how  he  poured  the  fiery  liquor  down  his  throat 
at  a  single  gulp.  I  myself,  a  timid  drinker,  could  never  have  survived  the 
quarter  of  it  sipped  slowly.  When  he  had  put  down  his  glass  I  saw  taht  he 
was  sniffing  the  air  as  a  stag  sniffs  for  water. 

"  Tell  me,"  he  demanded,  "  can  you  smell  sea-water  ?  " 

So  unusual  a  question  put  me  in  some  confusion,  for  if  I  laughed  it  aside 
I  would  have  seemed  to  suspect  him  of  drunkenness.  I  determined  there- 
fore to  humour  his  fancy,  and  told  him  very  gravely  that  I  could  not  smell 
sea-water. 

"  I  doubt  it's  my  fancy,"  he  muttered.  "  Or  rum.  Rum  more  likely." 
With  which  he  gulped  down  a  second  glass  even  stronger  than  the  former. 
All  at  once  a  horrid  cry  rang  through  the  house.  The  long-drawn  echo  of  it 
froze  my  blood  and  set  my  glass  clinking  against  the  decanter  in  a  tumult 
of  apprehension. 

"  What's  that  ?  "  gasped  his  lordship.  And  here  let  me  assure  you,  he 
looked  as  much  alarmed  as  myself.  I  threw  a  glance  up  to  the  gallery,  expect- 
ing to  see  her  ladyship  in  bed-gown  peering  over  the  balustrade.  But  there 
was  nothing. 

Then  Springle,  his  face  as  livid  as  the  criss-cross  scars  on  his  hand,  burst 
into  the  hall. 

"  Cap'n  Starling  !    Cap'n  Starling  1  "  he  cried. 

"  Aye,  aye,"  muttered  my  lord  in  the  dead  voice  of  profoundest  agitation. 
*'  Cap'n  Starling  !  "  moaned  the  butler. 

"  Eh,  what !  "  exclaimed  his  master.  "  Who  the  plague  are  you  calling 
'  cap'n  '  ?    Ha'n't  you  learned  'tis  '  my  lord  '  nowadays  ?  " 

"  To  blazes  wi'  lords,"  chattered  Springle.  "  Sea-lords  and  land-lords. 
Here's  Cap'n  Swall  walking  up  the  path  to  this  house." 

"Cap'n  Swall?"  repeated  his  lordship.  "Cap'n  Swall?  Here,  give 
me  the  rum,  my  handsome." 

He  drained  the  glass  a  third  time,  which  seemed  to  calm  his  excitement. 

"  This  ain't  a  fancy  of  yours,  Conrad  ?  " 

"  No  fancy,  my  lord.  I  seed  him  quite  plain  and  the  stars  a-shining  through 
his  wicked  bow  legs  as  he  come  down  the  slope.  But  let  him  come  !  "  Springle 
almost  screamed.  "  Let  the  swab  come  !  We're  too  many  for  him,  with 
pleasant  talk  of  old  ships  and  a  knife  that  goes  in  easy  and  quick  like." 


CARNAGE 


111 


I  confess  I  was  amazed  by  the  coolness  with  which  the  rascal  proposed 
to  murder  a  fellow-creature,  and  was  relieved  to  hear  his  lordship  discourage 
the  notion. 

"  None  of  that,"  he  commanded.  "  None  of  that.  If  'tis  Matthew  Swall, 
'tis  him  ;  and  maybe  there's  a  reckoning,  and  maybe  there  isn't,  but  none 
of  that.  If  'tis  man  to  man,  him  and  me,  'tis  out  in  the  moonlight  with  ship's 
cutlasses  and  you  and  Mr.  Tripconey  here  to  see  fair  play.  So  drink  the  rum, 
you  cowardly  dog,  and  stand  by." 

Springle  swallowed  the  spirit,  and  the  three  of  us  waited  in  silence  till 
there  came  a  ringing  peal  from  the  great  bell,  a  peal  that  echoed  jangling  and 
clanging  through  Cannebrake  of  the  Starlings. 

"  Must  I  let  him  in,  cap'n  ?  "  whispered  Springle. 

There  was  a  tap-tap  on  the  lattice,  but  when  we  turned  towards  the 
sound  the  curtains  were  close  drawn  and  we  knew  the  man  outside  could 
not  see  us. 

"  Let  him  in,"  said  his  lordship,  standing  up  very  stern. 

Conrad  moved  sideways  to  the  door,  and  what  with  the  way  he  kept  twitch- 
ing his  hairy  hands,  and  what  with  his  chestnut-brown  suit  and  his  manner 
of  walking,  I  could  not  help  comparing  him  to  a  large  crab. 

Captain  Swall  followed  the  servant  into  his  master's  presence.  He  was 
a  short,  thickset,  squab-nosed  man,  much  weather-beaten,  and  wearing  a 
soiled  blue  coat  trimmed  with  gold  lace  frayed  and  tarnished.  In  his  right 
hand  he  carried  a  cocked  beaver  hat,  in  the  other  a  pistol.  Flinging  down 
the  hat,  he  went  with  outstretched  palm  right  up  to  Lord  Cannebrake, 
saying  : 

"  Well,  if  this  don't  beat  pay-day.  Messmate,  how  are  ye  ?  Lord  Canne- 
brake now,  ain't  it  ?  And  here's  Conrad  Springle  and  a  bottle  of  rum  and 
Matthew  Swall  of  the  Happy  Return,  and — why,  bless  me,"  he  added,  catching 
sight  of  me,     here's  a  strange  face  after  all." 

His  lordship  never  offered  to  present  me,  but,  coming  sharp  to  the  point, 
said  : 

"  I  thought  you  were  dead,  Matthew." 

"  I  know  ye  did,  Dicky.  Nor  more  isn't  that  very  astonishing  seeing  as 
I  thought  I  were  dead  myself.  It  was  a  cunning  move  of  yourn,  Dicky,  that 
'ere  sheering  off  in  Jamestown.  It  was  a  clever  trick,  when  you  thought 
you'd  quit  being  a  gentleman  of  fortune,  to  leave  me  laying  low  with  Yellow 
Jack,  and  not  a  single  golden  George  to  so  much  as  spit  on,  not  a  single  golden 
George  to  get  me  clear  of  Virginia  and  the  tobacco  planters.  And  I  was  took, 
Dicky.  I  was  took  all  right  and  sold  five  hundred  miles  up  country,  to  a 
Frenchman  whose  throat  I  slit  so  as  he  died  quicker  nor  ever  you'd  think  a 
man  could  die." 

"  Mr.  Tripconey,"  said  his  lordship  to  me,  "  I  think  you'll  find  your  bed- 
room prepared.    Springle,  show  Mr.  Tripconey  to  his  chamber." 

The  butler,  with  many  a  backward  glance  to  where  the  two  sea-captains 
sat  facing  one  another  in  the  firelight,  led  me  up  the  wide  stairs  and  parted 
from  me  by  the  door  of  my  room  without  so  much  as  a  good  night. 


112 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Now  whether  the  wicked  flavour  of  Captain  S wall's  conversation  had 
fascinated  my  imagination,  or  whether  the  Burgundy  had  fired  my  blood 
with  an  inquisitiveness  foreign  to  my  nature,  I  do  not  know,  but  for  the  life 
of  me  I  could  not  help  wondering  how  it  fared  with  the  party  downstairs. 
I  resented  being  shut  up  out  of  sight  and  sound  in  this  gaunt  bedchamber ; 
and  at  last,  no  longer  able  to  bear  my  ignorance,  I  snuffed  the  candle  and 
crept  barefooted  along  the  black  corridor  as  far  as  the  opening  to  the  hall. 
Here,  by  kneeling  close  to  the  wall  and  peering  through  the  balustrade,  I  could 
see  and  hear  all  that  was  happening  below.  I  ran  but  small  risk  of  discovery  ; 
for,  as  I  reasoned,  it  would  be  easy  to  gain  my  room  noiselessly  while  any  one 
from  below  was  ascending  the  stairs. 

Lord  Cannebrake  and  his  visitor  were  still  seated  facing  one  another,  while 
Springle  was  standing,  well  out  of  the  way  of  both,  at  the  farther  end  of  the 
hall. 

"  But  I  don't  want  to  fight,  Dicky,"  Captain  Swall  was  saying.  "  I  done 
with  fighting  long  ago.  This  here  pop  I  holds  in  my  hand  so  pretty,  that's 
not  for  fighting  ;  that's  for  protection,  Dicky,  in  case  you  was  to  leave  me 
once  again  on  a  lee-shore.  No,  I  don't  want  no  revenge  nor  nothing,  Dicky. 
But  seeing  as  how  I'm  tired  of  roaming,  and  finds  it  dull  at  the  Prospect  of 
Whitby  down  by  Wapping  Stairs,  I've  a  mind  to  sling  my  hammock  in  Canne- 
brake." 

"  So  you  think  you're  going  to  live  at  my  expense,  do  you  ?  "  asked  his 
lordship  grimly.  "  But  you're  not.  I  don't  feed  ruffians  like  you,  Matthew 
Swall." 

"  Turned  pious,  have  ye  ?  "  sneered  the  other.  "  Took  to  religion,  maybe  ? 
Changed  the  name  of  your  ship  ?    That's  a  main  unlucky  thing  to  do,  and 

by  "    He  swore  an  abominable  oath.    "  By         it  won't  go  down  with 

me,  not  with  old  Matthew.  Springle,  my  lad,  it  looks  as  if  you  was  ship's 
cook  aboard  here.    Let's  see  the  quality  of  your  beef." 

I  could  not  help  feeling  greatly  delighted  by  Mr.  Springle' s  discomfiture 
as  he  stood  there  in  a  fine  quandary. 

"  What !  Mutiny,  Conrad  ?  "  the  captain  went  on,  as  the  butler  made 
no  offer  to  move.  "  You  was  quicker  at  obeying  orders  in  the  old  days,  Conrad. 
You  was  a  long  way  more  spry  arter  I  sarved  you  with  your  six  dozen  lashes. 
You  become  quite  a  handy  lad  arter  that.  Quick  and  handy  with  that  'ere 
clasp-knife  of  yourn,  Conrad,  when  you  done  for  the  crew  of  the  True  Love 
what  was  lying  on  their  backs  off  Calabar  a-waiting  for  you  to  obey  orders. 
Come,  look  alive,  my  lad,  or  you'll  find  yourself  in  Bodmin  Gaol,  and  'tis  Cap'n 
Swall  who  says  so." 

Springle,  cowed  by  the  fierce  intruder,  gave  up  defiance  and  went  to  fetch 
the  victuals. 

"  That's  a  nice  little  place  Conrad's  got  himself,"  continued  Swall,  with 
one  eye  cocked  very  wickedly  at  Lord  Cannebrake. 

''  Do  you  want  to  be  my  butler  ?  "  demanded  the  latter. 

''  No,  I  wouldn't  rob  Conrad.  There's  room  for  both  of  us.  Maybe  you've 
got  a  snug  little  cabin  somewhere  between  decks,  a  snug  little  berth  where  you 


CARNAGE 


113 


and  me  and  Conrad  '11  be  able  to  talk  over  old  times  and  old  ships.  Better 
you  and  I  should  talk  over  'em  quiet  and  comfortable  and  snug  like,  with 
the  rum  going  round  as  it  ought  to  in  a  genelman's  country  house.  Better 
nor  talking  over  'em  at  the  Old  Bailey.  Why,  you've  a  darter,  haven't  you, 
Dicky  ?  What  'ud  she  say  if  she  went  for  a  cruise  down  the  river  one  lovely 
morning  in  the  summer-time,  and  seed  her  father,  black  as  a  crow,  swinging 
in  the  wind  at  Execution  Dock  ?  " 

"  You  won't  blackmail  me,"  said  my  lord. 

"  Blackmail,  is  it  ?  By  the  Lord,"  shouted  Captain  Swall,  "  Black  Flag's 
more  the  lay." 

"  Be  careful,  Matthew.  You  know  I'm  a  hot-blooded  man.  You  know 
I  won't  stand  too  much." 

"  Aye,  by  the  plague,  and  you  know  mine,  Dick  Starling,  and  it  ain't  lost 
nothing  these  twenty  years  of  waiting.  Look  'ee  here,  it  comes  to  this.  You've 
got  a  darter.  Well."  Again  he  swore  that  fearful  oath.  "  If  you  don't  give 
me  your  darter — for  I  won't  be  put  off  with  no  fine  words  after  Jamestown, 
Dicky  ;  I'll  have  something  of  yours  as  you  vally — I'll  have  your  young  maid, 
or  you  swing  for  piracy." 

But  even  while  he  threatened,  shaking  the  pistol.  Lord  Cannebrake  struck 
hard  with  his  stick  and  Captain  Swall  fell  forward  among  the  glasses  on  the 
table. 

"  Springle,"  his  lordship  gasped.    "  Springle,  I've  killed  him,  ha'n't  I?" 

Then  I  saw  that  the  butler  was  standing  in  the  corner,  a  plate  of  beef  in 
his  hand.  He  came  forward  and,  setting  down  the  plate,  shook  the  sprawling 
figure. 

Aye,  aye,  he's  dead  as  his  beef,"  said  Springle. 
"  We'll  bury  the  body  quick,  Conrad.    Wait.    I'll  see  he  has  no  friends 
outside." 

I  could  not  help  wondering  at  the  old  nobleman's  pluck  as  I  saw  him  move 
towards  the  door,  and  thought  of  him  marching  round  that  desolate  house 
with  Heaven  knows  how  many  bloodthirsty  enemies  ambushed  in  the 
shadows. 

When  his  master  had  left  the  hall,  Springle  shook  the  body  more  roughly, 
and  to  my  horror,  for  I  thought  him  stone  dead.  Captain  Swall  muttered 
thickly  : 

"  Curse  you,  Dicky,  v^u  nearly  done  for  me  a  second  time,  but  you'll  pay 
— you'll  pay." 

"  Look  'ee  here,  Cap'n  Swail,"  said  Springle,  turning  the  wounded  man 
over  and  staring  into  his  eyes.  "  Two's  com.pany  at  Cannebrake,  but  three 
ain't.  You  sent  me  off  for  beef.  You  had  me  flogged  once.  You've  run 
aground,  Cap'n  Sw^all." 

Here  the  fiend  caught  his  enemy  by  the  throat,  and,  as  he  squeezed  the 
life  out  of  the  thickset  man,  spoke  through  clenched  teeth  : 

"  You're  making  port  at  last,  Cap'n  Swall.  I'll  lay  Davy  Jones  is  about 
signalling  your  sperrit  now." 

I  suppose  I  should  have  interrupted  the  man's  villainy,  but  by  this  time, 
4* 


114 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


between  cramp  and  terror,  I  could  do  nothing  but  lie  quaking  on  the  cold 
floor  of  the  gallery. 

Lord  Cannebrake  came  back  in  a  minute  or  two. 
He's  dead  ?  " 

"  Dead,"  said  the  murderer. 

"  And  nobody  will  know,"  said  his  lordship,  with  a  sigh  of  relief. 
"  Not  if  I  don't  peach." 
What  d'ye  mean  ?  " 

Why,  just  this  here,  my  lord.  I'm  tired  of  being  butler.  I  wants  pro- 
motion. I  reckon  you'll  sign  some  sort  of  a  parlez-vous  as'll  ensure  my 
promotion." 

Lord  Cannebrake  seemed  stricken  by  his  servant's  treachery. 
Are  you  going  to  turn  against  me,  Conrad  ?  " 

You've  been  a  fool,"  said  the  latter — a  fool  for  twenty  years.  Afraid 
o'  what  I  might  say  about  the  Jolly  Roger.  What  could  I  ha'  done,  a  pore 
ignorant  seaman  ?  What  was  my  word  against  Lord  Cannebrake' s  ?  You 
might  ha'  cut  me  adrift  long  ago.  But  now  you  can't.  Now  things  is  different. 
Here's  murder  stepped  in  on  my  side." 

"  Aye,  it  has !  "  I  shouted,  springing  up.  "  Black-hearted,  cold  murder ; 
but  it's  you,  Mr.  Springle,  that's  the  murderer.  My  lord,  my  lord,  he 
strangled  Captain  Swall  when  you  were  outside.  That  villain  there — that 
ruffian  " 

In  my  bare  feet,  and  waving  my  flute,  I  came  dancing  down  the  stairs 
— a  ludicrous  figure,  I  dare  swear,  but  jubilant  at  having  outwitted  the 
butler. 

He  had  his  knife  out  in  a  flash,  and  I  owed  my  life  to  his  lordship,  who, 
without  a  thought  of  the  scandal,  picked  up  the  dead  man's  pistol  and  shot 
his  servant  through  the  back,  so  that  he  fell  huddled  at  the  foot  of  the 
staircase. 

Then  Lord  Cannebrake  and  I  looked  at  each  other  with  two  bodies 
between  us. 

"  Her  ladyship  ?  "  I  said. 
"  We'll  have  to  tell  her." 

I  felt  sorry  for  the  old  man  who  had  kept  his  secret  so  many  years.  But 
the  hall  was  now  running  with  Conrad's  blood,  and  I  thought  we  should  do 
well  enough  to  escape  the  law. 

Her  ladyship  came  along  the  gallery,  very  pale  and  beautiful. 

What  is  it,  father  ?    I  heard  a  shot." 
"  A  bad  night's  work,  my  lady-love,"  said  the  father  gently.    "  But  Mr. 
Tripconey  here  has  saved  Cannebrake." 

And  his  lordship  has  saved  me,"  I  cried. 
Then  we  should  all  be  grateful,"  said  my  lady,  very  calm. 
I  slept  prodigious  little  that  night,  and  blistered  my  hands  so  that  I  couldn't 
play  my  flute  for  a  week  ;  but  I  was  always  sure  for  many  a  year  of  a  hearty 
welcome  at  Cannebrake  of  the  Starlings. 


The  Bronze  Parrot 


By  R.  Austin  Freeman 

Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

The  Reverend  Deodatus  Jawley  had  just  sat  down  to  the  gate-legged  table 
on  which  lunch  was  spread  and  had  knocked  his  knee,  according  to  his  in- 
variable custom,  against  the  sharp  corner  of  the  seventh  leg. 

I  wish  you  would  endeavour  to  be  more  careful,  Mr.  Jawley,"  said  the 
rector's  wife.  "  You  nearly  upset  the  mustard-pot,  and  these  jars  are  exceed- 
ingly bad  for  the  leg." 

"  Oh,  that's  of  no  consequence,  Mrs.  Bodley,"  the  curate  replied  cheerfully. 

"  I  don't  agree  with  you  at  all,"  was  the  stiff  rejoinder. 

"  It  doesn't  matter,  you  know,  so  long  as  the  skin  isn't  broken,"  Mr.  Jawley 
persisted  with  an  ingratiating  smile. 

"  I  was  referring  to  the  leg  of  the  table,"  Mrs.  Bodley  corrected  frostily. 

"  Oh,  I  beg  your  pardon  !  "  said  the  curate,  and,  blushing  like  a  Dublin  Bay 
prawn,  he  abandoned  himself  in  silence  to  the  consideration  of  the  numerical 
ratios  suggested  by  five  mutton  chops  and  three  prospective  consumers.  The 
problem  thus  presented  was  one  of  deep  interest  to  Mr.  Jawley,  who  had  a 
remarkably  fine  appetite  for  such  an  exceedingly  small  man,  and  he  awaited 
its  solution  with  misgivings  born  of  previous  disappointments. 

"  I  hope  you  are  not  very  hungry,  Mr.  Jawley,"  said  the  rector's  wife. 

"  Er — no — er — not  unusually  so,"  was  the  curate's  suave  and  casuistical 
reply.  The  fact  is  that  he  was  always  hungry,  excepting  after  the  monthly 
tea-meetings. 

"  Because,"  pursued  Mrs.  Bodley,  "  I  see  that  Walker  has  only  cooked 
five  chops  ;  and  yours  looks  rather  a  small  one." 

"  Oh,  it  will  be  quite  sufficient,  thank  you,"  Mr.  Jawley  hastened  to  declare  ; 
adding,  a  little  unfortunately,  perhaps  :  "  Amply  sufficient  for  any  moderate 
and  temperate  person." 

The  Reverend  Augustus  Bodley  emerged  from  behind  the  Church  Times 
and  directed  a  suspicious  glance  at  his  curate  ;  who,  becoming  suddenly  con- 
scious of  the  ambiguity  of  his  last  remark,  blushed  crimson  and  cut  himself 
a  colossal  slice  of  bread.  There  was  an  uncomfortable  silence  which  lasted 
some  minutes,  and  was  eventually  broken  by  Mrs.  Bodley. 

"  I  want  you  to  go  into  Dilbury  this  afternoon,  Mr.  Jawley,  and  execute 
a  few  little  commissions." 

116 


116 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Certainly,  Mrs.  Bodley.    With  pleasure,"  said  the  curate. 

"  I  want  you  to  call  and  see  if  Miss  Gosse  has  finished  my  hat.  If  she  has, 
you  had  better  bring  it  with  you.  She  is  so  unreliable,  and  I  want  to  wear  it 
at  the  Hawley-Jones's  garden  party  to-morrow.  If  it  isn't  finished,  you  must 
wait  until  it  is.    Don't  come  away  without  it." 

"  No,  Mrs.  Bodley,  I  will  not.    I  will  be  extremely  firm." 

"  Mind  you  are.  Then  I  want  you  to  go  to  Minikin's  and  get  two  reels 
of  whitey-brown  thread,  four  balls  of  crochet  cotton,  and  eight  yards  of  lace 
insertion — the  same  kind  as  I  had  last  week.  And  Walker  tells  me  that  she 
has  run  out  of  black-lead.  You  had  better  bring  two  packets  ;  and  mind 
you  don't  put  them  in  the  same  pocket  with  the  lace  insertion.  Oh,  and  as 
you  are  going  to  the  oil-shop,  you  may  as  well  bring  a  jar  of  mixed  pickles. 
And  then  you  are  to  go  to  Dumsole's  and  order  a  fresh  haddock — perhaps 
you  could  bring  that  with  you,  too — and  then  to  Barber's  and  tell  them  to 
send  four  pounds  of  dessert  pears,  and  be  sure  they  are  good  ones  and  not 
over-ripe.    You  had  better  select  them  and  see  them  weighed  yourself." 

"  I  will.  I  will  select  them  most  carefully,"  said  the  curate,  inwardly 
resolving  not  to  trust  to  mere  external  appearances,  which  are  often  deceptive. 

"  Oh,  and  by  the  way,  Jawley,"  said  the  rector,  "  as  you  are  going  into 
the  town,  you  might  as  well  take  my  shooting-boots  with  you,  and  tell  Crummell 
to  put  a  small  patch  on  the  soles  and  set  up  the  heels.  It  won't  take  him  long. 
Perhaps  he  can  get  them  done  in  time  for  you  to  bring  them  back  with  you. 
Ask  him  to  try." 

"  I  will,  Mr.  Bodley,"  said  the  curate.  "  I  will  urge  him  to  make  an 
effort." 

"  And  as  you  are  going  to  Crummell's,"  said  Mrs.  Bodley,  "  I  will  give 
you  my  walking  shoes  to  take  to  him.  They  want  soling  and  heeling,  and  tell 
him  he  is  to  use  better  leather  than  he  did  last  time." 

Half  an  hour  later  Mr.  Jawley  passed  through  the  playground  appertaining 
to  the  select  boarding-academy  maintained  by  the  Reverend  Augustus  Bodley. 
He  carried  a  large  and  unshapely  newspaper  parcel,  despite  which  he  walked 
with  the  springy  gait  of  a  released  schoolboy.  As  he  danced  across  the  desert 
expanse,  his  attention  was  arrested  by  a  small  crowd  of  the  pupils  gathered 
significantly  around  two  larger  boys  whose  attitudes  suggested  warlike  inten- 
tions ;  indeed,  even  as  he  stopped  to  observe  them,  one  warrior  delivered 
a  tremendous  blow  which  expended  itself  on  the  air  within  a  foot  of  the  other 
combatant's  nose. 

"  Oh  !  fie  !  "  exclaimed  the  scandalised  curate.  "  Joblett  !  Joblett ! 
Do  you  realise  that  you  nearly  struck  Byles  ?  That  you  might  actually  have 
hurt  him  ?  " 

"  I  meant  to  hurt  him,"  said  Joblett. 

"  You  meant  to  !  Oh,  but  how  wrong !  How  unkind  !  Let  me  beg 
you — let  me  entreat  you  to  desist  from  these  discreditable  acts  of  violence." 

He  stood  awhile  gazing  with  an  expression  of  pained  disapproval  at  the 
combatants,  who  regarded  him  with  sulky  grins.  Then,  as  the  hostilities 
seemed  to  be — ^temporarily — suspended,  he  walked  slowly  to  the  gate.  He 


THE  BRONZE  PARROT 


117 


was  just  pocketing  the  key  when  an  extremely  somnolent  pear  impinged  on 
the  gate-post  and  sprinkled  him  with  disintegrated  fragments.  He  turned, 
wiping  his  coat-skirt  with  his  handkerchief,  and  addressed  the  multitude,  who 
all,  oddly  enough,  happened  to  be  looking  in  the  opposite  direction. 

"  That  was  very  naughty  of  you.  Very  naughty.  Someone  must  have 
thrown  that  pear.  I  won't  tempt  you  to  prevarication  by  asking  who  ?  But 
pears  don't  fly  of  themselves — especially  sleepy  ones." 

With  this  he  went  out  of  the  gate,  followed  by  an  audible  snigger  which 
swelled,  as  he  walked  away,  into  a  yell  of  triumph. 

The  curate  tripped  blithely  down  the  village  street,  clasping  his  parcel 
and  scattering  smiles  of  concentrated  amiability  broadcast  among  the 
villagers.  As  he  approached  the  stile  that  guarded  the  footpath  to  Dilbury, 
his  smile  intensified  from  mere  amiability  to  positive  affection.  A  small  lady 
— a  very  small  lady,  in  fact — was  standing  by  the  stile,  resting  a  disproportionate 
basket  on  the  lower  step  ;  and  we  may  as  well  admit,  at  once  and  without 
circumlocution,  that  this  lady  was  none  other  than  Miss  Dorcas  Shipton  and 
the  prospective  Mrs.  Jawley. 

The  curate  changed  over  his  parcel  to  hold  out  a  welcoming  hand. 

"  Dorcas,  my  dear  !  "  he  exclaimed.  "  What  a  lucky  chance  that  you 
should  happen  to  come  this  way  !  " 

"  It  isn't  chance,"  the  little  lady  replied.  "  I  heard  Mrs.  Bodley  say 
that  she  would  ask  you  to  go  into  Dilbury  ;  so  I  determined  to  come  and 
speed  you  on  your  journey"  (the  distance  to  Dilbury  was  about  three  and  a 
half  miles)  "  and  see  that  you  were  properly  equipped.  Why  did  not  you 
bring  your  umbrella  ?  " 

Mr.  Jawley  explained  that  the  hat,  the  boots,  the  fresh  haddock,  and  the 
mixed  pickles  would  fully  occupy  his  available  organs  of  prehension. 

"  That  is  true,"  said  Dorcas.  "  But  I  hope  you  are  wearing  your  chest- 
protector  and  those  cork  soles  that  I  gave  you." 

Mr.  Jawley  assured  her  that  he  had  taken  these  necessary  precautions. 

"  And  have  you  rubbed  your  heels  well  with  soap  ?  " 

"  Yes,"  replied  the  curate.  "  Thoroughly — most  thoroughly.  They  are 
a  little  sticky  at  present,  but  I  shall  feel  the  benefit  as  I  go  on.  I  have  obeyed 
your  instructions  to  the  letter." 

"  That  is  right,  Deodatus,"  said  Miss  Dorcas  ;  "  and  as  you  have  been  so 
good,  you  shall  have  a  little  reward." 

She  lifted  the  lid  of  the  basket  and  took  out  a  small  paper  bag,  which 
she  handed  to  him  with  a  fond  smile.  The  curate  opened  the  bag  and  peered 
in  expectantly. 

"Ha!"  he  exclaimed.  "Bull's-eyes!  How  nice!  How  good  of  you, 
Dorcas  !  And  how  discriminating  !  "  (Bull's-eyes  were  his  one  dissipation.) 
"  Won't  you  take  one  ?  " 

"  No,  thank  you,"  replied  Dorcas.  "  I  mustn't  go  into  the  cottages  smell- 
ing of  peppermint." 

"  Why  not  ?  "  asked  Deodatus.  "  I  often  do.  I  think  the  poor  creatures 
rather  enjoy  the  aroma — especially  the  children." 


118 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


But  Dorcas  was  adamant ;  and  after  some  further  chirping  and  twittering, 
the  two  little  people  exchanged  primly  affectionate  farewells,  and  the  curate, 
having  popped  a  bull's-eye  into  his  mouth,  padded  away  along  the  footpath, 
sucking  joyously. 

It  is  needless  to  say  that  Mrs.  Bodley's  hat  was  not  finished.  The  curate 
had  unwisely  executed  all  his  other  commissions  before  calling  on  the  milliner  : 
had  ordered  the  pears,  and  even  tested  the  quality  of  one  or  two  samples  ; 
had  directed  the  cobbler  to  send  the  rector's  boots  to  the  hat-shop  ;  and  had 
then  collected  the  lace,  black-lead,  cotton,  pickles,  and  the  fresh  haddock,  and 
borne  them  in  triumph  to  the  abode  of  Miss  Gosse.  It  appeared  that  the  hat 
would  not  be  ready  until  seven  o'clock  in  the  evening.  But  it  also  appeared 
that  tea  would  be  ready  in  a  few  minutes.  Accordingly  the  curate  remained 
to  partake  of  that  meal  in  the  workroom,  in  company  with  Miss  Gosse  and  her 
"  hands  "  ;  and  having  been  fed  to  bursting-point  with  French  rolls  and  cake, 
left  his  various  belongings  and  went  forth  to  while  away  the  time  and  paint 
the  town  of  Dilbury — not  exactly  red,  but  a  delicate  and  attenuated  pink. 

After  an  hour  or  so  of  rambling  about  the  town,  the  curate's  errant  foot- 
steps carried  him  down  to  the  docks,  where  he  was  delighted  with  the  spectacle 
of  a  military  transport,  just  home  from  West  Africa,  discharging  her  passengers. 
The  khaki-clad  warriors  trooped  down  the  gang-planks  and  saluted  him  with 
cheerful  greetings  as  he  sat  on  a  bollard  and  watched  them.  One  even  inquired 
if  his — Mr.  Jawley's — mother  knew  he  was  out ;  which  the  curate  thought 
very  kind  and  attentive  of  him.  But  what  thrilled  him  most  was  the  ap- 
pearance of  the  chaplain  ;  a  fine,  portly  churchman  with  an  imposing,  coppery 
nose,  who  was  so  overjoyed  at  the  sight  of  his  native  land  that  he  sang  aloud. 
Mr.  Jawley  was  deeply  affected. 

When  the  soldiers  had  gone,  he  slowly  retraced  his  steps  towards  the  gates  ; 
but  he  had  hardly  gone  twenty  yards  when  his  eye  was  attracted  by  a  small 
object  lying  in  the  thick  grass  that  grew  between  the  irregular  paving-stones 
of  the  quay.  He  stooped  to  pick  it  up  and  uttered  an  exclamation  of  delight. 
It  was  a  tiny  effigy  of  a  parrot,  quaintly  wrought  in  bronze  and  not  more 
than  two  and  a  half  inches  high  including  the  pedestal  on  which  it  stood. 
A  perforation  through  the  eyes  had  furnished  the  means  of  suspension,  and 
a  strand  of  silken  thread  yet  remained,  to  show,  by  its  frayed  ends,  how  the 
treasure  had  been  lost. 

Mr.  Jawley  was  charmed.  It  was  such  a  dear  little  parrot,  so  quaint, 
so  naive.  He  was  a  simple  man,  and  small  things  gave  him  pleasure  ;  and 
this  small  thing  pleased  him  especially.  The  better  to  examine  his  find,  he 
seated  himself  on  a  nice,  clean  white  post  and  proceeded  to  polish  the  little 
effigy  with  his  handkerchief,  having  previously  moistened  the  latter  with  his 
tongue.  The  polishing  improved  its  appearance  wonderfully,  and  he  was 
inspecting  it  complacently  when  his  eye  lighted  on  a  chalked  inscription  on 
the  pavement.  The  writing  was  upside-down  as  he  sat,  but  he  had  no  diffi- 
culty in  deciphering  the  words  "  Wet  paint." 

He  rose  hastily  and  examined  the  fiat  top  of  the  post.  There  is  no  need 
to  go  into  details.    Suffice  it  to  say  that  anyone  looking  at  that  post  could 


THE  BRONZE  PARROT 


119 


have  seen  that  some  person  had  sat  on  it.  Mr.  Jawley  moved  away  with  an 
angry  exclamation.  It  was  very  annoying.  But  that  did  not  justify  the 
expressions  that  he  used  ;  which  were  not  only  out  of  character  with  his  usual 
mild  demeanour  but  unsuitable  to  his  cloth,  even  if  that  cloth  happened  to 
be — but  again  we  say  there  is  no  need  to  go  into  details.  Still  frowning  irrit- 
ably, he  strode  out  through  the  dock  gates  and  up  the  High  Street  on  his  way  to 
Miss  Gosse's  establishment.  As  he  was  passing  the  fruiterer's  shop,  Mr.  Barber, 
the  proprietor,  ran  out. 

"  Good  evening,  Mr.  Jawley.  About  those  pears  that  you  ordered  of  my 
young  man.    You'd  better  not  have  those,  sir.    Let  me  send  you  another  kind." 

"  Why  ?  "  asked  the  curate. 

"  Well,  sir,  those  pears,  to  be  quite  candid,  are  not  very  good  " 

I  don't  care  whether  they  are  good  or  bad,"  interrupted  Mr.  Jawley. 
"  I  am  not  going  to  eat  them,"  and  he  stamped  away  up  the  High  Street,  leaving 
the  fruiterer  in  a  state  of  stupefaction.  But  he  did  not  proceed  directly  to 
the  milliner's.  Some  errant  fancy  impelled  him  to  turn  up  a  side-street  and 
make  his  way  towards  the  waterside  portion  of  the  town ;  and  it  was,  in  fact, 
nearly  eight  o'clock  when  he  approached  Miss  Gosse's  premises  (now  closed  for  the 
night)  and  rang  the  bell.  The  interval,  however,  had  not  been  entirely  uneventful. 
A  blue  mark  under  the  left  eye  and  a  somewhat  battered  and  dusty  condition 
of  hat  and  clothing  seemed  reminiscent  of  recent  and  thrilling  experiences ;  and 
the  satisfied  grin  that  he  bestowed  on  the  astonished  caretaker  suggested  that 
those  experiences,  if  strenuous,  had  not  been  wholly  unpleasurable. 

The  shades  of  night  had  fallen  on  the  village  of  Bobham  when  Mr.  Jawley 
appeared  in  the  one  and  only  street.  He  carried,  balanced  somewhat  unsteadily 
on  his  head,  a  large  cardboard  box,  but  was  otherwise  unencumbered.  The 
box  had  originally  been  of  a  cubical  form,  but  now  presented  a  slightly  irregular 
outline  and  from  one  corner  a  thin  liquid  dripped  on  Mr.  Jawley's  shoulder, 
diffusing  an  aroma  of  vinegar  and  onions  with  an  added  savour  that  w^as  delicate 
and  fish-like.  Up  the  empty  street  the  curate  strode  with  a  martial  air,  and 
having  picked  up  the  box — for  the  thirteenth  time — just  outside  the  gate, 
entered  the  rectory,  deposited  his  burden  on  the  drawing-room  sofa,  and  went 
up  to  his  room.  He  required  no  supper.  For  once  in  a  way  he  was  not  hungry. 
He  had,  in  fact,  taken  a  little  refreshment  in  town  ;  and  whelks  are  a  very 
satisfying  food,  if  you  only  take  enough  of  them. 

In  his  narrow  and  bumpy  bed  the  curate  lay  wakeful  and  wrapped  in 
pleasing  meditation.  Now  his  thoughts  strayed  to  the  little  bronze  parrot, 
which  he  had  placed,  after  a  final  polish,  on  the  mantelpiece  ;  and  now,  in 
delightful  retrospection,  he  recalled  the  incidents  of  his  little  jaunt.  There 
was,  for  instance,  the  slightly  intoxicated  marine  with  whom  he  had  enjoyed 
a  playful  interview  in  Mermaid  Street.  Gleefully  he  reconstituted  the  image 
of  that  warrior  as  he  had  last  seen  him  sitting  in  the  gutter  attending  to  his 
features  with  a  reddened  handkerchief.  And  there  was  the  overturned  whelk- 
stall  and  the  two  bluejackets  outside  the  "  Pope's  Head."  He  grinned  at 
the  recollection.  And  yet  there  were  grumblers  who  actually  complained  of 
the  dulness  of  the  clerical  life  ! 


120 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Again  he  recalled  the  pleasant  walk  home  across  the  darkening  fields, 
the  delightful  rest  by  the  wayside  (on  the  cardboard  box),  and  the  pleasantries 
that  he  had  exchanged  with  a  pair  of  rustic  lovers — who  had  told  him  that 
"  he  ought  to  be  ashamed  of  himself ;  a  gentleman  and  a  minister  of  religion, 
too  !  "  He  chuckled  aloud  as  he  thought  of  their  bucolic  irritation  and  his 
own  brilliant  repartee. 

But  at  this  moment  his  meditations  were  broken  into  by  a  very  singular 
interruption.  From  the  neighbourhood  of  the  mantelpiece  there  issued 
a  voice — a  very  strange  voice,  deep,  buzzing,  resonant,  chanting  a  short  sen- 
tence, framed  of  yet  more  strange  and  unfamiliar  words  : 

"  Donkdh  e  didi  md  turn.    On  esse  ?  " 

This  astounding  phrase  rang  out  in  the  little  room  with  a  deep,  booming 
emphasis  on  the  "  tum,"  and  an  interrogative  note  on  the  two  final  words. 
There  followed  an  interval  of  intense  silence,  and  then,  from  some  distance, 
as  it  seemed,  came  the  tapping  of  drums,  imitating,  most  curiously,  the  sound 
and  accent  of  the  words  ;  "  tum,"  for  instance,  being  rendered  by  a  large  drum 
of  deep,  cavernous  tone. 

Mr.  Jawley  listened  with  a  pleased  and  interested  smile.  After  a  short 
interval,  the  chant  was  repeated,  and  again,  like  a  far-away  echo,  the  drums 
performed  their  curious  mimicry  of  speech.  Mr.  Jawley  was  deeply  interested. 
After  a  dozen  or  so  of  repetitions,  he  found  himself  able  to  repeat,  with  a  fair 
accent,  the  mysterious  sentence,  and  even  to  imitate  the  tapping  and  booming 
of  the  drums. 

But  after  all  you  can  have  too  much  of  a  good  thing  ;  and  when  the  chant 
had  continued  to  recur,  at  intervals  of  about  ten  seconds,  for  a  quarter  of 
an  hour,  Mr.  Jawley  began  to  feel  bored. 

"  There  !  "  said  he,  "  that'll  do,"  and  he  composed  himself  for  slumber. 
But  the  invisible  chanter,  ignoring  his  remark,  continued  the  performance 
da  capo  and  ad  lib. — in  fact,  ad  nauseam.  Then  Mr.  Jawley  became  annoyed. 
First  he  sat  up  in  bed  and  made  what  he  considered  appropriate  comments 
on  the  performance,  with  a  few  personal  references  to  the  performer  ;  and 
then,  as  the  chant  still  continued  with  the  relentless  persistence  of  a  chapel 
bell,  he  sprang  out  and  strode  furiously  over  to  the  mantelpiece. 

"  Shut  up  !  "  he  roared,  shaking  his  fist  at  the  invisible  parrot ;  and, 
strange  to  say,  both  the  chant  and  the  drumming  ceased  forthwith.  There 
are  some  forms  of  speech,  it  would  seem,  that  require  no  interpreter. 

When  Mr.  Jawley  entered  the  breakfast-room  on  the  following  morning, 
the  rector's  wife  was  in  the  act  of  helping  her  husband  to  a  devilled  kidney, 
but  she  paused  in  the  occupation  to  greet  the  curate  with  a  stony  stare.  Mr. 
Jawley  sat  down  and  knocked  his  knee  as  usual,  but  commented  on  the  cir- 
cumstance in  terms  which  were  not  at  all  usual.  The  rector  stared  aghast 
and  Mrs.  Bodley  exclaimed  in  shrill  accents  :   "  Mr.  Jawley,  how  dare  " 

At  this  point  she  paused,  having  caught  the  curate's  eye.  A  deathly 
silence  ensued,  during  which  Mr.  Jawley  glared  at  a  solitary  boiled  egg.  Sud- 
denly he  snatched  up  a  knife,  and  with  uncanny  dexterity,  decapitated  the 
egg  with  a  single  stroke.    Then  he  peered  curiously  into  the  disclosed  cavity. 


THE  BRONZE  PARROT 


121 


Now  if  there  was  one  thing  that  Mr.  Jawley  hated  more  than  another,  it  was 
an  underdone  egg  ;  and  as  his  eye  encountered  a  yellow  spheroid  floating 
in  a  clear  liquid,  he  frowned  ominously. 

"  Raw,  by  Gosh  !  "  he  exclaimed  hoarsely  ;  and  plucking  the  egg  from 
its  calyx,  he  sent  it  hurtling  across  the  room.  For  several  seconds  the  rector 
stared,  silent  and  open-mouthed,  at  his  curate  ;  then,  following  his  wife's 
gaze,  he  stared  at  the  wall,  on  the  chrysanthemum  paper  of  which  appeared 
a  new  motive  uncontemplated  by  the  designer.  And  meanwhile,  Mr.  Jawley 
reached  across  the  table  and  stuck  a  fork  into  the  devilled  kidney. 

When  the  rector  looked  round  and  discovered  his  loss,  he  essayed  some 
spluttered  demands  for  an  explanation.  But  since  the  organs  of  speech  are 
associated  with  the  act  of  mastication,  the  curate  was  not  in  a  position  to 
answer  him.  His  eyes,  however,  were  disengaged  at  the  moment,  and  some 
compelling  quality  in  them  caused  the  rector  and  his  wife  to  rise  from  their 
chairs  and  back  cautiously  towards  the  door.  Mr.  Jawley  nodded  them  out 
blandly  ;  and  being  left  in  possession,  proceeded  to  fill  himself  a  cup  of  tea, 
and  another  of  coffee,  cleared  the  dish,  emptied  the  toast-rack,  and  having 
disposed  of  these  trifles,  concluded  a  Gargantuan  repast  by  crunching  up  the 
contents  of  the  sugar-basin.  Never  had  he  enjoyed  such  a  breakfast,  and  never 
had  he  felt  so  satisfied  and  joyous. 

Having  wiped  his  smiling  lips  on  the  table-cloth,  he  strolled  out  into  the 
playground,  where  the  boys  were  waiting  to  be  driven  in  to  lessons.  At  the 
moment  of  his  appearance,  Messrs.  Joblett  and  Byles  were  in  the  act  of  resuming 
adjourned  hostilities.  The  curate  strode  through  the  ring  of  spectators  and 
beamed  on  the  combatants  with  ferocious  benevolence.  His  arrival  had  pro- 
duced a  brief  armistice,  but  as  he  uttered  no  protests,  the  battle  was  resumed 
with  a  tentative  prod  on  the  part  of  Joblett. 

The  curate  grinned  savagely.  "  That  isn't  the  way,  Joblett,"  he  exclaimed. 
"  Kick  him,  man.    Kick  him  in  the  stomach." 

"  Beg  pardon,  sir,"  said  Joblett,  regarding  his  preceptor  with  saucer-eyes. 
"  Did  you  say  kick  him  ?  " 

"  Yes,"  roared  the  curate.    "  In  the  stomach.    Like  this  !  " 

He  backed  a  few  paces,  and  fixing  a  glittering  eye  on  Byles' s  abdomen,  rushed 
forward,  and,  flinging  his  right  foot  back  until  it  was  almost  visible  over  his 
shoulder,  let  out  a  tremendous  kick.  But  Byles' s  stomach  was  not  there. 
Neither  was  Byles,  which,  of  course,  follows.  The  result  was  that  Mr.  Jawley's 
foot,  meeting  with  no  resistance,  flew  into  space,  carrying  Mr.  Jawley's  centre 
of  gravity  with  it. 

When  the  curate  scrambled  to  his  feet  and  glared  balefully  around,  the 
playground  was  empty.  A  frantic  crowd  surged  in  through  the  open  house 
door,  while  stragglers  hurriedly  climbed  over  the  walls. 

Mr.  Jawley  laughed  hoarsely.  It  was  time  to  open  school,  but  at  the 
moment  he  was  not  studiously  inclined.  Letting  himself  out  by  the  gate, 
he  strolled  forth  into  the  village  and  sauntered  up  the  street.  And  here  it 
was,  just  opposite  the  little  butcher's  shop,  that  he  encountered  the  village 
atheist.    Now  this  philosopher — who,  it  is  needless  to  say,  was  a  cobbler  by 


122 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


profession— had  a  standing  and  perennial  joke,  which  was  to  greet  the  curate 
with  the  words  :  "  How  do,  Jawley  ?  "  and  thereby  elicit  a  gracious  "  Good 
morning,  Mr.  Pegg  "  and  a  polite  touch  of  the  hat.  He  proceeded  this  morn- 
ing to  utter  the  invariable  formula,  cocking  his  eye  at  the  expectant  butcher. 
But  the  anticipated  response  came  not.  Instead,  the  curate  turned  on  him 
suddenly  and  growled : 

"  Say  '  sir,'  you  vermin,  when  you  speak  to  your  betters." 

The  astounded  cobbler  was  speechless  for  a  moment.  But  only  for  a 
moment. 

"  What !  "  he  exclaimed,  "  me  say  '  sir  '  to  a  sneakin'  little  sky-pilot, 
what  " 

Here  Mr.  Jawley  turned  and  stepped  lightly  over  to  the  shop.  Reaching 
in  through  the  open  front,  he  lifted  a  cleaver  from  its  nail,  and  swinging  it 
high  above  his  head,  rushed  with  a  loud  yell  at  the  offending  cobbler.  But 
Mr.  Pegg  was  not  without  presence  of  mind — which,  in  this  case,  connoted 
absence  of  body.  Before  you  could  say  "  wax,"  he  had  darted  into  his  house, 
bolted  the  door,  and  was  looking  down  with  bulging  eyes  from  the  first-floor 
window  on  the  crown  of  the  curate's  hat. 

Meanwhile  the  butcher  had  emerged  angrily  from  his  shop  and  approached 
the  curate  from  behind. 

"  Here,"  he  exclaimed  gruffly,  "  what  are  you  doing  with  that  chop  " 

Here  he  paused  suddenly  as  Mr.  Jawley  turned  his  head,  and  he  continued  with 
infinite  suavity : 

"  Could  you,  sir,  manage  to  spare  that  cleaver  ?  If  you  would  be  so 
kind- — " 

Mr.  Jawley  uttered  a  sulky  growl  and  thrust  the  great  chopper  into  its 
owner's  hands  ;  then,  as  the  butcher  turned  away,  he  gave  a  loud  laugh,  on 
which  the  tradesman  cleared  his  threshold  at  a  single  bound  and  slammed  the 
half -door  behind  him.  But  a  terrified  backward  glance  showed  him  the  curate's 
face  wreathed  in  smiles,  and  another  glance  made  him  aware  of  the  diminutive 
figure  of  Miss  Dorcas  Shipton  approaching  up  the  street. 

The  curate  ran  forward  to  meet  her,  beaming  with  affection.  But  he 
didn't  merely  beam.  Not  at  all.  The  sound  of  his  greeting  was  audible  even 
to  Mr.  Pegg,  who  leaned  out  of  window,  with  eyes  that  bulged  more  than 
ever. 

"  Really,  Deodatus  !  "  exclaimed  the  scandalised  Miss  Dorcas.    "  What 

can  you  be  thinking  about,  in  such  a  pub  "    Her  remonstrances  were  cut 

short  at  this  point  by  fresh  demonstrations,  which  caused  the  butcher  to 
wipe  his  mouth  with  the  back  of  his  hand  and  Mr.  Pegg  to  gasp  with  fresh 
amazement. 

"  Pray,  pray  remember  yourself,  Deodatus  !  "  exclaimed  the  blushing  Dorcas, 
wriggling,  at  length,  out  of  his  too-affectionate  grasp.  "  Besides,"  she  added 
with  a  sudden  strategic  inspiration,  "  you  surely  ought  to  be  in  school  at  this 
time." 

"  That  is  of  no  consequence,  darling,"  said  Jawley,  advancing  on  her  with 
open  arms  ;   "  old  Bod  can  look  after  the  w^helps." 


THE  BRONZE  PARROT 


12S 


"  Oh,  but  you  mustn't  neglect  your  duties,  Deodatus,''  said  Miss  Dorcas, 
still  backing  away.    "  Won't  you  go  in,  just  to  please  me  ?  " 

"  Certainly,  my  love,  if  you  wish  it,"  replied  Jawley,  with  an  amorous  leer. 
"  I'll  go  at  once — but  I  must  have  just  one  more,"  and  again  the  village  street 
rang  with  a  sound  as  of  the  popping  of  a  ginger-beer  cork. 

As  he  approached  the  school,  Mr.  Jawley  became  aware  of  the  familiar  and 
distasteful  roar  of  many  voices.  Standing  in  the  doorway,  he  heard  Mr. 
Bodley  declare  with  angry  emphasis  that  he  "  would  not  have  this  disgraceful 
noise,"  and  saw  him  slap  the  desk  with  his  open  hand  ;  whereupon  nothing 
in  particular  happened  excepting  an  apparently  preconcerted  chorus  as  of 
many  goats.  Then  Mr.  Jawley  entered  and  looked  round  ;  and  in  a  moment 
the  place  was  wrapped  in  a  silence  like  that  of  an  Egyptian  tomb. 

Space  does  not  allow  of  our  recording  in  detail  the  history  of  the  next 
few  days.  We  may,  however,  say  in  general  terms  that  there  grew  up  in 
the  village  of  Bobham  a  feeling  of  universal  respect  for  the  diminutive  curate, 
not  entirely  unmixed  with  superstitious  awe.  Rustics,  hitherto  lax  in  their 
manners,  pulled  off  their  hats  like  clockwork  at  his  approach  ;  Mr.  Pegg, 
abandoning  the  village  street,  cultivated  a  taste  for  footpaths,  preferably 
remote  and  unobstructed  by  trees  ;  the  butcher  fell  into  the  habit  of  sending 
gratuitous  sweetbreads  to  the  Rectory,  addressed  to  Mr.  Jawley ;  and  even 
the  blacksmith,  when  he  had  recovered  from  his  black  eye,  adopted  a  suave 
and  conciliatory  demeanour. 

The  rector's  wife  alone  cherished  a  secret  resentment  (though  outwardly 
attentive  in  the  matter  of  devilled  kidneys  and  streaky  bacon),  and  urged  the 
rector  to  get  rid  of  his  fire-eating  subordinate  ;  but  her  plans  failed  miserably. 
It  is  true  that  the  rector  did  venture  tentatively  to  open  the  subject  to  the 
curate,  who  listened  with  a  lowering  brow  and  sharpened  a  lead  pencil  with 
a  colossal  pocket-knife  that  he  had  bought  at  a  ship-chandler's  in  Dilbury. 
But  the  conclusion  was  never  reached.  Distracted,  perhaps,  by  Mr.  Jawley's 
inscrutable  manner,  the  rector  became  confused,  and,  to  his  own  surprise, 
found  himself  urging  the  curate  to  accept  an  additional  twenty  pounds  a  year 
— an  offer  which  Mr.  Jawley  immediately  insisted  on  having  in  writing. 

The  only  person  who  did  not  share  the  universal  awe  was  Miss  Dorcas  ; 
for  she,  like  the  sundial,  "  numbered  only  the  simny  hours."  But  she  respected 
him  more  than  any,  and,  though  dimly  surprised  at  the  rumours  of  his  doings, 
gloried  in  secret  over  his  prowess. 

Thus  the  days  rolled  on,  and  Mr.  Jawley  put  on  flesh  visibly.  Then  came 
the  eventful  morning  when,  on  scanning  the  rector's  Times,  his  eye  lighted 
on  an  advertisement  in  the  Personal  Column  : 

"  Ten  Pounds  Reward. — Lost :  a  small  bronze  effigy  of  a  parrot  on  a  square 
pedestal ;  the  whole  two  and  a  half  inches  high.  The  above  Reward  will 
be  paid  on  behalf  of  the  owner  by  the  Curator  of  the  Ethnographical  Depart- 
ment of  the  British  Museum,  who  has  a  photograph  and  description  of  the 
object." 

Now  Mr.  Jawley  had  become  deeply  attached  to  the  parrot.  But  after 
all,  it  was  only  a  pretty  trifle,  and  ten  pounds  was  ten  pounds.    That  very 


124 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


afternoon,  the  Curator  found  himself  confronted  by  a  diminutive  clergyman 
of  ferocious  aspect,  and  hurriedly  disgorged  ten  sovereigns  after  verifying 
the  description  ;  and  to  this  day  he  is  wont  to  recount,  as  an  instance  of  the 
power  of  money,  the  remarkable  change  for  the  better  in  the  clergyman's 
manners  when  the  transaction  was  completed. 

It  was  late  in  the  afternoon  when  Mr.  Jawley  reappeared  in  the  village 
of  Bobham.  He  carried  a  gigantic  paper  parcel  under  one  arm,  and  his  pockets 
bulged  so  that  he  appeared  to  suffer  from  some  unclassified  deformity.  At  the 
stile,  he  suddenly  encountered  Mr.  Pegg,  who  prepared  for  instant  flight  and 
was  literally  stupefied  when  the  curate  lifted  his  hat  and  graciously  wished 
him  "  good  evening."  But  Mr.  Pegg  was  even  more  stupefied  when,  a  few 
minutes  later,  he  saw  the  curate  seated  on  a  doorstep,  with  the  open  parcel 
on  his  knees,  and  a  mob  of  children  gathered  around  him.  For  Mr.  Jawley, 
with  the  sunniest  of  smiles,  was  engaged  in  distributing  dolls,  peg-tops,  skipping- 
ropes,  and  little  wooden  horses  to  a  running  accompaniment  of  bull's-eyes, 
brandy-balls,  and  other  delicacies,  which  he  produced  from  inexhaustible  pockets. 
He  even  offered  Mr.  Pegg  himself  a  sugar-stick,  which  the  philosophic  cord- 
wainer  accepted  with  a  polite  bow  and  presently  threw  over  a  wall.  But 
he  pondered  deeply  on  this  wonder,  and  is  probably  pondering  still,  in  common 
with  the  other  inhabitants  of  Bobham. 

But  though,  from  that  moment,  Mr.  Jawley  became  once  more  the  gentlest 
and  most  amiable  of  men,  the  prestige  of  his  former  deeds  remained ;  reverential 
awe  attended  his  footsteps  abroad,  devilled  kidneys  and  streaky  bacon  were 
his  portion  at  home  ;  until  such  time  as  Miss  Dorcas  Shipton  underwent  a 
quieter  metamorphosis  and  became  Mrs.  Deodatus  Jawley.  And  thereafter 
he  walked,  not  only  amidst  reverence  and  awe,  but  also  amidst  flowers  and 
sunshine. 

Postscript. — The  curious  who  would  know  more  about  the  parrot  may 
find  him  on  his  appropriate  shelf  in  the  West  African  Section,  and  read  the 
large  descriptive  label  which  sets  forth  his  history. 

"  Bronze-gold  weight  in  the  form  of  a  parrot.  This  object  was  formerly 
the  property  of  the  great  Ashanti  war  Chief,  Amankwa  Tia,  whose  clan  totem 
was  a  parrot.  It  was  worn  by  him,  attached  to  his  wrist,  as  an  amulet  or  charm, 
and  when  on  a  campaign  a  larger  copy  of  it,  of  gilded  wood,  was  carried  by 
the  chief  herald,  who  preceded  him  and  chanted  his  official  motto.  It  may 
be  explained  here  that  each  of  the  Ashanti  generals  had  a  distinguishing  motto, 
consisting  of  a  short  sentence,  which  was  called  out  before  him  by  his  heralds 
when  on  the  march,  and  repeated,  with  remarkably  close  mimicry,  by  the 
message  drums.  Thus,  when  several  bodies  of  troops  were  marching  through 
the  dense  forest,  their  respective  identities  were  made  clear  to  one  another 
by  the  sound  of  the  chant  on  the  drums.  Amankwa  Tia's  motto  was  : 
'  Donkoh  e  didi  ma  tum.  On  esse  ?  '  Which  may  be  translated : 
'  (Foreign)  Slaves  revile  me.  Why  ? '  A  somewhat  meaningless  sentence, 
but  having,  perhaps,  a  sinister  significance." 


The  Forbidden  Woman 


By  Warwick  Deeping 

Royal  Army  Medical  Corps 

Hilary  Blake  went  down  through  the  tangled  shrubs  of  the  garden  that 
was  half  a  wilderness,  and  a  strange,  white  awe  was  on  .his  face. 

Twice  he  paused,  turned,  and  looked  back.  She  was  still  there  on  the 
terrace,  set  high  against  the  sunset — a  strange,  wet  sunset,  in  which  streaks 
of  opalescent  blue  showed  dimly  through  a  vaporous  glow  of  scarlet  and  gold. 
Queer,  slate-coloured  clouds  sailed  low  down  across  the  sky.  The  far  woods 
were  the  colour  of  amethyst.  But  Judith  of  the  terrace  was  outlined  against 
a  clear  breadth  of  gold.  She  was  watching  him,  and  he  could  imagine  the 
provoking  set  of  her  head,  and  that  enigmatic  smile  of  hers  that  made  men 
wonder. 

She  had  been  strangely  kind  to  him  that  evening,  and  the  fire  of  her  beauty 
was  in  his  blood. 

How  was  it  that  she  had  been  a  young  widow  these  five  years,  and  that  no 
man  had  won  her  a  second  time  ?  She  was  proud,  with  a  vague,  elusive  pride, 
a  pride  that  baffled  and  kept  men  at  a  distance.  And  yet  it  had  seemed  to 
him  that  there  was  a  great  sadness  behind  those  eyes,  a  dread  of  something, 
a  loneliness  that  waxed  impatient.  Sudden  silences  would  fall  on  her.  He 
had  found  her  looking  at  him  in  a  queer  and  tragic  way,  as  though  she  saw 
some  shadow  of  fate  falling  between  them. 

A  spray  of  syringa  brushed  across  his  face  as  he  walked  on  down  the  tangled 
path.  It  was  wet  and  fragrant,  and,  with  sudden  exultation,  he  crushed  it 
against  his  mouth.    The  smell  of  it  was  of  June  and  of  her. 

He  went  on,  head  in  air,  marvelling  at  all  the  tangle  of  chances  that  had 
brought  this  great  thing  to  him.  A  year  ago  he  had  been  Captain  Blake, 
of  the  7th  Foot,  leading  redcoats  by  the  Canadian  lakes.  He  remembered 
that  letter  coming  to  him,  that  letter  that  told  him  how  two  deaths  had  made 
him  Blake  of  Brackenhurst  Manor.  There  had  been  that  wild  dinner  in 
that  block-house  by  the  lakes,  when  all  the  fine  fellows  had  drunk  to  Blake 
of  Brackenhurst,  and  Red  Eagle  and  his  "  braves  "  had  gone  mad  with  fire- 
water and  set  the  store-house  alight  by  shooting  into  the  thatch.  He  had 
not  seen  Brackenhurst  since  he  was  a  boy.  He  had  come  to  it  a  little  elated, 
and  he  had  discovered  her. 


125 


126 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Good  evening,  Captain  Blake." 

Hilary  had  just  let  the  wicket-gate  clash  behind  him.    He  turned  sharply. 

An  old  yew  threw  a  deep  shade  here,  shutting  off  the  sunset,  and,  leaning 
against  the  fence  under  it,  Hilary  saw  a  big  man  in  a  long  green  coat,  bufi 
riding-breeches  and  top  boots.  He  wore  a  black,  unpowdered  wig  under  his 
three-cornered  hat,  and  this  dark  wig  set  off  the  sallow  and  impassive  breadth 
of  a  face  that  showed  to  the  world  a  laconic  arrogance.  He  had  a  little  book 
of  fishing  flies  in  his  hands,  and  as  he  played  with  it  casually  his  eyes  looked  at 
Hilary  Blake  with  an  ironical  insolence  that  was  but  half  veiled. 

Blake  hardly  knew  the  man,  save  by  sight  and  reputation.  He  was  Sir 
Royce  Severn,  of  Moor  Hall,  a  man  with  a  mystery  round  him  and  more 
duels  to  his  credit  than  his  neighbours  cared  to  mention.  In  fact,  there  was 
a  sort  of  dread  of  him  dominating  the  neighbourhood.  He  lived  practically 
alone  at  Moor  Hall,  up  yonder  against  the  northern  sky,  a  grim,  secretive  sort 
of  creature  who  rode,  and  shot,  and  fished  alone. 

"  Good  evening  to  you,"  and  Blake's  eyes  added,  "  What  may  you  be 
doing  outside  Judith  Strange's  garden  fence  ?  " 

The  man  seemed  to  have  been  waiting  for  that  challenging  look  in  the 
other's  eyes.  He  gave  a  queer  and  almost  noiseless  laugh,  and  put  his  fly- 
book  away  in  his  pocket.  A  heavy  hunting-crop  hung  on  the  fence.  Sir 
Royce  Severn  tucked  it  with  a  certain  cynical  ostentation  under  his  arm. 

"  I  think  we  are  strangers.  Captain  Blake." 

"  I  think  we  are,  sir." 

"  My  way  is  your  way  for  a  mile  or  so.    Do  you  take  the  path  through 
the  park  ?  " 
''I  do." 

He  moved  on,  and  the  man  in  green  set  himself  beside  him.  The  sunset 
was  on  their  faces,  and  up  yonder  Judith  of  the  Terrace  still  stood  outlined 
against  a  glow  of  gold. 

Blake  saw  his  companion  look  steadily  towards  her,  and  there  was  some- 
thing in  that  look  that  made  his  blood  simmer. 

Mrs.  Judith  stays  out  late  on  so  damp  an  evening." 

"And  what  is  it  to  you  if  she  does,  my  friend,"  said  Blake's  eyes. 

The  man  in  green  laughed,  that  quiet,  threatening  laugh  of  his. 

"  You  come  here  very  often,  Captain  Blake." 

"  I  beg  your  pardon,  sir." 

"  I  said,  you  come  here  very  often.  You  are  new  to  these  parts  ;  I  know 
them  better  than  you  do." 

A  cold  anger  began  to  stir  in  Hilary  Blake. 

"  My  business  is  my  own.  Sir  Royce  Severn.    Pray  leave  it  at  that." 
The  other  answered  him  sharply. 

"  I  deny  that.  Captain  Blake  ;  I  deny  that  flatly.  It  is  my  business  to 
tell  you  that  Judith  Strange  is  a  dangerous  woman." 

The  path  had  reached  a  spot  where  great  oaks  were  gathered  together, 
casting  a  half  gloom  over  the  grass.  Under  their  canopies  the  stormy  sky 
showed  yellow  and  red. 


THE  FORBIDDEN  WOMAN 


127 


Blake  stopped  dead  and  faced  the  man  in  green. 

"  I  think,  sir,  you  are  a  little  mad — or  very  insolent." 

I  am  neither  the  one  nor  the  other." 
"  You  will  leave  a  certain  name  untouched  in  my  presence." 
He  saw  two  like  points  of  light  shine  out  in  the  other's  eyes. 
"  That  is  the  language  that  all  of  them  have  used,  Captain  Blake.  Your 
good  cousin  talked  like  that,  sir,  though  what  right  he  had  to  mouth  such 
heroics  only  his  own  silly  conceit  could  tell.    I  have  heard  a  great  deal  of 
such  talk  " — he  shrugged  and  laughed — "  it  never  moved  me  one  iota." 
Blake  stared  at  him. 
Moved  you,  sir  !  What  cause  was  there  for  you  to  be  moved — one  way 
or  the  other  ?  Save  that  if  you  spoke  lightly  of  a  lady  it  was  right  that  some 
man  should  smite  you  on  the  mouth." 
That  no  man  has  ever  done." 
^'  Indeed  !  " 

I  speak  of  Judith  Strange  as  I  please." 
"  I  think  not,  sir." 

"  Captain  Blake,  you  have  never  seen  me  handle  a  sword  or  mark  my  man 
with  a  pistol." 

He  drew  himself  up,  squaring  his  shoulders  ;  and  his  arrogant  face  was  a 
threat,  a  face  that  loomed  big  and  white  and  fanatical  under  the  gloom  of 
the  trees. 

Blake's  eyes  grew  dangerous. 

"  Come  out  into  the  open,  sir.    What  is  at  the  bottom  of  all  this  boasting  ?  " 
Sir  Royce  Severn  bowed  to  him. 
Captain  Blake,  let  me  suggest  to  you  that  you  go  no  more  to  Judith 
Strange's  house." 

"  Let  me  suggest,  sir,  that  you  mind  your  own  business." 
"  Judith  Strange  is  my  business." 

The  younger  man  took  a  step  forward,  and  his  left  arm  went  up.  Severn's 
hunting-crop  whirled  suddenly,  and  struck  Blake's  fist  so  that  one  of  the 
knucklebones  cracked.  The  pain  of  it  made  Blake  stride  to  and  fro,  biting 
his  lips. 

"  You  fiend  !  " 

Severn  laughed. 

"  You  cannot  hurt  me,  my  friend.  I  never  met  a  cock  yet  who  could 
face  me  in  the  pit.  Judith  Strange,  Captain  Blake,  is  to  be  my  wife,  and 
I  have  a  sort  of  jealousy  in  me  that  is  dangerous  to  calves.  I  say  what  I 
please  about  the  woman  I  mean  to  marry." 

Blake's  face  had  gone  dead  white,  but  not  with  physical  pain. 

"  I  don't  take  you,  sir." 
Oh,  come,  sir,  come.  You  appear  to  know  very  little  about  women. 
Judith  Strange  would  flirt  on  her  wedding  morning.  But  I,  Captain  Blake, 
want  no  youngsters  playing  round  the  woman  I  mean  to  marry.  If  moths 
come  to  my  candle,  pff,  I  snuff  them  out.  Only  twice,  sir,  have  men  dared 
to  fight  with  me.    They  did  not  need  a  second  dose." 


128 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


He  tucked  his  hunting-crop  under  his  arm,  took  off  his  hat  ironically,  and 
left  Blake  standing. 

For  the  moment  Hilary  Blake's  anger  had  died  out  of  him.  He  saw  Sir 
Royce  Severn  disappear  among  the  trees,  and  felt  himself  a  fool  for  having 
ridden  the  high  horse.  The  man  had  had  the  laugh  of  him.  It  was  all  natural, 
and  logical  enough. 

Sir  Royce  Severn  could  be  accused  of  neither  madness  nor  insolence 
if  he  resented  another  man  paying  court  to  the  woman  who  was  to  be  his 
wife. 

But  Judith  !  And  that  wet  sunset,  and  the  walk  upon  the  terrace,  that 
leave-taking,  the  brushing  of  the  syringa  across  his  mouth  !  A  flare  of  pain 
rushed  through  him.  He  thought  of  the  exultation  of  an  hour  ago,  of  the 
wonder  of  joy  that  had  been  in  his  heart. 

Had  she  been  playing  with  him,  fooling  him  ?  What  was  he  to 
believe  ? 

He  was  lost  in  the  chaos  of  his  own  emotions,  of  love,  anger,  scorn,  hate, 
shame,  and  savage  regret.  He  would  go  back  and  hear  the  truth  from  her 
own  lips.  But  no,  the  laughter  of  a  coquette  would  be  too  bitter  for  him 
to  bear.  Great  God  !  was  she  that  heartless  thing  ?  Why  should  he  believe 
this  man's  word  against  her,  throw  over  all  that  was  sacred  because  of  Severn's 
confident  sneers  ? 

Hilary  turned,  and  began  to  walk  back  along  the  path,  staring  at  the 
ground  in  front  of  him,  forgetting  his  bruised  hand.  The  splendour  was 
dying  in  the  west,  and  a  blue  twilight  flowing  into  the  valleys  ;  the  hills  looked 
black  and  cold. 

"  Hilary  !  " 

She  had  come  on  him  suddenly  out  of  the  twilight,  and  the  red  brocade 
dress  that  she  was  wearing  seemed  to  catch  the  last  rays  of  the  sunset,  and  to 
glow  amid  the  gloom.  She  was  breathing  fast  as  though  she  had  been  running, 
and  he  could  see  the  rising  and  falling  of  her  breast. 

Hilary  had  stopped  dead,  his  head  held  high. 

"  Mrs.  Judith  !  " 

But  that  haughty  poise  of  his  was  no  more  than  hoar  frost  on  a  sunny 
morning. 

She  came  close  to  him  till  he  saw  the  shine  in  her  eyes,  the  proud  rage 
of  her  white  throat,  and  the  way  that  glowing  red  brocade  swayed  up  and 
down  below  a  smother  of  white  lace.  Even  the  lover  in  him  had  guessed  her 
capable  of  great  passion,  but  now  that  he  saw  the  full  flare  thereof  he  stood 
silent  and  astonished. 

"  That  brute  was  waiting  for  you.  I  had  looked  for  it.  That  is  why  I 
stayed  upon  the  terrace.    I  knew  that  it  must  happen  some  day  soon." 

"  Sir  Royce  Severn  ?  " 

Her  passion  did  not  give  him  time  to  speak. 

"So,  Hilary  Blake,  he  has  frozen  or  frightened  you — after  his  fashion  ! 
You  hold  your  head  high  and  look  at  me  with  haughty  eyes  !  Must  I  defend 
myself,  I,  who  have  never  justified  myself  to  any  man  ?  By  Heaven,  why 


"'Judith,  I  will  break  this  fate  of  yours.'    He  drew  closer,  but  she  put  him  back 

with  her  hands  "  (page  130). 


THE  FORBIDDEN  WOMAN 


129 


should  I  stoop  to  defend  myself  before  any  man  ?  Why  ?  Even  before 
you  !  " 

Her  whole  figure  seemed  to  glow  in  the  twilight  like  metal  at  red  heat,  but 
her  face  was  a  stark  white,  her  eyes  challenged  him. 

He  drew  his  breath  in  deeply,  for  this  tempest  of  passion  played  upon  the 
half-smothered  fire  in  him  like  the  wind. 
"  Judith,  what  have  I  said  yet  ?  " 

Ah,  say  it ;  let  us  have  it  spoken.    Then  I,  too,  will  speak." 
He  looked  at  her,  and  a  sudden  generous  shame  smote  him. 

No,  by  Heaven  !  " 
She  beat  her  hands  together. 

"  Yes,  by  Heaven  !  But  I  can  guess  what  Severn  said :  that  I  am  to  be  his 

wife,  that  I  have  played  with  men  " 

His  silence  answ^ered  her. 

"  He  lied.    Do  you  hear,  he  lied.    My  God,  how  I  hate  that  man  !  " 

She  stood  very  still  a  moment,  but  it  was  the  stillness  of  a  wrath  that  found 
nothing  strong  enough  to  carry  it  to  self-expression. 

"  Listen.  For  five  years — ever  since  my  husband  died — this  man  has 
persecuted  me.  *  Judith,  marry  me,'  he  has  asked,  month  by  month,  but  I 
know  that  I  hated  him  from  the  first,  and  I  did  not  hide  my  hate.  But 
he  is  a  devil,  that  man  ;  he  seemed  to  thrive  on  the  '  Nays  '  I  gave  him,  and  he 
came  and  quarrelled  month  by  month,  by  way  of  making  love.  I  forbade 
him  the  house.  He  laughed,  and  said  :  '  Be  sure  that  I  shall  not  let  you 
marry  another  man.  I  shall  scare  them  away,  or  kill  them  if  they  refuse  to 
be  scared.'  And  he  was  as  good  as  his  word.  Men  sought  me  ;  I  did  not 
seek  them,  nor  did  I  love  any  of  those  who  came  to  me  to  make  love.  What 
did  it  matter  ?  Each  man  dropped  away  in  turn,  and  came  no  more.  Three 
were  cowards  ;  two  fought  Royce  Severn  and  were  wounded  ;  he  swore  that 
he  would  kill  them  the  next  time,  and  they  took  him  at  his  word.  Love  was 
not  worth  the  risk  !  Then  he  would  waylay  me  somewhere,  and  be  smooth, 
and  courteous,  and  sneering.  '  Judith,'  he  would  say,  '  no  man  will  put  me 
out  of  his  path.  You  will  marry  me — or  remain  a  widow.'  And  when  I 
threatened  to  go  away — marry,  to  spite  him — he  threatened  in  return.  '  My 
dear,  I  shall  follow  you.  And  if  you  trick  me,  by  marrying,  you  will  be  a 
widow  again  within  a  month.'  " 

Strange  as  the  tale  sounded,  Blake  knew  that  it  was  the  truth,  and  a 
fierce  exultation  woke  in  him.  If  she  had  not  cared,  would  she  have  told 
him  this  ? 

"  The  man  is  mad  !  " 

"  Mad,  yes,  but  most  accursedly  logical  in  his  madness.  The  Severns 
have  been  like  that.  Sometimes  I  feel  that  I  shall  take  his  life,  or  that  he 
will  take  mine." 

Blake  took  a  step  towards  her. 

"  Judith,  am  I  no  more  than  the  other  men,  the  cowards,  and  the  two 
who  would  not  dare  the  uttermost  ?  " 
"  I  shall  not  answer  you." 
5 


130 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  By  Heaven,  you  must !  Why,  even  if  you  have  no  love  for  me,  shall 
I  slink  away  and  not  fight  for  the  right  to  be  near  you  !  There  is  a  devil  in 
me  that  can  match  the  devil  in  Royce  Severn." 

She  gave  a  queer,  inarticulate  cry,  and  the  fire  died  out  of  her  eyes. 

"  No,  no  ;  that  is  why  I  followed  you  to-night.  Hilary,  I  knew  that  you 
were  not  like  those  others." 

"  You  knew  that  !  Then  " 

"  No,  no  ;  listen.  I  have  a  feeling  in  me  sometimes  that  I  am  a  w^oman 
who  is  fatal  to  men — ^fatal  to  those  who  love  me.  A  month  ago  I  might  not 
have  cared,  but  now  I  care  too  much.  Hilary,  promise  never  to  see  me 
again." 

He  gave  a  grim  yet  exultant  laugh. 

"  That  is  impossible.    Judith,  I  will  break  this  fate  of  yours." 

He  drew  closer,  but  she  put  him  back  with  her  hands. 

"  No,  no  ;  have  I  not  told  you  that  this  man  is  a  devil  ?  No  one  in  these 
parts  would  dare  to  cross  him.  He  can  shoot  as  no  mortal  man  should  shoot, 
and  they  say  that  the  best  French  swordsmen  could  not  touch  him.  It  is 
death." 

He  drew  himself  up,  and  his  eyes  smiled  suddenly. 

"  If  it  be  death,  well,  what  of  that  !  My  love  is  greater  than  Severn's 
love.  I,  too,  can  use  foil  or  pistol,  and  a  cavalry  sabre  is  like  neither  of  these. 
I  shall  fight  this  man." 

She  stood  white  and  mute  a  moment,  her  hands  hanging  limply.  Then 
suddenly  her  hands  were  upon  his  shoulders,  her  passionate  face  looking  into 
his. 

"  Hilary,  oh,  my  dear  !  No,  no  ;  I  cannot  bear  it.    Go  away,  leave  me. 
I  shall  have  your  blood  upon  my  hands,  and  then  I  think  I  shall  go  mad." 
He  caught  her  and  held  her. 

Judith,  I  cannot  leave  vou.    So  I  must  kill  Severn." 
"  But  he  " 

"  Dear,  the  man  is  mortal.    I  say,  I  shall  kill  him." 

"  Yet,  if  you  kill  him  " 

He  lifted  her  face  to  his. 

"  Well,  I  might  have  to  go  over  the  water  for  a  while.  But  I  should  come 
back." 

"  Hilary  !  " 

He  felt  all  the  woman  in  her  stirring  in  his  arms. 

"  Hilary,  I  should  be  with  you  then,  not  here.  Oh,  if  it  were  possible  !  " 
"  Dear,  is  this  the  truth  ?  " 

"  The  uttermost  truth,  the  very  heart  of  my  heart." 

He  looked  at  her,  very  dearly,  and  then  kissed  her  upon  the  mouth. 

So  be  it.    Go  back,  my  beloved.    I  have  work  to  do." 
He  had  to  free  himself,  almost  by  force,  for  her  dread  returned. 

No,  no ;  I  shall  never  see  you  again." 
"  I  swear  that  you  shall.    Dear  heart,  let  me  go." 
He  put  her  hands  aside  very  gently. 


THE  FORBIDDEN  WOMAN 


131 


"  Judith,  go  home  and  wait.    By  morning  I  may  have  news  for  j^ou." 

In  half  an  hour  Blake  was  on  the  edge  of  the  moor,  walking  as  though  for 
a  wager.  A  mere  cart  track  led  over  the  moor  to  Moor  Hall,  and  on  either 
side  of  it  were  stretched  masses  of  whin  and  heather.  A  moon  was  just  rising, 
and  all  the  countryside  was  spread  below,  the  distant  cliffs  drawing  a  black 
outline  about  the  glimmer  of  the  sea.  But  Blake  was  watching  the  cart  track 
in  front  of  him. 

He  had  cut  an  oak  sapling  with  his  clasp-knife  in  one  of  the  park  planta- 
tions so  that  he  should  have  something  to  match  against  Royce  Severn's 
hunting-crop. 

Blake  had  guessed  that  he  might  catch  his  man  on  the  homeward  road, 
and  catch  him  he  did,  just  where  the  track  turned  eastwards  over  the  ridge 
of  the  moor.  Fifty  paces  ahead  of  him  Blake  saw  a  black  figure  rise  against 
the  sky-line,  almost  between  him  and  the  rising  moon. 

''Sir  Royce  Severn." 

The  black  figure  paused,  and  waited  there  against  the  steel-grey  sky. 
"  Who's  there  ?  " 

The  moonlight  showed  him  Hilary  Blake. 

"  Ah,  Captain  Blake,  come  to  apologise  so  soon  1  " 

"  No,  sir,  only  to  tell  you  that  you  are  a  liar." 

He  could  not  see  Severn's  face,  for  he  had  his  back  turned  towards  the 
moon. 

So  you  do  not  believe  me,  Captain  Blake  ?  " 

"  No,  I  do  not,  sir  ;  or  I  should  not  have  turned  so  far  out  of  my  way 
to  call  you  a  liar  and  a  coward." 

Both  men  felt  that  it  had  come,  that  they  were  like  dogs  doomed  to  be 
at  each  other's  throats,  but  Severn  strolled  forward  with  a  casual  air,  flicking 
his  hunting-crop  to  and  fro  as  though  he  were  beating  time  to  a  piece  of  music. 
And  that  arrogant  self-confidence  of  his  fooled  him.  He  had  to  do  with  an 
athlete  that  night,  a  man  who  had  matched  himself  to  run  and  leap  against 
Indians,  and  not  with  some  heavy  squireling  or  town  gallant  out  of  condition 
with  drink  and  cards.  For  Blake  took  a  standing  leap  at  Severn,  covered  ten 
foot  of  ground  at  the  spring,  and  got  such  a  blow  home  as  sent  the  big  man 
sprawling. 

Blake  was  on  him,  and  had  wrenched  the  hunting-crop  away.  He  broke 
it  across  his  knee,  and  threw  the  pieces  into  a  furze  bush. 

"  If  you  want  a  broken  fist,  sir,  I  have  an  oak  sapling  that  will  wipe  out 
that  blow  you  gave  me  two  hours  ago." 

But  Severn  was  up,  in  far  too  wild  a  rage  for  sticks  or  fisticuffs. 

"  Fool,  I  should  have  warned  you  with  a  sword-prick  through  the  arm,  but 
now,  by  the  woman  I  mean  to  marry,  I  will  kill  you." 

"  Leave  it  at  that  !  " 

"  Choose  your  weapons.    I'll  meet  you  with  whatever  you  please.'' 
Blake  smiled  over  set  teeth. 

1  claim  cavalry  sabres.    I  have  two.    You  shall  have  your  choice," 
Severn  snarled  at  him. 


132 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  You  prefer  being  slashed  to  pricked,  eh  ?  Very  good.    One  second  each 
will  serve.    At  six  to-morrow  morning." 
"  When  you  please." 

Severn  became  suddenly  and  splendidly  polite. 

"  Captain  Blake,  it  will  be  a  pleasure.  What  do  you  say  to  that  little 
field  at  the  back  of  the  fir  plantation  on  the  main  road  down  yonder  ?  You 
know  it  ?  " 

"  Yes." 

"  At  six,  then.  I  have  a  friend  at  my  house  who  will  act  for  me.  I 
shall  be  happy  to  choose  one  of  your  sabres.  I  wish  you  a  very  good 
night." 

His  politeness  had  thinned  to  an  ironical  and  sneering  playfulness,  but  Blake 
had  been  born  with  a  stiff  back.  Yet  he  saw  how  Royce  Severn  had  trodden 
on  the  courage  of  those  other  men,  and  half  cowed  them  before  they  had  crossed 
swords. 

"It  is  a  pretty  thing,  a  cavalry  sabre,  sir.    May  you,  too,  pass  a  good 
night.    I  shall  go  home  and  get  some  sleep." 
And  so  they  parted. 

Hilary  Blake  turned  back  for  Brackenhurst,  and  in  half  an  hour  found 
himself  standing  in  the  brick  porch  of  Colonel  Maundrell's  house  at  the 
end  of  Brackenhurst  village.  The  colonel's  old  soldier-servant  answered  his 
knock. 

"  Is  your  master  in,  Thomas  ?  " 
"  Sure,  sir  ;   he  is  in." 

And  alone  ?  " 
"  And  alone,  sir." 

Colonel  Maundrell  was  sitting  at  the  open  window  of  his  library  that  looked 
towards  the  sea. 

Two  candles  in  silver  candlesticks  stood  on  the  oak  table,  and  their  pale 
light  seemed  to  mingle  with  the  moonlight  that  streamed  in  at  the  window. 
The  old  soldier  with  the  hawk's  beak  of  a  nose  and  the  iron-grey  head  had 
been  sitting  there  thinking. 

Directly  the  door  had  closed  and  the  sound  of  Thomas's  footsteps  could 
be  heard  departing,  Blake  told  his  business. 

"  Colonel,  I  want  you  to  second  me.  I  fight  Royce  Severn  at  six  to-morrow 
morning." 

The  old  soldier  sat  forward  in  his  chair.  Then,  after  a  moment's  silence, 
'*  Curse  Royce  Severn." 

He  rose,  and  drawing  himself  to  his  full  height,  looked  searchingly  at 
Blake  from  under  his  straight  grey  eyebrows. 

"  What  has  made  you  quarrel  with  Royce  Severn  ?  " 

"  A  love  affair,  sir." 

Maundrell  pulled  out  his  tortoise-shell  snuff-box  and  took  snuff  vigorously. 

"  So  you  want  to  marry  Judith  Strange.  I  know  how  Severn  has  perse- 
cuted her.  It  is  a  pity  someone  has  not  shot  the  beast ;  I  have  thought  of 
doing  it  myself.    But  do  you  know  what  you  are  doing,  Blake  ?  " 


THE  FORBIDDEN  WOMAN 


133 


"  I  am  going  to  marry  Judith  Strange." 

"  Yes,  yes  ;  all  very  well  that.  But  this  man  Severn  can  shoot  and  fence 
like  the  devil  himself.  He  is  the  coolest  and  most  deadly  beast  when  there 
is  fighting  afoot.    Who  has  the  choice  of  weapons  ?  " 

"  I  have,  sir  ;  I  have  chosen  cavalry  sabres." 

The  colonel  threw  up  his  right  hand  with  a  stiff  gesture  of  delight. 

"  Sabres  ?  excellent !  Severn's  love  is  the  foil.  There  are  some  men,  Blake, 
who  can  never  take  kindly  to  sabre  play,  just  as  some  men  would  rather  be 
slashed  than  pinked  through  the  liver.    Sabres :  excellent  !  " 

He  walked  up  and  down,  limping  slightly,  from  an  old  wound  that  he  had 
got  at  Fontenoy. 

"  Where  do  we  meet,  lad  ?  " 
In  the  little  meadow  behind  the  fir  plantation  above  Gaymer's  farm." 

"  At  six  ?  " 

"  At  six.  I  take  the  sabres.  Severn  has  his  choice.  A  friend  is  to  second 
him." 

"I  know  that  friend  of  his.  A  little  brown  beast  of  a  French  fencing- 
master.  Sabres  :  excellent  !  Look  you,  lad,  speed  is  the  great  thing  against 
a  man  like  Severn.  Go  at  it,  like  a  cavalry  charge.  I  have  known  good 
swordsmen  knocked  over  by  mere  slashing  boys  in  a  cavalry  charge.  It  is 
no  use  playing  the  cunning  game  with  Royce  Severn." 

Thank  you,  sir.  I  am  out  to  kill  him  in  the  first  thirty  seconds.  I  know 
something  about  sabres." 

The  colonel  came  and  tapped  him  on  the  shoulder, 

"  Blake,  you  had  better  sleep  here.  Go  up  and  get  those  sabres  now  it 
is  dark." 

That  is  an  idea,  sir.  I  want  to  pack  a  valise,  and  get  all  the  money  I 
have  in  the  house.  I  will  ride  my  black  horse  down  here  and  stable  him  for 
the  night." 

"  Lad,  you  don't  contemplate  dying  !    That's  the  spirit." 
"  If  I  have  to  go,  sir,  I'll  not  leave  Severn  alive  behind  me.    Judith  shall 
be  free." 

It  was  a  cloudless  June  morning  when  Hilary  Blake  and  Colonel  Maundrell 
got  on  their  horses  and  took  the  lane  that  led  round  the  back  of  the  village 
past  the  mill. 

Blake's  Canadian  campaigning  had  hardened  him,  and  he  had  slept  for 
three  hours.  He  carried  a  leather  valise  strapped  to  his  saddle.  The  colonel 
had  the  sabres  wrapped  in  a  black  cloth  under  his  arm.  Mists  still  hung 
about  the  valleys,  and  they  could  not  see  the  sea. 

They  passed  Gaymer's  farm  and  came  to  the  fir  plantation.  It  was  black, 
and  still,  and  secret,  and  gloom  hung  within  the  crowded  trunks  like  a  curtain. 
A  rough  gate  opened  through  a  ragged  hedge.  They  dismounted,  and  leading 
their  horses,  disappeared  into  the  wood. 

Judith  Strange  had  not  slept,  for  a  man  had  come  riding  late  up  the  drive 
between  the  old  oaks,  and  had  left  a  letter  with  the  major  domo,  and  galloped 
away  again  as  though  fearful  of  being  called  back.    The  letter  had  been 


184 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


sealed  with  red  wax,  and  Judith  had  broken  the  seal  and  read  the  letter  by- 
candle-light  in  the  long  parlour. 

"  Judith, — I  love  you.    I  fight  Severn  to-morrow  morning,  and 
you  shall  be  free.    Do  not  try  to  come  between  us,  for  you  will  fail. 

"Hilary  Blake." 

She  had  turned  the  letter  over  in  her  hands,  and  her  gaze  had  rested  on 
the  red  wax  of  the  seal  she  had  broken.  The  colour  of  blood  !  She  had  been 
seized  by  a  foreboding  of  evil,  by  the  thought  that  this  thing  was  prophetic, 
that  to-morrow  the  man  who  loved  her  might  be  dead. 

She  fought  against  this  dread  in  her  own  heart,  but  she  did  not  sleep. 
Her  servants  were  a-bed  ;  the  candles  had  burnt  out  in  the  long  parlour,  and 
the  full  moon  shone  over  the  sea. 

Judith  had  stepped  through  the  open  window  on  to  the  terrace,  and  she 
walked  to  and  fro  there  in  the  m.oonlight,  feeling  that  she  was  helpless  to 
hinder  the  workings  of  her  own  fate. 

Then  she  rebelled,  thrust  her  forebodings  aside,  and  refused  to  believe  in 
her  own  fears. 

She  returned  to  the  house,  found  a  little  hand-lamp  burning  in  the  panelled 
hall,  and  taking  it  went  up  the  broad  stairs  to  her  room  at  the  end  of  the  long 
gallery.  There  was  a  valise  under  the  bed.  She  pulled  it  out,  and  began 
to  fill  it  with  clothes,  and  to  collect  her  jewellery  and  store  it  away  in  a  rose- 
wood case  bound  with  brass.  Nor  did  she  forget  the  guineas  she  kept  in  the 
secret  drawer  of  her  bureau. 

Then  she  dressed  herself  as  for  a  journey,  with  a  kind  of  tenderness  towards 
herself  and  towards  her  love,  putting  on  one  of  her  red  brocades  and  a  black 
beaver  hat  with  black  feather.  She  looked  long  at  herself  in  her  glass,  touching 
her  black  hair  with  her  fingers,  on  which  she  had  thrust  the  most  precious  of 
her  rings.  Emeralds  and  rubies  glittered  in  the  lamplight,  and  her  eyes  were 
almost  as  feverish  as  the  precious  stones. 

She  sat  down  in  a  chair  by  one  of  the  windows  and  waited.  Hours  passed  ; 
the  dawn  showed  in  the  east ;  the  lamp  had  burnt  all  its  oil,  and  had  flickered 
out.    The  silence  was  utter.    An  anguish  of  restlessness  returned. 

A  clock  struck  five.  She  rose,  passed  out  of  the  room,  dovm  the  dim 
stairs,  and  through  the  long  parlour  on  to  the  terrace.  The  freshness  of  the 
dawn  was  there,  and  the  birds  were  awake  in  the  thickets.  She  began  to  walk 
up  and  down,  up  and  down  over  the  stone  flags,  with  the  heavy  mists  lying 
in  the  valleys  below,  and  the  sea  hidden  by  a  great  grey  pall. 

The  boom  of  a  gun  came  from  the  sea.  It  was  some  fog-bound  ship  firing 
a  signal. 

The  clock  in  the  turret  struck  six.  A  gardener  appeared  upon  the  terrace, 
saw  Judith  walking  there,  stared,  and  slunk  away.  She  was  conscious  of  a 
strange  oppression  at  the  heart,  a  sudden  spasmodic  quickening  of  her 
suspense.  She  could  walk  no  longer,  but  sat  down  on  the  dew-wet  parapet 
and  waited. 


THE  FORBIDDEN  WOMAN 


135 


Suddenly  the  mist  lifted.  The  great  trees  in  the  park  seemed  to  shake 
themselves  free  of  their  white  shrouds.  The  vapour  drifted  away  like  smoke  ; 
the  grass  slopes  and  hollows  showed  a  glittering  greyish  green. 

Judith  stood  up,  her  eyes  dark  and  big  in  a  pale  face,  for  far  away,  over 
yonder,  something  moved  amid  the  trees.  She  pressed  her  hands  over  her 
bosom  and  waited.  And  then  she  saw  a  galloping  horse,  and  a  man  bending 
forward  in  the  saddle,  a  little  figure,  distant  in  the  morning  light. 

Which  was  it  ?  She  strained  her  eyes,  but  could  not  satisfy  her  suspense. 
Twice  had  Royce  Severn  ridden  to  her  in  just  such  a  fashion,  to  make  mocking 
love  to  her  and  to  tell  her  that  he  had  left  a  rival  cowed  and  beaten. 

Suddenly  her  heart  leapt  in  her.  The  man  had  galloped  near ;  he  had 
seen  the  figure  on  the  terrace ;  he  waved  his  hat. 

She  gave  a  strange  cry,  ran  to  the  terrace  steps  and  down  them  to  the  path 
that  led  through  the  wilderness. 

They  met  where  a  climbing  rose  trailed  in  the  branches  of  a  half-dead 
almond  tree.    Blake  had  left  his  horse  at  the  wicket-gate. 

She  saw  the  grim  radiance  of  his  face. 
Hilary  !  " 

"  I  have  killed  Royce  Severn." 

She  swayed  forward,  and  he  had  her  in  his  arms. 

"  Oh,  my  beloved,  you  are  as  white  as  death." 

*'  Dear,  I  have  suffered." 

He  kissed  her. 

"  Judith,  you  are  free.    But  this  man's  blood  " 

She  clung  to  him. 

"  Let  us  go  away,  let  us  go  away  together.  Yes,  I  have  money,  and  my 
jewels,  and  my  valise  packed.  I  will  order  the  coach.  They  cannot  harm 
you,  Hilary,  for  killing  him,  and  yet  " 

He  looked  in  her  eyes  and  understood. 

"  Dear,  we  will  leave  the  thought  of  it  behind  us.    Come,  there  is  no  time 
to  lose.    We  can  make  Rye  town  before  noon." 
They  went  up  the  terrace  steps  hand  in  hand. 


Eliza  and  the  Special 

By   Barry  Pain 

Royal  Naval  Air  Service 

Eliza  ! "  I  said,  after  we  had  retired  to  the  drawing-room,  as  we  almost  always 
do  after  our  late  dinner  nowadays,  unless  of  course  the  lighting  of  an  extra 
fire  is  involved,  "  Eliza,  I  have  this  afternoon  come  to  rather  an  important 
decision.  I  must  ask  you  to  remember  the  meaning  of  the  word  decision.  It 
means  that  a  thing  is  decided.  It  may  be  perfectly  natural  to  you  to  beg  me 
not  to  risk  the  exposure  to  the  weather,  and  the  possible  attacks  by  criminals 
or  German  spies,  but  where  my  conscience  has  spoken  I  am,  so  to  speak, 
adamant,  (if  you  would  kindly  cease  playing  with  the  cat,  you  would  be  able 
to  pay  more  attention  to  what  I  am  saying).  What  I  want  you  to  realise 
is  that  no  entreaties  or  arguments  can  possibly  move  me.  This  nation  is  at 
present  plunged  " 

"  By  the  way,"  said  Eliza,  "  you  don't  mind  my  interrupting,  but  I've 
just  thought  of  it.  Miss  Lakers  says  she  can't  think  why  you  don't  offer 
yourself  as  a  special,  and  I  don't  see  why  you  shouldn't,  either." 

"  This,  Eliza,"  I  said,  "  is  one  of  the  most  extraordinary  coincidences  that 
have  befallen  me  in  the  whole  course  of  my  life.  If  an  author  were  to  put  such 
a  thing  in  a  book,  every  reader  would  remark  on  its  improbability.  But  the 
fact  remains — at  the  very  moment  when  you  spoke  I  was  on  the  point  of 
telling  you  that  I  had  decided  to  become  a  special  constable." 

"That's  all  right,  then,"  said  Eliza.  "I'll  tell  Miss  Lakers.  Wonder 
you  didn't  think  of  it  before.    Anything  in  the  evening  paper  to-night  ?  " 

"  You  are  hardly  taking  my  decision  in  the  way  that  might  have  been 
expected,"  I  said.  "  However,  we  will  let  that  pass.  We  must  now  take  the 
necessary  steps." 

"  What   do   you  mean  ? "    said  Eliza.     "  You  just  go  to  the  station 

and  " 

"  I  was  not  thinking  of  that.  There  is  this  question  of  exposure  to  the 
weather.  A  warm  waistcoat — sufficiently  low  at  the  back  to  give  protection 
to  the  kidneys — is,  I  understand,  essential.    We  must  also  procure  a  flask." 

"  Well,  I  shouldn't  if  I  were  you.  If  you  take  whiskey  when  you're  on 
duty,  and  then  anything  happens,  you  only  put  yourself  in  the  wrong," 

136 


"  I  had  forgotten  my  cocoa  flask"  (page  139). 


188 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  My  dear  Eliza,"  I  said,  "  I  was  not  dreaming  of  taking  stimulants  while 
on  duty.  Afterwards,  perhaps,  in  moderation,  but  not  during.  I  was  referring 
to  one  of  those  flasks  which  keep  soup  or  cocoa  hot  for  a  considerable  period. 
This  question  of  exposure  to  the  weather  is  rather  more  serious  than  you  seem 
to  " 

"  Oh,  that  kind  of  flask  !  Well,  that's  different.  And  do  be  more  careful 
when  you're  uncrossing  your  legs.  You  as  near  as  possible  kicked  the  cat 
that  time." 

As  I  told  her,  she  had  quite  failed  to  grasp  the  situation  or  to  take 
a  proper  interest  in  it.  Her  reply,  that  I  was  too  funny,  simply  had  no 
bearing  on  the  subject. 


I  am  not  a  snob.  Far  from  it.  But  I  do  think  that  in  the  special  con- 
stabulary a  little  more  regard  might  be  paid  to  social  status.  I  was  required 
for  certain  hours  of  the  night  to  guard  a  small  square  building  connected  with 
the  waterworks.  It  was  in  a  desperately  lonely  spot,  fully  a  hundred  yards 
from  the  main  road  and  approached  by  a  footpath  across  a  desolate  field.  I 
make  no  complaint  as  to  that.  Unless  a  man  has  pretty  good  nerves  he  had 
better  not  become  a  special  constable.  But  I  do  complain,  and  with  good 
reason,  that  in  this  task  I  was  associated  with  Hopley. 

Hopley  is  a  plumber,  in  quite  a  small  way.  Some  ten  or  twelve  years 
ago,  when  I  was  merely  an  employee  of  the  firm  in  which  I  am  now  a 
partner,  I  gave  Hopley  some  work.  At  the  time  of  taking  the  order  he 
called  me  "  sir,"  and  was  most  respectful.  Later,  he  used  very  coarse 
language,  and  said  he  should  not  leave  my  kitchen  until  the  account  had 
been  settled.  I  remember  this  because  it  was  the  last  time  that  I  had  to 
pawn  my  watch. 

Fortunately,  Hopley  seemed  to  have  forgotten  the  incident  and  to  have 
forgotten  me.  On  the  other  hand  he  seemed  quite  oblivious  of  the  fact  that 
there  was  any  social  barrier  between  us.  He  always  addressed  me  as  an 
equal,  and  even  as  an  intimate  friend.  Making  allowances  for  the  unusual 
circumstances,  the  nation  being  at  war,  I  did  not  put  him  back  in  his  place. 
But  after  all,  I  ask  myself,  was  it  necessary  ?  With  a  little  more  organisation 
it  would  not  have  happened. 

I  will  admit  that  I  found  him  useful  at  drill  and  generally  tried  to  be  next 
him.  He  seemed  to  know  about  drill,  and  gave  me  the  required  pull  or  push 
which  makes  so  much  difference. 

But  when  we  two  were  guarding  that  building  I  found  him  most  depressing. 
He  took  a  pessimistic  view  of  the  situation.  He  said  that  any  special  who 
Vv^as  put  to  guard  a  waterworks  was  practically  sentenced  to  death,  because 
the  Germans  had  got  the  position  of  every  waterworks  in  the  kingdom  charted, 
and  the  Zeppelins  had  their  instructions.  Then  he  talked  over  the  invasion 
of  England,  and  the  murder  of  a  special  constable,  and  told  ghost  stories.  By 
day  I  could  see,  almost  before  Eliza  pointed  it  out,  that  an  incendiary  bomb 


ELIZA  AND  THE  SPECIAL 


189 


would  do  more  active  work  in  a  gasometer  than  in  a  reservoir.  But  in  the 
darkness  of  the  small  hours  I  am — well,  distinctly  less  critical. 

And  I  may  add  that  the  only  mistake  we  have  made  yet  was  entirely  due 
to  Hopley.  It  was  a  nasty,  foggy  night  and  I  saw  a  shadowy  form  approaching, 
I  immediately  went  round  to  the  other  side  of  the  building  to  report  to  Hopley, 
and  he  said  that  this  was  just  the  sort  of  night  the  Germans  would  choose 
for  some  of  their  dirty  work.  It  was  he  who  instructed  me  about  taking 
cover  and  springing  out  at  the  last  minute.  We  sprang  simultaneously, 
Hopley  on  one  side  and  myself  on  the  other,  and  if  it  had  been  anybody  but 
Eliza  we  should  have  made  a  smart  job  of  it.  I  had  forgotten  my  cocoa  flask 
and  Eliza  was  bringing  it  to  the  place  where  I  was  posted.  This  v/as  unfor- 
tunate for  Hopley,  as  she  hit  him  in  the  face  with  the  flask.  I  think  that  I 
personally  must  have  slipped  on  a  banana-skin,  or  it  may  have  been  due  to 
the  sudden  surprise  at  hearing  Eliza's  voice.  Eliza  said  she  was  sorry  about 
Hopley' s  nose,  but  that  we  really  ought  not  to  play  silly  jokes  like  that  when 
on  duty,  because  we  might  possibly  frighten  somebody. 

The  other  night  I  was  discussing  with  Hopley  the  possibility  of  my  being 
made  a  sergeant. 

"  Not  a  chance,"  he  said.  "  No  absolute  earthly,  old  sport."  And  then 
he  passed  his  hand  in  a  reflective  way  over  his  nose.  "  But  if  only  your  missus 
could  have  joined,"  he  said,  "  she'd  have  been  an  inspector  by  now." 


The  Probation  of  Jimmy 

Baker 

By  Albert  Kinross 

Army  Service  Corps 
I 

The  bank  was  in  the  High  Street,  a  broad,  leafy  place  of  stone  houses  and 
regularly  planted  trees.  The  most  of  Seacombe,  however,  is  neither  broad 
nor  leafy  nor  regular.  Old  Town — so  they  call  it — a  picturesque  welter  of 
thatched  and  cream-washed  cottages,  climbs  the  hills  and  clusters  round  the 
harbour  ;  New  Town,  with  its  bank  and  High  Street  and  electric  light  and 
things,  was  added  when  the  railway  came.  Into  this  bank,  one  bright  Sep- 
tember morning,  stepped  Miss  Mamie  Stuart  Berridge,  of  Lansing,  in  the 
State  of  Michigan.  From  Lansing,  in  the  State  of  Michigan,  to  Seacombe, 
in  the  county  of  Somerset,  is  a  far  and  distant  cry,  and  the  transition 
requires  money  for  its  satisfactory  accomplishment.  Miss  Mamie  had  money, 
a  diminishing  wad  that  folded  up  in  a  neat  black  leather  case.  She  stepped 
into  the  bank,  unfolded  her  wad,  and  handed  an  American  Express  Company's 
cheque  across  the  counter.  The  young  man  who  did  duty  there  reminded 
her  that  she  must  sign  it.  "  That's  the  second  time  I've  forgotten,"  said 
Mamie,  and  wrote  her  name  in  the  appointed  space. 

All  gold,  or  would  you  like  a  note  ?  "  inquired  the  young  man. 

Miss  Mamie  thought  that  she  would  like  a  note  ;  and  then  she  altered 
her  mind  and  exchanged  the  note  for  gold  ;  and  then  she  altered  her  mind 
once  more  and  took  the  note.  The  young  man  smiled  amiably  and  blushed 
a  little  ;  for  the  transaction  was  fast  becoming  confidential,  and  he  was  told 
that  the  note  would  "  do  for  Mrs.  Bilson."  He  knew  Mrs.  Bilson  as  a  party 
who  let  lodgings. 

"  Are  you  comfortable  there  ?  "  he  ventured. 

"  As  comfortable  as  one  can  be  in  this  old  England  of  yours." 

A  laugh,  a  snapping  of  her  handbag,  a  swish  of  skirt,  and  she  was  gone. 
Other  and  duller  customers  engaged  the  young  man  till  four  o'clock.  Once 
or  twice  that  day  he  thought  of  Mamie,  and  wondered  whether  she  was  ever 
coming  back  again. 

UO 


THE  PROBATION  OF  JIMMY  BAKER 


141 


The  next  afternoon  he  caught  a  ghmpse  of  her,  seated  high  on  a  char-a-banc, 
and  just  returned  from  an  excursion.  "  She's  been  to  Porlock  Weir,"  he 
said,  and  then  went  off  to  play  tennis,  a  game  that  invariably  occupied  his 
leisure  hours  of  daylight.  After  the  bank  had  closed  there  was  little  else  to 
do  in  Seacombe.  The  next  day  he  met  her  face  to  face,  and  he  blushed  a 
deep  pink,  for  she  had  recognised  him.  She  gave  him  a  bright  little  bow  ; 
he  stopped  ;  she  inquired  whether  he  had  anything  to  do  ;  and  "  Nothing 
at  all,"  was  his  answer.  The  tennis  club  could  go  hang  was  an  inward 
ejaculation  that  escaped  Miss  Mamie  Stuart  Berridge. 

They  bought  things  for  her  supper  and  her  breakfast,  and  she  also  wanted 
a  new  pair  of  gloves,  and  asked  the  young  man  where  she  could  get  them. 
He  did  his  best  for  her  and  carried  the  parcels,  and  explained  that  a  florin 
was  not  the  same  as  half  a  crown.  She  had  given  up  Mrs.  Bilson,  who  had 
overcharged  her,  and  was  now  doing  her  own  catering.  "  Just  like  you  English," 
she  added  gaily,  and  led  the  way  to  a  shop  where  they  sold  Devonshire  cream. 
This  latter  delicacy,  it  appeared,  was  just  lovely,"  and  not  to  be  had  at 
all  in  the  United  States. 

Won't  you  come  in  ?  "  she  asked,  when  at  last  they  reached  her  door. 

The  young  man  hesitated. 
Isn't  it  proper  ?  "  inquired  Miss  Mamie. 

The  young  man  smiled. 

"  Well,  I  guess  we'll  just  be  improper." 

The  young  man  followed  her  into  a  sitting-room  that  overlooked  the  street. 
Indoors,  Mamie  tucked  up  her  sleeves  and  made  a  salad,  and  the  young 
man  sat  on  the  sofa  and  watched  her.    "  Wliat's  your  name  ?  "  she  asked. 

Baker — James  Baker." 
"  Always  been  at  that  old  bank  ?  " 
"  Since  I  left  school." 

Like  it  ?  "  - 
"  Not  very  much." 
"  Why  do  you  stay  there  ?  " 

I  don't  know." 

Got  put  there,  and  here  in  England  people  stay  where  they're  put  ?  " 
"  I  suppose  so." 
*'  Any  prospects  ?  " 

"  I  may  be  a  manager  some  day — get  a  branch  office  like  this." 
"  W^hen  you're  pie-faced  and  bald  ?  " 

Her  frankness  was  alarming,  but  Jimmy  Baker  rather  liked  it.  "  When 
I'm  forty  or  so,"  he  admitted. 

How  old  are  you  now  ?  "    She  asked  the  question  without  looking  up 
from  her  salad. 

"  Twenty-three." 

"  I'm  twenty-two,"  said  she.  "  Uncle  Walter  died  and  left  me  a  thousand, 
and  so  I  thought  I'd  come  to  England  and  have  a  good  time.  I'm  going  to 
be  a  school  teacher  when  it's  over.  I've  been  to  college.  When  you've  been 
to  college  you  can  do  without  a  chaperon,  and  I'd  nobody  to  go  with  me  and 


142 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


nobody  to  ask.  Father's  married  again,  and  I  don't  remember  mother.  I 
was  a  baby  when  she  died.    You  got  any  folks  ?  " 

Baker  had  everything  and  everybody.  His  father  farmed  near  Bideford ; 
his  mother  and  sisters  looked  after  the  dairy  ;  his  brothers  were  at  school 
or  in  positions  similar  to  his  own. 

"  What  do  they  give  you  at  the  bank  ?  "  she  asked. 

He  named  the  figure  of  his  meagre  salary. 

"  My  !  you're  not  going  on  working  for  that !  " 

"  I  have  to,"  he  answered. 

"  Well,  it's  no  business  of  mine  ;  "  and  now  she  rang  for  the  landlady 
and  introduced  Mr.  Baker  as  a  guest  who  was  staying  to  supper. 

II 

Miss  Mamie  Stuart  Berridge  had  explored  Exmoor  and  Dunster  and  Porlock, 
and  the  other  wonderful  and  romantic  places  that  are  within  walking  or  driving 
distance  of  the  little  town.  She  had,  perhaps,  just  scratched  the  surface  ; 
yet,  for  all  that,  it  was  ecstatic  to  take  tea  in  the  shadow  of  age-old  castles, 
or  wander  through  villages  that  looked  as  though  they  had  come  straight  out 
of  a  picture-book.  Till  she  met  Jimmy  Baker,  however,  one  thing  had  been 
lacking  in  this  romance — the  final  touch.  She  saw  it  at  last,  and  clearly  too  ; 
it  had  not  been  so  very  prominent  before.  Jimmy's  ingenuous  face  brought 
it  home  to  her.  She  wanted  a  companion.  Doing  England  and  having  "  a 
good  time  "  was  all  very  well ;  but  without  a  companion  it  was  only  half  the 
good  time  it  might  have  been.  And  there  was  Jimmy,  free  to  go  a-roaming  every 
evening  after  five,  or  even  earlier.  So  she  annexed  him,  and  such  of  Seacombe 
as  knew  Jimmy  whispered  that  this  annexation  was  not  entirely  one-sided 

He  was  twenty-three  and  she  was  twenty-two,  and  it  was  the  month  of 
the  harvest  moon  and  all  the  year's  stored  tenderness.  They  climbed  the 
winding  paths  that  led  to  the  church  ;  close  together  on  a  bench  they  rested 
and  found  the  sea  ;  through  narrow  lanes  they  strolled,  and  thence  upward 
to  purple  heather  and  the  misty  hills.  And  there  Mamie  discovered  that  she 
had  not  been  mistaken.  The  final  touch  was  a  hand  laid  on  hers,  and  an 
inward  wound  like  that  which  comes  when  music  is  too  sweet,  too  magical. 
The  night  she  gave  her  lips  to  him  obliterated  America,  and  especially  Lansing, 
in  the  State  of  Michigan.  She  wanted  to  stay  here  for  ever,  in  his  arms,  and 
the  moon  poised  above  Dunkery  Beacon.  This  place  was  no  longer  England  ; 
it  had  become  the  Land  of  Heart's  Desire. 

**  Let  me  look  and  look,"  she  cried ;  "  I  shall  never  see  anything  like  this 
again  !  "  And  with  his  arm  on  her  neck,  and  cheek  against  cheek,  they  sat 
there,  awed  by  a  world  bathed  in  moonlight,  them.selves  transfigured,  smitten 
and  silenced  by  the  great  mystery  of  first-awakened  love.  It  seemed  to  Mamie 
that  she  had  been  born  anew,  been  here  admitted  into  some  strange,  all- 
satisfying  faith. 

Baker's  holiday,  an  annual  fortnight  wherein  he  might  refresh  himself 
as  best  he  could,  was  due  next  Monday.  He  had  been  saving  up  for  it.  During 
fifty  weeks  of  the  year  he  was  a  bank  clerk,  the  other  two  he  was  permitted 


THE  PROBATION  OF  JIMMY  BAKER 


143 


to  be  a  man.  By  a  predestinate  coincidence — or  so  they  deemed  it — Mamie's 
trip  expired  on  the  same  date.  A  fortnight  from  the  Monday  she  must  go 
to  Liverpool,  and  thence  return  to  Lansing,  in  the  State  of  Michigan.  She 
had  her  berth  on  the  steamboat ;  all  was  paid  for  and  arranged.  Thus  two 
weeks  and  some  odd  days  remained  to  them  before  she  sailed.  ...  It  was  on 
the  Saturday  that  they  made  up  their  minds  to  get  married. 

Which  of  the  two  first  jumped  to  that  decision  is  hard  to  say,  and  does 
not  matter  specially.  That  they  jumped  to  it  is  enough.  The  Saturday 
found  them  at  Grabbist,  above  Dunster,  and  the  inspiration  came  during 
a  pause.  It  seemed  as  simple  as  the  line  of  Dunkery  Beacon,  that  great  hill 
whose  monstrous  bulk  is  so  precise.  Next  day,  in  the  smoke-room  of  the 
Pier  Hotel,  they  consulted  reference  books.  They  could  go  to  London  to- 
morrow, and  be  married  on  the  Tuesday,  it  said,  provided  they  paid  the  fees. 
They  clubbed  their  money  together  and  went. 

From  then  onward  unseen  hands  seemed  to  guide  them  ;  first  to  their 
lodgings,  thence  to  the  office  of  the  Vicar-General,  where  they  bought  a  licence 
— ^Mamie  had  stayed  in  London,  and  had  a  residential  qualification,  it  appeared 
— and  next  day  to  the  church  where  they  were  married.  They  came  out 
into  the  street  again,  and  no  one  knew  their  secret.  They  shared  the  memory 
of  a  sacrament  taken  in  the  wilderness,  where  the  droning  curate  and  paid 
witnesses  were  of  small  account  beside  the  flame  that  had  fused  them  into 
man  and  wife.  .  .  .  The  golden  sunlight  of  that  exquisite  hour  when,  hand-in- 
hand,  they  faced  London  was  as  though  made  for  them  ;  the  old  heart  of 
the  giant  city  could  still  rejoice,  it  seemed,  and  was  ready  to  crown  true  lovers, 
and  fold  them  in  mantles  of  shimmering  tissue  and  cloth  of  gold.  They  wan- 
dered through  leafy  squares,  and  a  man  stopped  them  and  asked  them  the 
way  to  Bell  Yard.  Neither  of  them  knew.  Had  he  inquired  the  road  to 
Paradise  they  could  have  told.  .  .  .  They  grew  hungry  at  last.  Their  wedding 
breakfast  was  eaten  in  a  restaurant  off  Hatton  Garden.  The  regular  customers 
of  the  place,  Jews  for  the  most  part,  and  dealers  in  the  staple  article  of  that 
quarter,  smiled  the  racial  smile  of  genial  incredulity  as  these  two  entered  and 
found  room.  But  neither  Jim  nor  Mamie  had  a  doubt ;  for  in  their  eyes 
that  met  across  the  narrow  table  shone  a  light  more  precious  and  more  enduring 
than  that  emitted  by  all  the  diamonds,  rubies,  and  emeralds  of  Hatton  Garden. 
.  .  .  The  night  found  them  in  Rye,  a  southern  place  that  Mamie  had  chosen — 
she  had  so  often  longed  to  see  it. 

Ill 

The  boy  and  girl  shared  everything  in  those  two  weeks — pain  and  bliss, 
the  joy  of  early  morning,  the  wistfulness  of  twilight  and  the  first  white  star. 
Their  money  was  in  one  purse  ;  they  spent  it  together,  choosing  things  to 
eat  and  drink,  or  little  gifts  that  would  remind  them  when  their  hour  was 
come.  Over  their  young  heads  hung  the  shadow  ;  they  had  the  courage  to 
outface  it ;  to-morrow  was  yet  distant,  and  when  it  dawned  they  would  praise 
God  for  what  had  been,  and  could  never  be  removed.  .  .  .  They  knew  all  there 
was  to  know  ;  and  a  strange  pride  thrilled  them,  a  tenderness  that  neither 


144  THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 

had  foreseen.  Love  was  even  greater  than  their  dreams  of  it  and  their  fore- 
knowledge. The  sea's  strength  and  the  land's  strength  had  tested  soul  and 
body,  had  blessed  these  two  with  infinite  renewals,  an  unassailable  virginity. 

From  Rye  and  Winchelsea  they  had  wandered  to  Hythe  along  that  coast- 
line, avoiding  Dungeness,  and  pausing  at  Lydd,  New  Romney,  and  Dymchurch 
with  its  sands.  Each  morning  they  had  bathed,  and  often  at  sunset ;  these 
old  places  fascinated  them,  and  especially  Mamie,  who  came  from  Lansing,  in 
the  State  of  Michigan. 

"  What  a  lot  you  know  !  "  he  said  one  day,  amazed  at  her  book  learning. 

"  I'm  going  to  be  a  school  teacher,"  she  laughed  back,  "  and  besides,  I 
like  it.  No,  it's  not  the  history — the  dates  and  things — that  fascinates  me  ; 
but  I  seem  to  have  been  here  before,"  she  explained,  adding  :  "  Lots  of  us 
Americans  feel  that  way  about  it — as  though — as  though  " 

"  You'd  come  from  here  ?  "  he  helped  her. 

"  That's  right — as  though  we'd  come  from  here.  And  perhaps  we  have," 
she  added  gaily,  finishing  with  "  Our  name's  Berridge,  so  we  must  have  done." 

"  I  never  look  upon  you  as  a  foreigner,"  said  he  ;  *'  at  least,  I  haven't 
since  "  and  he  hesitated. 

"  Since  ?  "  she  inquired. 

"  Since  I  first  wanted  to  kiss  you." 

"  Do  it  again  !  " 

Jimmy  was  quite  prepared  to  take  up  the  challenge,  but  she  had  fled. 
He  caught  her  behind  the  plump  Martello  Tower  where  she  was  hiding,  and 
did  it  again.  After  that  they  returned  to  firmer  ground,  sitting  on  the  beach 
and  looking  out  over  the  Channel. 

"  You  must  leave  that  old  bank,"  began  Mamie ;  "  it's  served  its  purpose." 

"  It  brought  us  together." 

"  Yes,  that's  just  it.    And  now  it's  brought  us  together  " 

"  We  can  drop  it  ?  "    He  had  seen  her  point. 
I  don't  want  you  to  go  on  working  for  them,"  she  pursued  ;  "  I  want 
you  to  work  for  us — for  me." 

Jimmy  nodded.    "  I've  thought  of  that  as  well,"  he  answered. 

"  They  give  you  a  wretched  salary,  and  when  you're  an  old  Gazook  and 
nobody  wants  you,  they  say,  '  Perhaps  it's  time  he  got  married,'  and  put 
you  in  charge  of  a  little  ofiice  like  that  at  Seacombe." 
That's  it,"  said  Jimmy. 

"  Banking's  no  good  in  this  old  country  unless  you're  somebody's  son, 
or  rich  on  your  own  account.    But  I  know  what,"  she  added,  brightening. 

Jimmy  sat  up. 

"  You  must  get  into  some  regular  article  like  woollens  or  cottons  or  manu- 
factured things — a  good  salesman's  always  got  a  chance." 

"  D'you  know,  I've  thought  of  that  as  well  ?  "  cried  young  Baker.  "  My 
brother  Tom  travels  with  wholesale  groceries,  and  he's  doing  well." 

"  If  you  haven't  got  money,  you've  got  to  make  business,  and  then  the  firm's 
bound  to  pay  you — it  can't  help  itself.   My  old  uncle  was  always  saying  that." 

And  so  it  was  resolved  that,  when  Mamie  went  back  to  America,  Jim 


146 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


should  quit  the  bank  and  get  hold  of  a  "  regular  article."  Only  that  way 
could  they  two  come  together  again,  unless  they  wished  to  wait  till  he  had 
become  the  "  old  Gazook  "  of  Mamie's  prophecy. 

IV 

The  day  of  parting  came.  He  stood  on  the  quay  at  Liverpool  and  watched 
the  great  boat  out  of  sight.  A  mist  filled  his  eyes  ;  but  when,  at  last,  he 
turned  on  his  heel  and  faced  reality  once  more,  a  courage  rose  within  him, 
and  he  resolved  to  conquer  or  to  perish.  He  would  conquer — conquer — con- 
quer. All  the  way  to  London  the  train  seemed  to  be  repeating  that  burden, 
seemed  to  be  branding  it,  stamping  it  in  deep-bitten  letters  on  his  heart  of 
hearts.  And  with  that  repetition  mingled  an  ineffaceable  memory  of  her  and 
her  fine  courage.  They  had  kissed  good-bye  that  morning  in  the  room  of 
their  hotel,  and  again  in  the  tiny  cabin  where  there  was  scarce  room  to  swing 
a  cat.  "  Believe  in  me,"  he  had  whispered,  her  slim  body  close  pressed  to 
his  own  ;  and  once  more  "  Believe  in  me,  believe  in  me  !  "  .  .  .  "  If  I  didn't 
believe  in  you,"  she  had  answered,  "  I  would  just  drop  overboard,  and  no 
more  said."  ..."  And  if  there's  anything  else,  when  you  get  over  there,  you'll 
tell  me  ?  "  She  had  understood  him.  ..."  I'll  tell,  of  course  I'll  tell ;  "  and 
then  :  "  It's  no  fun  being  a  woman,  is  it,  Jim  ?  "  she  had  added,  with  a  little 
laugh.  .  .  .  Now  in  the  train  he  fed  on  those  last  moments,  and  he  would  conquer 
or  perish.    "  Conquer — conquer — conquer,"  echoed  the  on-rushing  train. 

He  was  in  Seacombe  that  night,  and  had  given  notice  next  morning.  "  Got 
another  job  ?  "  asked  the  manager  ;  and  "  Yes,  in  London,"  answered  young 
Baker.  The  other  seemed  to  envy  him  his  chance  of  escape.  A  month  from 
then,  armed  with  a  first-class  character  and  seven  pounds  in  gold,  Jimmy 
set  out  for  the  metropolis.  He  had  told  his  father  as  much  as  he  dared  tell 
that  unromantic  old  man.  He  hadn't  been  home  for  his  holiday  this  year, 
he  said,  because  he  wanted  to  get  away  somewhere  quiet  and  think  about 
his  future.  Now  he  had  come  to  a  decision.  Unless  one  had  capital  or 
influence,  banking  was  no  good  ;  for  a  poor  man  it  was  best  to  learn  about 
some  staple  article  like  woollens  or  cotton  or  coal,  and  stick  to  that.  His 
father  said  :  "  We'll  see,"  and  the  rest  of  that  week-end  passed  much  as 
usual.  ..."  D'you  know,  I  think  you're  right  ?  "  said  the  old  man  on  the 
Monday  morning  ;  "I  never  thought  much  of  that  banking,  but  your  mother 
says  it's  a  genteel  trade,  almost  like  parsoning  or  being  a  lawyer." 

Jim  Baker  went  up  to  London,  and  these  West-Country  folk  being  a  sturdy 
stock,  no  one  at  home,  or  even  at  Seacombe,  had  any  doubt  but  that  he  would 
find  a  living.  Mamie,  meanwhile,  had  removed  to  Buffalo,  New  York,  and 
had  there  begun  her  school  teaching.  Letters  came  and  went ;  at  first  by 
every  post,  then  not  quite  so  often,  and  at  last  it  was  agreed  that,  when  there 
was  nothing  of  any  consequence  to  say,  a  post-card  would  be  enough.  "  I 
don't  want  you  to  be  worried  by  all  this,"  wrote  Mamie  ;  "  you've  got  your 
work  to  do,  and  I  guess  I've  got  mine."  Sometimes  to  the  romantic  youth 
she  seemed  the  least  bit  hard-hearted.  He  mustn't  let  the  thought  of  her 
hinder  him,  she  insisted  ;   yet  often  she  wrote  two  letters  to  his  one. 


THE  PROBATION  OF  JIMMY  BAKER 


147 


Baker's  business  hours  were  spent  in  looking  for  the  staple  article.  He 
tried  several  before  he  dropped  on  to  his  feet ;  cocoa  to  begin  with,  then  clocks 
and  watches,  and,  finally,  leather.  He  resolved  to  stick  to  leather — firstly, 
because  everybody  used  it ;  and,  secondly,  because  he  felt  instinctively  that 
the  man  who  had  engaged  him  was  of  the  sort  who  would  give  a  fellow  a  chance. 
This  gentleman,  a  middle-aged  Scotsman,  Campbell  by  name,  had  a  warehouse 
in  Bermondsey,  and  to  him  young  Baker  went  as  invoice  clerk.  Now  he  wrote 
leather  to  Mamie,  who  answered  for  a  while  on  cards.  A  suspicion  flashed 
across  him  during  this  fancied  period  of  neglect ;  but  she  had  said  no  word 
about  that — and  she  had  promised.  The  suspicion  died  down  with  her  first 
long  letter.  She  had  removed  to  Cleveland,  where  she  had  taken  a  new  position. 
That  explained  it  all,  and  Mamie  was  forgiven. 

The  next  year  he  spoke  French  and  German  after  a  fashion  of  his  own, 
and  could  attend  to  foreign  customers.  In  the  autumn  he  was  promoted  to 
the  warehouse  and  allowed  to  sell.  One  day  he  went  out  and  came  back 
with  a  contract  running  into  four  figures  ;  and  then,  instead  of  an  increase 
of  salary,  he  stipulated  for  a  small  commission.  His  employer  made  no  oppo- 
sition ;  indeed,  Mr.  Campbell  rather  preferred  this  new  arrangement.  Baker 
was  beginning  to  put  by  money.  And  from  across  the  ocean  came  an  answer- 
ing whoop,  shouts  and  ecstasies  of  triumph,  as,  step  by  step,  these  two  drew 
nearer  to  the  Promised  Land.  Her  letters  had  now  become  a  spur,  a  call — 
never  a  goad,  never  a  lash  ;  but  there  they  were,  egging  him  on,  a  challenge 
and  yet  a  support,  a  martial  music  playing  him  into  battle.  In  the  night  he 
blessed  her  ;  often  he  lay  awake,  groping  for  the  memory  of  that  sweet  slim 
body.  ...  So  passed  the  years  till  he  had  made  a  home  for  her. 

The  long-awaited  day  had  dawned  at  last.  His  commissions  had  reached 
the  sum  they  had  agreed  ;  with  his  savings  he  had  taken  a  modest  house 
and  furnished  it.  She  had  only  to  walk  inside.  He  told  his  chief,  now  become 
his  friend  ;  he  took  him  into  his  confidence  and  unfolded  their  whole  story. 

So  that's  what  put  the  devil  inside  you  !  "  cried  Campbell,  and  slapped  him 
on  the  back.  "  Go  you  off  to  Liverpool,"  he  added,  "  and  don't  come  back  till 
you're  wanted.  Make  it  a  week.  Baker ;  for  you're  not  indispensable,  though  you 
think  you  are.  And  tell  the  dear  girl  I  sent  you,  and  that  I  want  to  shake  hands 
with  her — she's  given  me  the  best  salesman  in  all  Bermondsey,  d'ye  hear  that?" 

Jimmy  heard  it  and  laughed  ;  and  there  was  a  pride  in  his  laughter  as 
well  as  a  deep  joy.  Few  men  had  a  wife  like  his,  he  knew — scarce  one  in  all 
he  had  run  across  these  six  hot  years.  Arrived  home  that  night,  he  found 
the  last  letter  she  had  posted  from  the  other  side. 

"  Husband  and  lover,"  she  wrote,  "  hold  on  to  something  tight.  I  have 
a  dear  surprise  for  you.  I  am  bringing  your  boy  to  his  father.  I  never  told 
you  before,  because  I  wanted  you  to  be  free,  because  I  wanted  you  to  go  ahead 
and  not  bother  about  me  and  about  us.  He  was  born  in  the  spring,  when  I 
only  sent  post-cards.  That  was  why  I  only  sent  post-cards,  and  that  was 
why  I  removed  to  Cleveland  afterwards.  I  had  my  marriage  paper  to  show, 
so  it  didn't  matter  much,  and  I  let  out  and  worked  for  the  two  of  us  ;  and 
now  he's  close  on  six  years  old.    He's  just  like  you,  Jim  :  the  same  sturdy 


148 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


limbs,  the  same  clear  forehead,  and  good  blue  eyes.  With  him  I  have  been 
able  to  bear  all  this  separation.  He  knows  you  and  loves  you,  and  to-day 
he  is  mad  with  joy,  because,  at  last,  we  are  going  to  live  with  father.  Forgive 
me  for  hiding  this  from  you  ;  but  I  didn't  want  to  be  a  drag  upon  you.  I 
wanted  you  to  have  a  clear  road  and  go  the  shortest  way.  When  you  meet 
us  at  Liverpool,  you'll  tell  me  whether  I  did  right." 

My  God,"  cried  Jimmy  Baker,  "  my  God,  I've  got  a  son  as  well !  And 
it  was  like  her,  too — like  her  to  say  nothing  and  stand  aside  for  me  !  " 

V 

In  Liverpool  Baker  met  them,  and  the  boy  was  just  as  she  had  described 
him,  with  his  father's  eyes  and  forehead,  and  strength  of  chest  and  limb.  That 
subtle  something  which  makes  blood  know  its  own  blood,  flesh  its  own  flesh, 
united  these  two  on  the  landing-stage.  Mamie  stood  aside  holding  in  her 
tears,  as  father  and  son  hugged  one  another  for  the  first  time.  He  had  kissed 
her  before  the  child,  and  she  was  glad  of  that.  His  quick  embrace,  his  look 
of  pride,  had  been  a  reassurance,  a  reward,  that  wiped  out  in  one  stroke  the 
pain  of  those  long  years,  their  doubts,  their  fears,  suspenses,  and  privations. 
From  a  slip  of  a  girl  she  had  grown  into  splendid  womanhood  ;  and  he,  the 
lad  that  she  remembered,  was  standing  there — a  man. 

They  left  the  boy  with  grandparents  and  aunts,  a  whole  cloud  of  new 
relations  ;  and  then  alone  they  stole  off  to  Seacombe  and  Dunster,  and  the 
shadow  of  Dunkery  Beacon. 

It  was  May.  Earth,  sea,  and  sky  were  tender  with  their  own  tenderness  ; 
in  the  youth  of  all  things  green,  new  fledged,  or  bursting  into  flower,  they 
found  echo  and  symbol  of  their  own  renewal.  Lovers  they  had  been  here, 
when  he  had  served  in  "  that  old  bank  "  ;  and  lovers  they  were  once  more, 
now  that  steadfastness  and  self-mastery  had  brought  them  a  far  deeper  passion. 

"  Would  you  go  through  it  all  over  again  ?  "  he  asked  her,  knowing  her 
answer  ere  he  spoke. 

"  Over  and  over  again,  if  it  had  to  be — but  God  is  merciful  to  lovers,"  she 
replied.    "  I  have  learnt  that  thinking — thinking  how  it  all  happened." 

"  I  too,"  he  said.  Few  things  there  were  that  these  two  had  not  thought 
together,  though  time  and  ocean  rolled  between. 

London  claimed  them,  and  work  and  their  new  home.  Mr.  Campbell 
invited  himself  to  supper  on  the  evening  of  their  arrival. 

"  The  living  image  of  you,  Baker,"  he  said,  when  Jimmy,  junior,  was  intro- 
duced, "  the  living  image !  "  And  then,  "  I  want  you  to  stay  on  with  us  in  Ber- 
mondsey ;  you  can  have  a  share — call  it  '  Campbell  &  Baker,'  shall  we,  Mamie  ?  " 
For  the  old  rufiian  had  insisted  on  addressing  Mamie  by  her  Christian  name. 

The  offer  was  accepted,  and  in  parting,  "  Only  one  man  in  a  thousand 
could  have  done  what  you  have  done,"  said  Mr.  Campbell ;  "  and  only  one 
woman  in  a  hundred  thousand,  Mamie.  You've  done  the  impossible  ;  you're 
geniuses,"  he  ended,  laughing  at  them  ;  and,  as  an  afterthought,  If  my  boy 
ever  gets  married  on  the  quiet  and  plays  the  fool,  I'll  break  his  blethering 
neck  for  him  I  " 


The  Ghost  that  Failed 

By  Desmond  Coke 

Loyal  North  Lancashire  Regiment 

The  Blue  Lady  wailed  disconsolately  in  the  panelled  room. 

In  her  mortal  life,  four  hundred  years  before,  she  had  always  been  some- 
what behind  the  times  ;  and  now  she  was  in  arrears  by  the  space  of  a  whole 
Silly  Season.    She  was  grappling  with  the  stale  problem,  "  Do  we  Believe  ?  " 

The  Blue  Lady  concluded,  emphatically,  that  we  did  not  believe  ;  and 
hence  her  wailing.  She  had  seen  the  age  of  scepticism  coming.  For  more  than 
three  hundred  glad  years  men  had  crossed  themselves  and  shuddered  when 
she  went  moaning  through  the  sombre  rooms  of  Yewcroft  Hall.  Secure  in 
her  reputation,  she  had  been  content  once  only  in  the  evening  to  interrupt 
the  revelry,  and  then,  conscious  that  all  eyes  had  been  upon  her  stately  progress, 
to  seek  contentedly  her  spectral  couch.  But  with  the  growth  of  science  had 
risen  also  disbelief.  Once  stage-coaches  were  discarded,  and  people  came 
to  Yewcroft  by  a  steam-drawn  train,  she  felt  that  any  other  marvel  must  lose 
caste.  She  did  not  fail  to  observe  that,  as  she  passed  along  the  rooms,  there 
were  those  who,  though  they  trembled,  would  not  turn,  and  made  pretence 
of  not  observing  her.  Then  came  the  hideous  day  on  which  the  Hall  harboured 
a  deputation  from  a  Society  of  Research,  who  loaded  themselves  with  cameras, 
dull  books,  and  revolvers,  before  spending  a  night  in  the  Panelled  Room. 
The  Blue  Lady,  as  became  a  self-respecting  ghost,  slept  elsewhere,  and  would 
not  show  herself  to  these  ill-mannered  creatures  ;  so  that  next  day  the  Press 
declared  the  famous  Yewcroft  ghost  to  be  a  myth.  This  was  terrible  ;  but 
far  worse  was  to  come. 

The  family  who  had  held  Yewcroft  since  feudal  times,  the  Blue  Lady's 
own  family,  showed  with  old  age  a  preference  for  sleep,  and  inasmuch  as  an 
ungrateful  populace  refused  to  pay  them  for  this  function,  reduced  means  led 
to  the  abandonment  of  Yewcroft.  It  was  taken  by  Lord  Silthirsk,  who  had 
made  tinned  meat  and  a  million  by  methods  equally  ambiguous.  He  turned 
the  moss-hung  chapel  into  a  garage,  and  fitted  electric  light  throughout  the  Hall. 

The  Blue  Lady,  struck  in  every  vulnerable  part,  resolved  to  drive  the 
Silthirsks  out.  For  the  first  three  days  of  their  residence  she  missed  no  chance 
of  floating  in  on  Lady  Silthirsk  at  moments  likely  to  embarrass  her.  Her 
Ladyship  showed  no  symptoms  of  annoyance  or  of  fear,  though  sometimes, 
if  not  alone,  she  would  look  up  and  say,  "  Oh,  here's  that  blue  one  again," 
in  tones  which  the  blue  one  took  to  be  of  terror  cleverly  concealed.  On  the 
fourth  day  the  Silthirsks  had  a  niece  to  stay,  and  the  Blue  Lady  embraced 
this  as  a  chance  to  learn  what  real  impression  she  had  made.    Waiting  till 

149 


150 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


dessert  was  on  the  table,  so  that  her  Ladyship  might  not  think  it  necessary 
to  hide  her  fear  before  the  servants,  she  swept  into  the  dining-room  and  passed 
close  beside  the  niece. 

Elfrida  shuddered.    "  What  was  that  ?  "  she  cried. 

"  What's  what  ?  "  asked  her  aunt ;  while  her  uncle  said  '*  Banana,"  and 
fell  to  his  dessert  again. 

"  No — something  cold :  it  made  me  shudder,  just  as  if  something  had  gone  by." 

The  Blue  Lady,  ambushed  behind  a  vast  tooled-leather  screen,  gloated 
over  her  success. 

"  Oh,  that !  "  said  Lady  Silthirsk :  "  that's  one  of  the  fixtures — a  spook. 
We  rather  like  her — it's  so  picturesque  and  old-world,  ain't  it  ?  Some  people 
can  see  her — /  always  can.  She's  blue — quite  an  inoffensive  mauvy  blue. 
Oh,  I  distinctly  like  her.  She's  a  novelty,  ye  know :  and  she'll  be  so  cooling 
in  the  summer  !  " 

But  even  she  started  at  the  ghastly  groan  which  issued  from  behind  the 
leather  screen. 

For  some  weeks  the  Blue  Lady  did  not  deign  to  show  herself,  until  Lady 
Silthirsk  began  to  find  fault.  The  landlord,  she  implied,  had  swindled  her. 
It  became  clear  to  the  spectre  that  all  hopes  of  driving  out  these  upstarts  by 
terror  had  been  idle  dreams. 

And  now,  on  Christmas  Eve,  the  night  dedicate  of  old  to  her  compatriots, 
she  had  given  herself  up  to  despair.  She  did  not  even  care  to  walk.  She 
wailed  disconsolately  in  the  Panelled  Room. 

It  was  thus  that  the  Gaunt  Baron  found  her.  The  Gaunt  Baron  did  not 
belong  to  Yewcroft,  but  was  attached  to  a  neighbouring  house,  now  empty. 
With  nobody  to  terrify  at  home,  he  found  visits  to  the  Blue  Lady  a  not 
unpleasing  variant  of  the  monotony.  Except  that  she  was  several  centuries 
his  junior,  he  felt  for  her  an  emotion  which  went  to  a  dangerous  degree  beyond 
respect.    He  was  pained  to  find  her  wailing. 

"  What,  wailing  !  "  he  cried,  coming  on  her  through  the  oaken  panels, 
"  and  nobody  to  hear  you  ?  " 

The  Blue  Lady  raised  a  tortured  face  towards  him.  Who  would  not 
wail  ?  And  who  should  hear  me  ?  Fools  !  They  can  not  hear  me.  Many 
of  them  do  not  even  see  me.  Bah  !  They  have  no  sense,  except  the  sense 
of  taste  :  with  truffles  before  them,  they  see  nothing  else." 

"  To-night  is  Christmas  Eve." 

The  Gaunt  Baron  made  the  suggestion  in  a  mild,  kindly  way,  but  the 
Blue  Lady  turned  upon  him  almost  angrily,  as  though  he  had  been  the  culprit. 

"  Yes  !  To-night  is  Christmas  Eve.  And  what  are  they  doing  ?  Where 
is  the  Yule-log  ?  Where  is  the  wassail  ?  Where  the  dim  light  of  glowing 
embers  ?  They'll  sit  in  the  glare  of  this  new  light — a  big  party — and  play 
what  they  call  Bridge  ;  and  if  they  feel  a  mystic  chill,  will  draw  the  curtains 
or  turn  the  hot-air  pipes  full  on.  .  .  .  What  do  these  fools  know  about  Romance  ? 
The  word  is  dead.  I  saw  some  of  their  novels  while  the  house  was  shut. 
Love  ?  Gallantry  ?  Nowhere  in  the  volume.  A  knock-kneed  weakling 
making  love  to  his  friend's  wife,  or  two  infants  puling  of  passion  like  mere 


'  Do  a  cake-walk,  now  I '    *  Encore  1 '       (page  153), 


152 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


vulgar  serfs.  .  .  .  Love,  for  these  people,  ends  with  Marriage,  to  begin  again 
after  Divorce." 

"  You  are  bitter."  The  Gaunt  Baron  held  his  head  beneath  his  arm — a 
fact  which  gave  to  all  his  utterances  something  of  the  tone  of  a  ventriloquist. 

"  Bitter  !  So  would  you  be  bitter  !  It's  all  very  well  for  you,  with  the 
Manor  empty  ; — but  me,  with  these  vulgarians  !  .  .  .  Baron,  these  mortals 
are  beating  us  :  we're  pretty  well  played  out.  '  Played  out !  '  Look  at 
our  very  speech  :  they've  ruined  that.  Do  I  speak  like  a  woman  of  the  day 
of  Good  Queen  Bess  ?  Do  you  speak  like  a  baron  of — of  King — like  an  ancient 
baron  ?  " 

"  You  do  not, — and  it  was  Stephen,"  said  the  Baron  quietly. 

"  Mark  me,  Baron,  we  are  near  the  end.  Either  Lady  Silthirsk  or  myself 
leaves  Yewcroft.  There  is  no  room  here  for  a  self-respecting  spectre.  They 
use  the  headsman's  block  for  mounting  on  their  horses.  If  I  cannot  drive 
them  out,  I  go, — and  where  ?  Well,  if  I  cannot  leave  the  earth — oh,  why 
was  I  ever  murdered  ? — then  I  must  sleep  beneath  the  hedges,  till  I  find  an 
empty  house.  Baron,  that  time  is  near.  I  have  tried  everything,  and  nothing 
seems  to  frighten  them.  Lady  Silthirsk  serves  liqueurs  in  the  old  Banquet 
Hall  at  midnight,  and  as  I  don't  appear, — as  though  I  should  ! — she  says 
the  theatre  is  closed  for  alterations  and  repairs.  Oh,  it  is  unbearable,  un- 
bearable !  " 

"  Dear  lady,"  answered  the  Gaunt  Baron,  "  do  not  despair.  I  managed 
to  say,  some  minutes  ago,  that  it  was  Christmas  Eve.  Let  me  explain.  It 
is  now  close  upon  the  hour  of  midnight — ^the  time  and  day  on  which  we  ghosts 
are  thought  by  men  to  have  our  greatest  power.  Even  those  who  don't 
believe  in  us  are  a  little  influenced  by  the  tradition.  As  twelve  strikes  every 
one  is  half  expectant.  That  is  your  moment.  Burst  upon  them,  wailing 
and  raving.  They  are  sure  to  see.  Some  of  the  guests  will  insist  on  leaving 
Yewcroft,  and  the  Silthirsks  will  not  like  a  house  where  parties  are  impossible. 
Quick  !  There  is  the  gurgle  that  preludes  the  hall-clock's  striking.  In  three 
minutes  midnight  will  be  here.  Hasten,  sweet  dame,  hasten  !  I  will  be  at 
hand  to  watch  you." 

Downstairs,  during  this  dialogue,  Lady  Silthirsk  had  been  talking  to  her 
niece.  "  Elfrida,  dear,  in  a  few  minutes  they'll  all  be  here  for  the  midnight 
seance  ;  and  I  have  something  that  I  want  to  tell  you  first." 

"  Why,  what  is  it,  auntie  ?  "  asked  Elfrida :  "  you  look  terribly  serious." 

"  I  am  serious,  darling  girl.  Let  me  be  frank.  I  think  it  is  time  that  you 
were  married — not  only,  understand,  because  of  your  poor  parents,  but  also 
for  your  own  happiness.    And  when  I  see  a  man  who  can  make  you  both 

rich  and  happy,  well  " 

But  who  ?  "  interrupted  Elfrida. 

"  Who  ?    My  dear  girl,  are  you  blind  I    Why,  Bobby  !  " 

"  Lord  Bancourt  ?  " 
Yes,  '  Lord  Bancourt '  !    Don't  look  as  though  I  had  shot  you  !  Why, 
you  silly  dear  thing,  you  must  know  Bobby  is  madly  in  love  with  you.  All 


THE  GHOST  THAT  FAILED 


158 


this  week  he  has  followed  you  about  like  an  obedient  dog,  and  all  the  week 
youVe  ignored  him  as  though  he  were  a  naughty  mongrel  I  " 

"  Why,  I'm  sure  I've  treated  him  just  like  anybody  else.    I  never  " 

"  My  dear  Elfrida,  you  will  be  the  death  of  me  !  Do  you  think  he  wants 
no  more  of  you  ?  Are  you  living  in  the  Middle  Ages,  or  is  this  the  Twen- 
century  ?  Do  you  expect  him  to  come  and  steal  you  away  by  night  and 
force  ?    Nowadays  the  girl  must  do  her  part.    Bobby  is  a  splendid  fellow, 

an  old  friend  of  mine,  rich,  young,  passably  good-looking  " 

I  think  he's  handsome,  decidedly,"  Elfrida  said,  without  a  thought, 
and  then  blushed  scarlet. 

Her  aunt  laughed.  "  And  1  think  you're  in  love  v/ith  him,"  she  said. 
"  I  know  he  only  wants  a  little  encouragement — not  quite  so  much  ice  to  the 
square  inch,  my  dear  !    Won't  you  try,  for  my  sake  ?  " 

"  I'll  try,  auntie,  yes  :  I  could  be  very,  very  happy  with  him — if  he  asked 
me  :  but  I  don't  think  I  could — it's  so  hard  " 

Lady  Silthirsk  kissed  her.  "  I  don't  ask  anything,  you  little  goose,  except 
that  you  should  be  just  humanly  kind  to  poor  Bobby — I  think  he'll  do  the 
rest !  " 

"  I'll  try;'  said  Elfrida  dubiously. 

Her  aunt,  she  reflected,  was  not  of  a  nature  to  see  how  terrible  it  would 
be  if  people  should  believe  her  to  be  "  angling  "  for  Lord  Bancourt.  Better 
that  he  should  choose  some  one  else  than  that  he  should  marry  her  on  such 
a  rumour  ! 

"  Oh,  here  they  are  !  "  cried  Lady  Silthirsk,  as  her  husband  brought  his 
flock  into  the  room,  shouting  : 

"  I've  collected  every  one,  gamblers  and  all,  for  the  sdance — except  Bobby. 
Can't  find  him." 

"  Oh,  I  wish  he  were  here — the  Lady  will  surely  walk  on  Christmas  Eve," 
said  the  hostess.  "  If  she  doesn't,  I  mean  to  demand  my  money  back  !  Oh, 
there's  the  hour  !  Sit  quiet,  every  one.  .  .  .  Blue  Lady  forward,  please  ! 
There,  look  !— there  I  " 

She  pointed  excitedly  at  the  old  gallery,  once  for  minstrels,  now  arrogated 
by  a  pianola  organ.  Behind  its  oaken  pillars  passed  a  vague  female  figure, 
dressed  in  blue,  moaning  horribly,  and  waving  distraught  arms  above  her 
flowing  hair. 

Immediately  cries  of  every  sort  rose  from  the  watchers. 

"  I  can't  see  her."  "  It's  a  cinematograph  !  "  What  ho.  Lord  Bobby  !  " 
"  Gad,  she's  gone  slick  through  the  music-stool."  "  I  still  can't  see  her." 
"  No,  there's  nothing  there."    "  Do  a  Cakewalk,  now  !  "    "  Encore  !  " 

As  she  vanished  some  one  clapped  his  hands,  and  with  a  laugh  the  whole 
party  joined  in  the  applause. 

The  scene  had  not  been  very  impressive.  From  a  theatrical  point  of  view 
the  ghost's  entrance  had  been  ruined  by  the  number  and  the  temper  of  its 
audience.  Those  who  had  not  seen  it  scoffed  ;  those  who  had,  till  reminded 
of  the  music-stool  seen  dimly  through  the  figure,  half-believed  the  Blue  Lady 
to  be  an  alias  of  Lord  Bancourt.    Then,  as  one  by  one  they  realised  that  what 


154 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


had  passed  was  in  very  truth  a  ghost,  the  guests  hushed  their  laughter,  until 
the  babel  sank  almost  into  silence. 

It  was  in  such  a  lull  that  Bobby  entered.  "  Why,  what  a  stony  siance  \  " 
he  exclaimed.    "  Missing  me  ?  or  seen  a  ghost  ?  " 

"  Yes — so  delightful !  The  Blue  Lady  actually  came,"  said  Lady  Silthirsk, 
who  alone  seemed  totally  unruffled. 

Bobby  laughed — the  unforced  laugh  of  healthy  youth.  "  Oh-ho  !  I 
see  why  you  were  silent.  But  you  can't  green  me,  thanks  :  I'm  not  quite 
so  verdant — oh  no,  not  at  all !  " 

"  We  have  seen  it — really,"  one  or  two  guests  hastened  to  assure  him. 

Lord  Bancourt  laughed  more  heartily  than  ever.  "  Why,  I  believe  you've 
honestly  deceived  yourselves  !  This  is  glorious  !  You  really  think  you  saw 
the  ghost !  " 

"  Who  could  doubt  ?  "  asked  a  plump  dowager,  who  intended  henceforth 
to  adopt  a  pose  intensely  spiritual.  "  What  doubt  exists,  when  the  great 
After  lifts  its  veil  ?    Have  you  ever  seen  a  ghost,  Lord  Bancourt  ?  " 

Bobby  tried  to  hide  his  smiles.  "  I'm  afraid — and  glad — I  haven't.  If 
I  did,  I  should  go  off  my  nut,  I  think.    But  I  don't  think  I  ever  shall !  " 

With  these  words  he  moved  towards  the  circle  of  ghost-seers,  and  chose, 
with  unerring  aim,  of  all  the  vacant  chairs,  that  next  Elfrida. 

Lady  Silthirsk  beamed  contentedly. 

"  I  seem  to  have  missed  a  lot,"  said  the  irrepressible  Bobby,  as  he  sat 
down,  and  added  impudently,  "  but  I  hope  that  I've  been  missed  a  lot  ?  " 

Elfrida  remembered  her  aunt's  warning,  but  she  also  fancied  (as  the  self- 
conscious  will)  that  all  the  gathering,  still  somewhat  silent,  had  heard  the 
question,  and  would  hear  the  answer.  She  could  fancy  their  scorn  at  her 
"  scheming  tactics." 

Bobby  looked  expectantly  towards  her. 

"  It  was  certainly  a  unique  experience,"  she  said  stiffly. 

Bobby's  face  fell. 

Lady  Silthirsk  shrugged  her  shoulders. 

.  .  .  .  • 

"  There  !  "  exclaimed  the  Blue  Lady,  safe  within  the  Panelled  Room, 
"  I  ktiew  how  your  mad  scheme  would  work.  You  heard  :  they  catcalled, 
they  etticored  me,  asked  for  some  new  dance.  They  gave  me  a  round  of  applause 
when  I  went  off.    I  can  stay  here  no  longer,  to  be  insulted." 

"  Always  impetuous  !  "  said  the  Gaunt  Baron  quietly.  "  You  rushed 
off  after  the  applause  :  I  waited,  and  heard  what  alters  the  whole  question." 

"  Namely  ?  "  asked  the  Lady,  in  ill  temper. 

"  Lord  Bancourt  did  not  see  you — has  never  seen  a  ghost — doesn't  believe 
in  them.  He  said  distinctly,  '  If  I  saw  one,  I  should  go  off  my  nut,' — this 
being  schoolboy  and  smart  for  going  mad." 

"  I  begin  to  see."    The  Blue  Lady  brightened  visibly. 

"  Exactly.  You  must  catch  him  alone — no  more  of  these  convivial  audiences 
— and  then  drive  him  mad.  He  is  an  old  friend  of  Lady  Silthirsk,  rich  and  titled ; 
she  would  not  stay  here  after  that.    You  must  wreak  your  worst  on  him," 


THE  GHOST  THAT  FAILED 


155 


"  I  can  only  wail,"  she  answered  gloomily  ;  "I  have  no  chains,  or  blood, 

or  severed  head  " 

The  words  inspired  the  headless  Baron. 

"  Ah,"  he  cried,  "  I  will  come  and  help — to-night.  I  ought  not  to  show 
myself  out  of  my  own  house,  but  " 

*'  Oh,  what  is  etiquette  in  such  a  crisis  ?  Baron,  dear  Baron,  you  have 
saved  me.    I  am  an  old-fashioned  woman,  and  at  such  a  time  I  need  a  man  .  .  ." 

It  was  night.  It  had,  to  be  precise,  been  night  for  several  hours,  and  the 
whole  household  was  at  length  tucked  up  in  bed.  Sleep  had  come  none  too 
easily  to  at  least  three  members, — to  Elfrida  worrying  about  the  real  senti- 
ments of  Bobby,  to  Bobby  worrying  about  the  real  sentiments  of  Elfrida,  and 
to  Lady  Silthirsk  worrying  about  the  real  sentiments  of  both.  The  last  named, 
in  particular,  tossed  long  upon  her  sleepless  bed.  She  was  puzzled.  She 
could  half  understand  Elfrida's  foolish  diffidence  :  she  could  not  understand 
Bobby's  idiotic  silence.  Why  did  he  not  speak  ?  He  was  not  of  a  sort  to  be 
lightly  daunted  by  the  fear  of  a  rebuff.  Or  had  she  made  a  false  diagnosis  ? 
Was  he  not  in  love  at  all  ? 

And  at  length  even  she  turned  over  on  her  side  with  a  contented  groan. 
Sleep  reigned  over  Yewcroft  Hall. 

But  in  Bobby's  room,  far  off  along  the  west  wing,  dark  deeds  were  decidedly 
afoot.  For  more  than  half  an  hour  a  headless  Knight,  clanking  horribly  in  every 
joint  of  his  dim-gleaming  armour,  had  chased  to  and  fro  a  blue-clad  Lady, 
who  wailed  in  awful  wise  and  tossed  arms  of  agony  to  the  wall-papered  ceiling. 

Through  all  this  Lord  Bancourt  slept  smilingly  upon  his  noble  bed. 

Then  the  Gaunt  Baron  consulted  with  the  Blue  Lady,  and  a  change  of 
tactics  was  the  result.  The  armoured  figure  now  rattled  round  the  room, 
rousing  more  noise  than  any  antiquated  motor,  the  while  a  frantic  dame  pur- 
sued him  with  blood-curdling  wails. 

Bobby  stirred  a  little,  murmured  sleepily,  turned  over,  and  showed  every 
symptom  of  having  relapsed  into  even  deeper  slumber. 

The  ghosts  were  in  despair. 

"  Dawn  draws  on,"  said  the  Gaunt  Baron  suddenly.  "  I  always  knew 
when  I  was  beaten.  Come,  sweet  dame.  A  man  who  can  sleep  like  that  will 
make  his  mark  some  day  in  the  House  of  Lords." 

He  vanished,  and,  after  one  despairing  glance,  the  Blue  Lady  flung  herself 
angrily  through  the  oaken  door. 

It  was  at  this  moment,  by  a  subtle  irony  of  fate,  that  Lord  Bancourt  awoke. 
The  sense  of  some  presence  lingered  with  him,  and  he  sat  upright  in  bed.  His 
sleepy  eyes  were  caught  by  a  blue  skirt  whieh  vanished  from  the  doorway ; 
his  sleepy  mind  failed  to  perceive  that  the  door  had  not  been  open. 

"  Whew  !  "  he  said,  and  lay  thinking,  thinking  deeply — for  Lord  Bancourt. 

He  was  very  young,  and,  like  most  young  nobles,  not  inclined  to  under- 
estimate his  own  importance.  After  the  first  moment  of  surprise,  he  felt  no 
doubt  as  to  the  wearer  of  the  blue  skirt.  It  was  Elfrida.  He  was  rather 
unobservant  as  to  women's  dresses  "  and  all  that,  you  know  "  :  but  he  felt 


156 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


fairly  certain  that  she  had  worn  a  blue  costume  at  dinner.  Yes,  it  could  be 
no  one  else.    It  was  almost  certainly  Elfrida. 

Elfrida's  iciness  was  but  a  cloak.  When  she  had  snubbed  him  by  day, 
she  would  creep  in  by  night  and  gaze  upon  his  sleeping,  moonlit  face  !  How 
beautiful  ! 

His  heart  thrilled  at  the  revelation.  He  had  hesitated,  so  far,  to  speak.  It 
would  never  do  for  him — Lord  Bancourt — to  risk  refusal  by  a  nobody.  His 
mother,  in  her  long  course  of  tuition,  had  taught  him  proper  pride.  But  now  .  .  . 

Now,  at  the  first  chance,  he  would  throw  himself,  his  rank,  his  wealth,  his 
everything  before  the  nobody,  and  feel  no  fear  as  to  the  verdict.  To-morrow — 
to-morrow  ! 

And  when  to-morrow  came,  as  it  does  sometimes  come  despite  the  proverb, 
he  rose  early  and  went  out  in  the  garden.  As  he  had  shaved  each  morning, 
he  had  seen  Elfrida  walking  in  the  grounds  below.  He  had  never  dared  to 
join  her.  Everything,  to-day,  was  different,  though  the  weather  was  certainly 
absurdly  cold  for  early  rising. 

She  was  there  before  him,  in  among  the  white,  hoar-laden,  yew  walks.  She 
turned  at  his  coming.    "  You  are  early  this  morning,  Lord  Bancourt." 

"  Ah,"  he  responded  meaningly,  "  the  early  bird  catches  the  first  worm." 
It  struck  him,  for  the  moment,  as  a  compliment,  and  rather  neat.  But  he 
pined  for  something  less  indefinite.  "  Elfrida,"  he  said,  going  close  to  her, 
"  I  may  call  you  Elfrida  ? — I  could  not  wait.  You  encouraged  me  last  night, 
you  gave  me  hope,  and  now — I  want  more.  You  won't  take  even  that  away  ? 
I  want  far  more.  I  want  you — I  want  you  to  be  my  wife.  Will  you,  Elfrida  ? 
Don't  be  cruel.    I  want  you  to  say  '  yes  '  !  " 

Elfrida's  head  was  in  a  whirl.  She  did  not  know  how  she  had  encouraged 
him.  She  could  remember  nothing  of  last  night,  except  that  she  had  lost  a 
chance — that  he  had  seemed  offended.  She  could  not  guess  at  what  had 
changed  his  attitude.  She  only  knew  that  what  her  aunt  wanted — above  all, 
what  she  herself  longed  for — had  somehow  come  to  pass  ;  only  knew  that 
her  loved  one's  arms  were  round  her.    She  said  Yes." 

"  Sweet  dame,"  said  the  Gaunt  Baron,  later,  in  the  Panelled  Room,  '*  I 
have  been  scouting,  and,  alas  !  bring  evil  news.  Lord  Bancourt  took  you 
last  night  for  Elfrida,  was  encouraged  to  propose,  and  is  accepted.  Lady 
Silthirsk  is  delighted,  says  the  wedding  shall  be  here,  and  she  must  turn  this 
dear  chamber  into  a  dressing-room.  She  says  she  will  clear  out  the  musty 
panelling.    It  is  all  unfortunate." 

"  Unfortunate  !  "  wailed  the  Blue  Lady.  "  It  all  comes  of  listening  to 
a  man.  See  what  your  mad  scheme  has  done  !  .  .  .  Baron,  forgive  my  bitter- 
ness,— I  am  defeated.  I  told  you  these  mortals  had  vanquished  us.  I  set 
out  to  do  a  little  evil,  in  the  good  old  way,  and  see  what  I  have  done  !  I  have 
made  everybody  happy  !  Farewell.  Yewcroft  must  know  me  no  more. 
Farewell,  farewell  for  ever  !  " 

With  an  abysmal  groan  she  vanished  through  the  panelling.  Unless  she  has 
found  an  ancient,  empty  house,  she  is  perhaps  sleeping  underneath  the  hedges. 


The  Miracle 


A  Tale  of  the  Canadian  Prairie 

By  Ralph  Stock 

Artists'  Rifles 

The  old  man  slowly  shook  his  head  and  looked  out  through  the  ranch-house  win- 
dow to  where  the  sea  of  yellow  grass  merged  into  the  purple  haze  of  the  horizon. 

"  I'm  sorry,  Dode,"  he  said  in  his  gruff  drawl,  "  blamed  sorry." 

The  young  man  stood  before  him  choking  back  words  he  longed  to  utter 
and  twisting  his  hat  out  of  recognition  in  the  effort.  Words  !  Of  what  use 
had  they  ever  been  with  Joe  Gilchrist  ?  All  his  life  he  had  used  as  few  as 
possible  himself  and  shown  little  patience  with  those  who  did  otherwise — why 
should  it  be  different  now  ? 

"  Blamed  sorry,"  the  colourless  voice  repeated.  "  I  had  no  notion  things 
were  going  this  way  or  I'd  have  put  'em  straight  right  away.  It'll  hurt  all  the 
more  now,  I  guess,  but  I  can't  help  it,  Dode — you're  not  the  man,  that's  all." 

"  Why  ?  "  The  other's  voice  carried  resentment.  "  What's  the  matter 
with  me,  anyway  ?  " 

The  grizzled  head  turned  slowly,  the  keen,  deep-set  eyes,  surrounded  by  a 
tracery  of  minute  wrinkles  from  looking  into,  long  distances,  rested  on  the 
young  man's  troubled  face  in  a  level,  emotionless  scrutiny. 

"  Nothing,"  said  Joe  Gilchrist.  "  As  a  man — nothing,  or  you  wouldn't 
have  been  my  foreman  the  last  ten  years  ;  but  as  a  husband  for  Joyce — — ^" 
He  smiled  faintly  and  shook  his  head. 

At  that  moment  Dode  Sinclair  could  have  killed  this  man  whose  life  he 
had  saved  m^ore  than  once.  He  knew  the  iron  resolve  behind  that  smile  and 
shake  of  the  head. 

"  I'm  the  man  she  chose,"  he  jerked  out. 

"  At  seventeen,"  was  the  quiet  rejoinder. 
She's  a  w^omxan." 

Joe  Gilchrist  tilted  his  head  to  one  side  and  scratched  his  cheek.  It  was 
a  habit  of  his  when  anything  puzzled  him. 

"  She  chose  you,  did  she  ?    Who's  she  had  to  choose  from  ?  " 

Dode  Sinclair  opened  his  mouth  to  speak,  closed  it  again,  and  fell  to  twist- 
ing his  hat  with  renewed  vigour. 

"  Well,"  he  began  awkwardly, there  was  Dave  Willet  and  that  dude  school- 
master on  Battle  Creek  and  " 

"  And  you  w^ant  to  tell  me  Dave  Willet  and  a  dude  schoolmaster  on  Battle 
Creek's  a  fair  show  for  a  girl  ?  "  The  old  man  paused.  '*  You  can't,  Dode— 
not  me." 


167 


158 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Dode  looked  down  at  a  pair  of  workrworn  riding-boots,  then  up  into  the 
other's  face. 

"  What's  the  matter  with  Dave  Willet  ?  "  he  demanded  hotly,  "  or  a  dozen 
others  who'd  give  their  ears  for  her  ?  I  know  we're  not  fit  to  lick  her  boots  ; 
what  man  would  be  ?    but  we're  as  good  as  most  round  these  parts." 

"  Ah,  these  parts,"  muttered  the  old  man,  "  these  parts.  But  they  ain't  the 
world,  Dode.  You've  got  to  get  that  into  your  head,  though  maybe  it'll  be  a  job." 
They're  good  enough  for  me." 

"  And  me,  and  the  rest  of  us  ;  but  they're  not  good  enough  for  my  daughter." 

"  She  doesn't  say  that." 

"  No,  because  she's  never  seen  anything  else  "  Joe  Gilchrist  broke  off  with 

a  gesture  of  uneasiness.    "  Shut  that  door  ;  I  want  to  ask  you  something." 

The  young  man  obeyed  mechanically,  and  when  he  turned,  the  other  was 
leaning  forward  in  the  pine  pole-rocker,  whittling  flakes  from  a  plug  of  tobacco. 

"  I  want  to  ask  you  what  you  think  I've  been  doing  the  last  fifteen  years," 
he  drawled.  "  You  ought  to  know,  but  if  you  don't,  I'll  put  you  wise.  I've 
been  tryin'  to  make  money  out  of  breeding  horses.  It  ain't  daisy-pickin',  but 
after  hopin'  a  bit,  despairin'  a  bit,  and  workin'  a  bit,  I've  made  it — there  it  is  on 
four  legs  in  a  pretty  middlin'  bunch  of  horses,  and  what's  it  for  ?  Me  ?  You  know 
my  wants,  Dode  Sinclair.    No,  it's  for  Joyce.    Joyce's  got  to  have  her  chance.^* 

He  stopped  abruptly,  with  an  indrawing  of  his  thin  lips  that  the  other 
knew  well,  and  commenced  to  rub  the  tobacco  between  his  horny  palms. 

Dode  Sinclair  still  stared  at  his  boots. 

"  You're  going  to  take  her  East,"  he  muttered.  "  You're  going  back  on 
the  prairie." 

Joe  Gilchrist  rose  slowly  from  his  chair  and  pointed  through  the  window 
with  the  stem  of  his  pipe. 

"  You  see  Tin  Kettle  buttie,"  he  said  evenly,  "  there  to  the  east  of  Hunger- 
ford  Lake  :  when  they  read  my  will  they'll  find  they've  got  to  pack  me  up 
there  someway — in  the  democrat,  I  guess — but  that's  where  I'm  goin'  to  be, 
and  I'm  tellin'  you  now  so's  you'll  remember  when  you  feel  like  sayin'  I've 
gone  back  on  the  prairie.    But — Joyce's  got  to  have  her  chance." 

He  stood  looking  out  of  the  window  for  a  space,  then  turned  with  the  air 
of  one  disposing  of  an  unpleasant  topic. 

"  You  can  round  up.  The  boy' 11  be  here  any  day  after  a  week.  I'm  sellin' 
half  the  bunch.    You're  to  run  the  place  when — ^we  go." 

Dode  Sinclair  turned  on  his  heel.  At  the  door  he  hesitated,  then  looked 
back  at  the  thin  bent  figure  by  the  window. 

"  Maybe  the  prairie  won't  let  you,"  he  said. 

When  he  had  gone  Joe  Gilchrist  stood  motionless,  staring  at  the  door. 
"  What  the  dickens  does  he  mean  by  that  ?  "  he  growled,  and  frowned  as 
he  lit  his  pipe. 

Joyce  Gilchrist  was  perched  on  the  corral-poles  when  Dode  came  out  to  her. 
He  won't  listen  to  me,"  he  said,  tracing  dejected  patterns  in  the  dust 
with  his  spur.    "  Says  you've  got  to  have  your  chance." 

"  Chance  ? — what  chance  ?  "    Joyce  looked  down  at  him  wonderingly. 


THE  MIRACLE 


159 


"  Chance  of  getting  a  better  man  than  me." 

The  girl  was  at  his  side  in  a  flash,  looking  into  his  face  with  anxious  inter- 
rogation. 

"  Dode,  Dode,  what  do  you  mean  ? — what  does  he  mean  ?  " 

"  He  means  he's  going  to  take  you  away,  Joyce — East,  where  the  guys 
come  from.  He's  been  working  for  that  the  last  fifteen  years — and,  God  help 
me  ! — so  have  I,  without  knowin'  it.  The  horses  is  a  pretty  considerable  bunch 
now,  and  " 

"  But  I  won't  go,"  flashed  the  girl ;  "I  won't  go,  Dode."  Her  hand  was 
on  his  arm.    "  I'll  talk  him  over." 

"  You'll  never  do  that,"  said  Dode.    "  Never.    I  know  Joe  better'n  you, 
though  he  is  your  dad.    He's  got  that  queer  set  look ; — ^besides,  he's  right." 
Right  ?  " 

"  Yes,  he  always  is.    You've  made  good— you  ought  to  go  East  and  live 
swell.    This  is  no  country  for  a  woman." 
"  You  say  that  ?  " 
"  He  says  it,  and  he's  always  right." 
'*  But  you  don't  say  it — you  don't  say  it,  Dode  I  " 

Her  hands  were  on  his  shoulders  now,  he  could  feel  her  warm  breath  on  his  face. 

"  My  God  !  "  he  burst  out,  "  you  know  I  love  every  inch  and  atom  of 
you."  His  hands  were  trembling  at  his  sides.  "  You  know  that  I'd  do 
anything — anything — but  we  can't  go  against  him.  Someway  I  couldn't  do 
it — I'd  feel  I'd  stolen  you — ^that  I  wasn't  giving  you  what  was  your  due. 
He's  right ;  he's  always  right." 

The  girl  stamped  a  small  work-worn  riding-boot  in  the  dust.  "  I  wish 
— I  wish  all  the  horses  were  dead  !  I  wish  we  had  to  start  all  over  again. 
I  won't  go,  so  there  !    I'll  talk  to  him  ;  he'll  say  yes  ;  you  see  " 

She  left  him  and  hurried  towards  the  house,  a  slim  figure  of  health  and 
lightness  in  a  short,  dun-coloured  riding-skirt  and  dilapidated  soft  felt  hat. 

Dode  Sinclair  watched  her  go. 

"  Nothing  short  of  a  miracle  will  make  him  say  that,"  he  mused. 
And  he  was  right. 

For  the  next  week  the  grass  flats  below  the  Gilchrist  ranch  echoed  with 
the  thunder  of  galloping  hoofs  and  the  shrill  whinnying  of  mare  and  foal. 
From  every  point  of  the  compass  horses  flowed  into  the  valley,  with  distended 
nostrils  and  untrimmed  manes  and  tails  streaming  in  the  wind.  Some  had 
never  yet  seen  a  house,  and  at  sight  of  the  low  line  of  pine-log  stables  and 
corrals  turned  tail  and  fled  in  terror,  until  overtaken  and  headed  back  by  tire- 
less riders  on  steaming  mounts. 

On  the  final  day  Joyce  Gilchrist  helped  her  father  to  mount  the  old  piebald 
cayune  that  he  loved,  and  rode  down  with  him  to  inspect  the  herd.  Dode  Sinclair 
saw  them  coming  and  turned  swiftly  on  his  companion,  a  lean  wire  of  a  man 
in  the  unpretentious,  workmanlike  uniform  of  the  North- West  Mounted  Police. 

"  Here  they  come,"  he  said  in  a  voice  harsh  with  apprehension.  "  If  you 
don't  want  to  see  an  old  man  drop  dead — an  old  man  that's  done  more  for  you 
fellers  than  any  one  on  the  range — take  your  men  and  horses  into  that  stable." 


160 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


The  policeman  followed  his  glance  and  saw  two  black  dots  moving  slowly 
down  the  trail. 

"  He's  got  to  know,"  he  said  sternly. 

*'  Yes,  he's  got  to  know — ain't  that  enough  ?  Curse  it,  man,  can't  you  see 
there's  ways  of  doin'  these  things  ?    Sudden  like  that — it'd  break  him  up." 

"  Joe  Gilchrist  knows  how  to  take  his  medicine." 
No  man  better ;  but  I  know  him,  I  tell  you — the  horses  are  his  life.  There's 
time  enough  for  him  to  know." 

"  Three  days,"  replied  the  policeman  shortly.  "  The  regulations  allow 
three  days  for  glanders.    He's  bound  to  know  then — why  not  now  ?  " 

Dode  Sinclair  laid  his  hands  on  the  other's  shoulders  and  looked  into  his 
stern-set  face. 

"  Because  I'm  asking  you,  Jim,"  he  said.  "  Maybe  your  memory's  short ; 
maybe  you  forget  the  early  days  now  you're  a  corporal.  Try  back  a  bit — 
try  back  to  the  spring  of  1900,  w^hen  the  chinook  came  and  thawed  out  the 
Warlodge  mushy  a  bit  previous,  and  you  thought  it'd  bear  and  it  didn't ;  and 
the  elegant  fix  I  found  you  in  " 

"  You  don't  need  to  tell  me,  Dode,"  said  the  other,  looking  away  up  the 

trail.      But  you  know  what  Fenton's  like,  and  "    Suddenly  he  threw 

back  his  head.    "  Well  ! — open  the  door,  then  !  " 

Joe  Gilchrist  rode  slowly  through  the  herd.  Some  of  the  brood  mares 
he  knew  by  name — had  known  them  for  fifteen  years. 

See  that  pot-bellied  grey  with  the  roan  foal  ?  "  he  said  to  Dode.  "  Got 
her  for  fifteen  dollars  off  the  Indians  at  Red  Deer.  We've  had  her  fifteen 
years,  and  she's  had  twelve  foals.  Seems  to  me  she's  about  done  now,  though. 
Got  that  peaked  look." 

"  Hasn't  lost  her  winter  coat  yet,"  Dode  answered  shortly,  and  moved 
on  towards  the  edge  of  the  herd.    "  Ragged,  that's  all." 

Pretty  middlin'  bunch,"  mused  the  old  man.  He  had  never  been  known 
to  say  more  about  his  horses.    "  Pretty  middlin'." 

Sure,"  said  Dode,  and  watched  the  pinto  ambling  up  the  trail.  Then 
he  dismounted  and  opened  the  stable  door. 

I'm  leaving  two  men,"  said  the  policeman.  "  You  can  corral  them  to- 
night, and  the  vet'll  be  along  to-morrow." 

Dode  leant  against  the  stable  and  watched  him  mount. 
How  many  d'you  think  "  he  began. 

"  The  vet'll  be  along  to-morrow,"  the  other  repeated  shortly,  and  set  spurs 
to  his  horse. 

The  next  day  and  the  next  the  grass-fiat  corrals  creaked  and  strained  and 
rattled  while  an  endless  procession  of  horses  fought  and  worked  its  way  along 
the  narrow  chutes,  halted  a  brief  moment  while  one  of  its  number  was  subjected 
to  the  "  squeeze  "  and  a  minute  examination  by  a  sweating  police  vet.  and 
passed  on,  some  to  another  corral  and  some — pitiably  few — to  the  open  prairie 
and  freedom. 

Dode  Sinclair  watched  the  work  like  a  man  in  a  trance. 

When  it  was  done  the  corral  gate  was  flung  open  and  the  horses  it  had  held 


was  eight  o'clock  before  Joe  Gilchrist  returned"  (page  161). 


THE  MIRACLE 


161 


were  headed  up  the  valley  and  still  up  to  where  it  ended  in  a  deep  gully  of 
gumbo  and  yellow  gravel.    On  three  sides  the  animals  were  hemmed  in  by 
almost  sheer  cliff  a  hundred  feet  high  ;  on  the  fourth  by  ten  N.W,  Mounted 
Policemen  with  levelled  rifles  and  set  faces. 
There  is  only  one  cure  for  glanders. 

"  Queer  that  buyer  don't  come,"  said  Joe  Gilchrist. 

Three  days  before  Dode  Sinclair  had  ridden  out  to  meet  a  florid  little  man 
in  a  livery  buggy  on  the  town  trail,  and  after  five  minutes'  conversation  the 
latter  had  turned  his  horses  and  driven  off  in  a  cloud  of  dust. 

"  Blamed  queer.    They'll  be  losing  flesh  if  they're  herded  much  longer." 

Towards  evening  the  old  man  became  restless — both  Joyce  and  Dode 
noticed  it,  but  neither  was  quite  prepared  when  returning  from  the  west  field 
to  find  the  homestead  empty,  except  for  the  Chinese  cook,  and  the  pinto  cayune 
gone  from  the  stables. 

"  He's  gone  to  have  a  look  at  the  herd,"  Dode  said. 

"  But  alone,  and  on  pinto  !  "  exclaimed  the  girl.  "  You  know  how  she 
stumbles.    I  must  go  and  find  him." 

"  She  stumbles,  but  she  don't  fall,"  said  Dode.  "Let  him  be — this  once. 
Alone — that's  the  best  way  for  him  to  find  out." 

He  told  her  all,  while  Joyce  sat  like  one  turned  to  stone.  When  he  had 
done,  she  looked  up  into  his  face. 

"  Then — then  we  have  got  to  start  all  over  again,"  she  whispered. 

"  Pretty  near." 

Dode  looked  out  through  the  window.  The  setting  sun  was  dyeing  the 
sea  of  yellow  grass  a  rich  auburn,  and  Joyce  was  at  his  side,  but  his  thoughts 
were  with  the  lone  rider  down  on  the  grass  flats.  He  would  find  the  corrals 
empty,  the  gates  open.  He  would  follow  the  tracks  up  the  coolie,  and  still 
up,  until  he  came  to  the  deep  gully  of  gumbo  and  yellow  gravel.  Dode  remem- 
bered that  the  "  ewe-necked  "  grey  with  the  roan  foal  lay  at  the  outside  of 
the  ghastly  circle,  her  mild  eyes  staring  glassily  down  the  valley.  Beyond 
that  his  thoughts  refused  to  travel. 

It  was  eight  o'clock  before  Joe  Gilchrist  returned.  He  stabled  the  pinto 
himself  and  came  into  the  sitting-room,  where  Joyce  and  Dode  sat  pretending 
to  read,  with  his  usual  slow,  heavy  step.  The  pine-pole  rocker  creaked,  and 
they  could  hear  him  whittling  at  his  plug  of  tobacco,  but  they  could  not  bring 
themselves  to  look  up. 

"  Bit  dull  to-night,  ain't  you  ?  "  he  queried  suddenly.  His  voice  was  so 
natural  that  for  a  fleeting  moment  Dode  thought  it  impossible  that  he  could 
know.  But  when  he  looked  up,  there  was  no  longer  any  doubt  in  his  mind. 
The  strong  old  face  was  drawn  and  haggard,  in  spite  of  the  smile  he  had  sum- 
moned to  his  lips.  His  keen  eyes  were  levelled  on  the  younger  man  in  a 
penetrating  but  not  unkindly  look. 

"  I  guess  you  were  right,  Dode,"  he  drawled.  "  The  prairie  knows  how 
to  cure  swelled  head." 

And  the  other  two  knew  that  the  miracle  had  come  to  pass, 

6 


The  Fight  for  the  Garden 

By  Sir  Arthur  T.  Quiller-Couch 

Duke  of  CornwaUs  Light  Infantry 
I 

"It  is  strange,  though,"  said  the  gardener's  wife  in  Flemish,  standing  in 
the  doorway  of  the  chapel  and  studying,  while  she  shook  her  duster,  the  tall 
pigeon-house  in  the  centre  of  the  courtyard.  "  The  birds  have  not  come  back 
yet.    Not  a  sign  of  them." 

"  They  never  like  it  when  their  house  is  cleaned  out,"  responded  Philom^ne, 
the  middle-aged  maid-of-all-work,  just  within  the  doorway.  She,  too,  had  a 
duster  and,  perched  on  a  step-ladder  insecurely — she  weighed,  by  our  English 
reckoning,  a  good  fifteen  stone — was  flapping  the  dust  from  a  tall  crucifix 
nailed  above  the  lintel.  "  The  good  man  told  me  he  had  collected  close  on 
two  pecks." 

"  He  is  down  in  the  garden  digging  it  in  around  the  roses.  He  says  that 
it  will  certainly  rain  to-night." 

"  It  has  been  raining  to  the  southward  all  the  afternoon,"  said  Philom^ne, 
heavily  descending  her  step-ladder  and  shielding  her  eyes  to  stare  up  at  the 
western  window,  through  the  clear  quarrels  of  which  the  declining  sun  sent  a 
ray  from  under  heavy  clouds.    "  That  will  be  by  reason  of  the  guns." 

"  Thunder,"  suggested  the  gardener's  wife. 

"  The  guns  bring  the  thunder  ;  it  is  well  known."  In  her  girlhood  Philo- 
mene  had  been  affianced  to  a  young  artilleryman  ;  she  had  lost  him  at  Landrecy 
twenty-one  years  ago,  and  had  never  since  owned  another  lover  or  wished 
for  one. 

"  Ah,  well — provided  they  leave  us  alone,  this  time  !  "  sighed  the  gardener's 
wife.  She  gazed  across  to  the  stable-buildings  where,  by  a  flight  of  cup  steps 
leading  to  the  hay-loft,  her  two  children,  Jean  and  Pauline,  were  busy  at  play 
with  Antoine,  son  of  a  small  farmer,  whose  homestead,  scarcely  a  mile  away, 
aligned  the  high-road  running  south  from  the  capital. 

The  school  in  the  neighbouring  village  had  been  closed  for  two  days  ;  and 
to-morrow,  being  Sunday,  would  make  a  third  holiday  anyhow.  Yesterday 
Jean  and  Pauline  had  been  Antoine's  guests  at  a  picnic  breakfast  in  the  sand- 
pit opposite  his  father's  farm  (there  were  domestic  reasons  why  they  could  not 
be  entertained  in  the  house),  and  had  spent  four  blissful  hours  watching  the 

162 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


163 


army — their  army,  horse,  foot,  and  artillery,  all  within  toss  of  a  biscuit — march 
past  and  southward  along  the  chaussee.  To-day  it  was  their  turn  to  be  hosts  ; 
and  all  the  long  afternoon,  with  intervals  for  light  refreshment,  the  three 
children  had  been  conducting  a  series  of  military  operations  from  the  orchard - 
hedge  through  the  orchard,  across  a  sunken  ditch,  through  the  terraced  garden 
(with  circumspection  here,  for  the  gardener  was  swift  to  detect  and  stern 
to  avenge  paternally  any  footmark  on  his  beds),  through  the  small  fruit-garden 
(where  it  was  forbidden  to  eat  the  under-ripe  currants),  the  barnyard,  among 
the  haystacks,  the  outbuildings,  to  the  courtyard  and  a  grand  finale  on  the 
stable  steps.  Here  Napoleon  (Antoine,  in  a  cocked  hat  of  glazed  paper)  was 
making  a  last  desperate  stand  on  the  stair-head,  with  his  back  to  the  door 
of  the  loft  and  using  the  broken  half  of  a  flail  en  moulinet  to  ward  off  a  com- 
bined "  kill  "  by  the  Prince  of  Orange  (Jean)  and  the  British  Army  (Pauline). 
Jean  wielded  a  hoe  and  carried  a  wooden  sword  in  an  orange-coloured  scarf 
strapped  as  waistband  around  his  blouse.  But  Pauline  made  the  most  pictur- 
esque figure  by  far.  She  had  kilted  her  petticoat  high,  and  gartered  her 
stocking  low,  exposing  her  knees.  On  her  head  through  the  heat  of  action 
she  carried  an  old  muff  strapped  under  her  chin  with  twine.  Her  right  hand 
menaced  the  Corsican  with  a  broomstick  ;  her  left  arm  she  held  crooked,  work-, 
ing  the  elbow  against  her  hip  while  her  mouth  uttered  discordant  sounds  as 
a  bagpipe. 

"  Pauline — Pauline  !  "  called  her  mother.  "  Mais,  tais-toi  done — c'est 
a  tue-tete  !    Et  d'ailleurs  nu-genoux  1    C'n'est  pas  sage,  9a  .  .  .  " 

"  C'est  le  pibrock,  maman,"  called  back  the  child,  desisting  for  a  moment. 
"  J'suis  Ecossaise,  voila  !  " 

She  had  seen  the  Highland  regiments  yesterday,  and  the  sight  had  given 
her  a  new  self-respect,  a  new  interest  in  warfare  ;  since  (as  she  maintained 
against  Antoine  and  Jean)  these  kilted  warriors  must  be  women  ;  giantesses 
out  of  the  North,  but  none  the  less  women.  "  Why,  it  stands  to  reason.  Look 
at  their  clothes  !  " 

The  gardener's  wife  left  discipline  to  her  husband.  She  took  a  step  or 
two  out  into  the  yard,  for  a  glance  at  the  sun  slanting  between  the  poplar 
top  of  the  avenue.  "  It's  time  Antoine's  father  fetched  him,"  she  announced, 
returning  to  the  chapel.  "  And  what  has  happened  to  the  birds  I  cannot  think. 
One  would  say  they  had  forgotten  their  roosting  house." 

"The  birds  will  return  when  the  corn  is  spread,"  answered  Philomene 
comfortably.  "  As  for  little  Antoine,  if  he  be  not  fetched,  he  shall  have  supper, 
and  I  myself  will  see  him  home  across  the  fields.  The  child  has  courage  enough 
to  go  alone,  if  we  pack  him  off  now,  before  nightfall ;  but  I  doubt  the  evil 
characters  about.    There  are  always  many  such  in  the  track  of  an  army." 

"  If  that  be  so,"  the  gardener's  wife  objected,  "  it  will  not  be  pleasant  for 
you,  when  you  have  left  him,  to  be  returning  alone  in  the  dark.  Why  not 
take  him  back  now  before  supper  ?  " 

Philomene  shrugged  her  broad  shoulders.  "  Never  fear  for  me,  wife  ; 
I  understand  soldiery.  And  moreover,  am  I  to  leave  the  chapel  unredded  on 
a  Saturday  evening,  of  all  times  ?  " 


164 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  But  since  no  one  visits  it  ^" 

"  The  good  God  visits  it,  service  or  no  service.  What  did  Father  Cosmas 
preach  to  us  two  Sundays  ago  ?  '  Work,'  said  he,  '  for  you  cannot  tell  at 
what  hour  the  Bridegroom  cometh  ' — nor  the  baby,  either,  he  might  have 
said.  Most  likely  the  good  man,  Antoine's  father,  has  work  on  his  hands, 
and  doctors  so  scarce  with  all  this  military  overrunning  us.  I  dreamt  last 
night  it  would  be  twins.  There  now  !  I've  said  it,  and  a  Friday  night's 
dream  told  on  a  Saturday  " 

"  Wh'st,  woman  !  "  interrupted  the  gardener's  wife,  in  a  listening  attitude  ; 
for  the  shouts  of  the  children  had  ceased  of  a  sudden. 

II 

Napoleon,  at  bay  with  his  back  to  the  hay-loft  door,  ceased  to  brandish  his 
weapon,  dropped  his  sword-arm  and  flung  out  the  other,  pointing  : 

"  Look  !  "  he  cried.    "  Behind  you  !  " 
Oh,  we  know  that  trick  !  "  answered  the  escalading  party,  and  closed 
upon  him  for  the  coup  de  grace.    But  he  ducked  under  Jean's  clutch,  still 
pointing,  and  cried  again,  this  time  so  earnestly  that  they  paused  indeed  and 
turned  for  a  look. 

About  half-way  between  the  foot  of  the  steps  and  the  arched  entrance, 
with  one  of  its  double  doors  open  behind  him,  stood  a  spare  shortish  gentle- 
man, in  blue  frock-coat,  white  breeches,  and  Hessian  boots.  On  his  head 
was  a  small  cocked  hat,  the  peak  of  it  only  a  little  shorter  than  the  nose  which 
it  overshadowed  ;  and  to  this  nose  the  spare  shortish  gentleman  was  carrying 
a  pinch  of  snuff  as  he  halted  and  regarded  the  children  with  what,  had  his 
mouth  been  less  grim,  might  have  passed  for  a  smile  of  amusement. 

"  Mademoiselle  and  messieurs  both,"  said  he  in  very  bad  French,  "  I  am 
sorry  to  interrupt,  but  I  wish  to  see  the  proprietaire." 

"  The  pro  but  that  will  be  monseigneur,"  answered  Pauline,  who  was 

the  readiest  (and  the  visitor's  eyes  were  upon  her,  as  if  he  had  instantly  guessed 
this).  But  you  cannot  see  him,  sir,  for  he  lives  at  Nivelles,  and,  moreover, 
is  ever  so  old."  She  spread  her  hands  apart  as  one  elongates  a  concertina. 
"  Between  eighty  and  ninety,  mamma  says.  He  is  too  old  to  travel  nowadays, 
even  from  Nivelles,  and  my  brother  Jean  here  is  the  only  one  of  us  who  remem- 
bers to  have  seen  him.." 

"  I  remember  him,"  put  in  Jean,  "  because  he  wore  blue  spectacles  and 
carried  a  white  umbrella.  He  was  not  half  so  tall  as  anyone  would  think. 
Oh,  what  a  beautiful  horse  !  "  he  exclaimed,  catching  through  the  gateway 
a  glimpse  of  a  bright  chestnut  charger  which  an  orderly  was  walking  to  and 
fro  in  the  avenue.  "  Does  he  really  belong  to  you,  sir  ?  "  Jean  asked  this 
because  the  visitor's  dress  did  not  bespeak  affluence.  A  button  was  missing 
from  his  frock-coat,  his  boots  were  mired  to  their  tops,  and  a  black  smear 
on  one  side  of  his  long  nose  made  his  appearance  rather  disreputable  than 
not.    It  was,  in  fact,  a  smear  of  gunpowder. 

"  He  really  does,"  said  the  visitor,  and  turned  again  to  Pauline,  his  blue 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


165 


eyes  twinkling  a  little,  his  mouth  grim  as  before.  "  Who,  then,  is  in  charge 
of  this  place  ?  " 

"  My  father,  sir.  He  has  been  the  gardener  here  since  long  before  we 
were  born,  and  mamma  is  his  wife.  He  is  in  the  garden  at  this  moment  if 
you  wish  to  see  him." 

"  I  do,"  said  the  visitor,  after  a  sharp  glance  around  the  courtyard,  and 
another  at  its  high  protecting  wall.    "  Take  me  to  him,  please  !  " 

Pauline  led  him  by  a  little  gateway  past  the  angle  of  the  chateau  and  out 
upon  the  upper  terrace  of  the  garden — planted  in  the  formal  style — which 
ran  along  the  main  (south)  front  of  the  building  and  sloped  to  a  stout  brick 
wall  some  nine  feet  in  height.  Beyond  the  wall  a  grove  of  beech  trees  stretched 
southward  upon  the  plain  into  open  country. 

"  Excellent  !  "  said  the  visitor.  "  First  rate  !  "  Yet  he  seemed  to  take 
small  note  of  the  orange  trees,  now  in  full  bloom,  or  of  the  box-edged  borders 
filled  with  periwinkle  and  blue  forget-me-not,  or  with  mignonette  smelling 
very  sweetly  in  the  cool  of  the  day  ;  nor  as  yet  had  he  cast  mxore  than  a  cursory 
glance  along  the  whitewashed  facade  of  the  chateau  or  up  at  its  high  red- 
tiled  roof  with  the  pointed  Flemish  turrets  that  strangers  invariably  admu'ed. 
He  appeared  quite  incurious,  too,  when  she  halted  a  moment  tc  give  him  a 
chance  of  wondering  at  the  famous  sun-dial — a  circular  flower-bed  with  a 
tall  wooden  gnomon  in  the  centre  and  the  hours  cut  in  box  around  the  edge. 

"  But  where  is  your  father  ?  "  he  asked  impatiently,  drawing  out  a  fine 
gold  watch  from  his  fob. 

"  He  is  not  in  the  rose-garden,  it  seem_s,"  said  Pauline,  gazing  along  the 
terrace  eastward.  "  Then  he  will  be  in  the  orchard  beyond."  She  turned  to 
bid  Jean  run  and  fetch  him  ;  but  the  two  boys  had  thought  it  better  fun  to 
run  back  for  a  look  at  the  handsome  chestnut  charger. 

So  she  hurried  on  as  guide.  From  the  terrace  they  descended  by  some 
stone  steps  to  a  covered  walk,  at  the  end  of  which,  close  by  the  southern  wall, 
stood  another  wonder — a  tall  picture,  very  vilely  painted  and  in  vile  perspec- 
tive, but  meant  to  trick  the  eye  by  representing  the  walk  as  continued,  with 
a  summer-house  at  the  end.  The  children  held  this  for  one  of  the  cleverest 
things  in  the  Avorld.    The  visitor  said  "  p'sh  !  "  and  in  the  rudest  manner. 

Stepping  from  this  covered  way  they  followed  a  path  which  ran  at  right  angles 
to  it,  close  under  the  south  wall,  which  was  of  brick  on  a  low  foundation  of  stone 
and  stout  brick  buttresses.    In  these  the  visitor's  interest  seemed  to  revive. 

"  Couldn't  be  better,"  he  said,  nodding  griml3\ 

Pauline  knew  that  her  father  must  be  in  the  orchard,  for  the  small  door 
at  the  end  of  the  path  stood  open  ;  and  just  beyond  it,  and  beyond  a  sunken 
ditch,  sure  enough  they  found  him,  with  a  pail  of  wash  and  a  brush,  anointing 
some  trees  on  which  the  caterpillars  had  fastened.  As  the  visitor  strode  for- 
ward Pauline  came  to  a  halt,  having  been  taught  that  to  listen  to  the  talk  of 
grown-up  people  was  unbecoming. 

But  some  words  she  could  not  help  overhearing.  "  Good  evening,  my 
friend,"  said  the  visitor,  stepping  forward.  "  This  is  a  fine  orchard  you  have 
here.    At  what  size  do  you  put  it  ?  " 


166 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  He  is  going  to  buy  the  chateau,"  thought  Pauline  with  a  sinking  of  her 
small  heart ;  for  she  knew  that  monseigneur,  being  so  old,  had  more  than 
once  threatened  to  sell  it.  "  He  is  going  to  buy  the  chateau,  and  we  shall 
be  turned  out." 

"  We  reckon  it  at  three  arpents,  more  or  less.  Yes,  assuredly — a  noble 
orchard,  and  in  the  best  order,  though  I  say  it." 

After  a  word  or  two  which  she  could  not  catch,  they  walked  off  a  little 
way  under  the  trees.  Their  conversation  grew  more  earnest.  By  and  by 
Pauline  saw  her  father  step  back  a  pace  and  salute  with  great  reverence. 

("  Yes,  of  course,"  she  decided.  "  He  is  a  very  rich  man,  or  he  could 
not  be  buying  such  a  place.  But  it  will  break  mamma's  heart — and  mine. 
And  what  is  the  place  to  this  man,  who  appreciates  nothing — not  even  the 
sun-dial  ?  ") 

The  two  came  back  slowly,  her  father  walking  now  at  a  distance  respectfully 
wide  of  the  visitor.  They  passed  Pauline  as  if  unaware  of  her  presence.  The 
visitor  was  saying — — 

"  If  we  do  not  hold  this  point  to-night,  the  French  will  hold  it  to-morrow. 
You  understand  ?  " 

They  went  through  the  small  doorway  into  the  garden.  Pauline  followed. 
Again  the  visitor  seemed  to  regard  the  long  brick  wall — in  front  of  which 
grew  a  neglected  line  of  shrubs,  making  the  best  of  its  northern  aspect — as 
its  most  interesting  feature. 

"  Might  have  been  built  for  the  very  purpose  with  these  buttresses."  He 
stopped  towards  one  and  held  the  edge  of  his  palm  against  it,  almost  half-way 
down.  "  But  you  must  cut  it  down,  so."  He  spoke  as  if  the  brickwork  were 
a  shrub  to  be  lopped.    "  Have  you  a  nice  lot  of  planks  handy  ?  " 

"  A  few,  milord.    We  keep  some  for  scaffolding,  when  repairs  are  needed." 

"  Not  enough,  hey  ?  Then  we  must  rip  up  a  floor  or  two.  My  fellows 
will  see  to  it." 

The  gardener  rubbed  his  jaw  thoughtfully.  '*  To  be  sure  there  are  the 
benches  in  the  chapel,"  he  suggested. 

"  That's  a  notion.    Let's  have  a  look  at  'em." 

They  mounted  to  the  terrace  and  passed  back  into  the  courtyard,  Pauline 
still  following.  Antoine's  father  had  arrived  to  fetch  him  ;  had  arrived  too 
with  a  cart.  The  cart  held  a  quantity  of  household  furniture.  The  farmer 
held  the  reins,  and  the  gardener's  wife  and  Philomene  were  hoisting  the  child 
up  beside  him.  They  were  agitated,  as  anyone  could  see,  and  while  her  father 
led  the  visitor  into  the  chapel  Pauline  walked  over  to  Jean,  who  stood  watch- 
ing, to  ask  him  what  it  all  meant. 

"  He  says  the  war  is  coming  back  this  way  :  it  may  even  be  to-night." 

"  Yes,"  said  the  farmer,  addressing  the  women  and  unwittingly  corroborat- 
ing Jean's  report.  "  This  is  the  third  load.  With  the  first  I  took  along  my 
good  woman,  and  by  God's  mercy  found  a  lodging  for  her  at  the  Cure's.  A 
small  bedroom — that  is  all ;  but  it  will  be  handy  for  the  midwife." 

"  And  your  crops,  my  poor  friend  ?  " 

"  It  was  a  fine  swathe  of  rye,  to  be  sure,"  agreed  the  farmer,  sighing. 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


167 


*'  And  the  barley  full  of  promise — one  gets  compensation,  they  tell  me  ;  but 
that  will  be  small  comfort  if  while  the  grass  grows  the  cow  starves.  So  I 
brought  you  the  first  word,  did  I  ?  Vraiment  ?  And  yet  by  this  time  I  should 
not  wonder  if  the  troops  were  in  sight."    He  waved  a  hand  to  the  southward. 

Jean  plucked  Pauline  by  the  sleeve.  The  two  stole  away  together  to  the 
ladder  that  stood  against  the  pigeon-house. 

"  We  hear  no  news  of  the  world  at  all,"  said  the  gardener's  wife.  "  My 
man  at  this  season  is  so  wrapped  up  in  his  roses  " 

"  Kola,  neighbour  !  "  called  the  gardener  at  this  moment,  coming  forth 
from  the  chapel,  the  visitor  behind  him.  "  You  are  stealing  a  march  on  us, 
it  seems  ?  Now  as  a  friend  the  best  you  can  do  is  to  drive  ahead  and  bespeak 
some  room  at  the  village  for  my  wife  and  little  ones,  while  they  pack  and 
I  get  out  the  carts." 

"  Is  it  true,  then  ?  "    His  wife  turned  on  him  in  a  twitter. 

"  My  good  woman,"  interposed  the  visitor,  coming  forward— at  sight  of 
whom  the  farmer  gave  a  gasp  and  then  lifted  his  whip-head  in  a  flurried  (and 
quite  unheeded)  salute — "  it  is  true,  I  regret  to  say,  that  to-night  and  to- 
morrow this  house  will  be  no  place  for  you  or  for  your  children.  Your  husband 
may  return  if  he  chooses,  when  he  has  seen  you  safely  bestowed.  Indeed, 
he  will  be  useful  and  probably  in  no  danger  until  to-morrow." 

"  The  children — where  are  the  children  ?  "  quavered  the  gardener's  wife, 
and  began  calling,  "  Jean  I    Pauline  !  " 

Jean  and  Pauline  by  this  time  were  perched  high  on  the  ladder,  under 
the  platform  of  the  pigeon-cote.  From  this  perch  they  could  spy  over  the 
irregular  ridge  of  the  outbuildings  down  across  the  garden  to  the  grove,  and 
yet  beyond  the  grove,  between  the  beech-tops  to  the  southward  ridge  of  the 
plain  v/hich  on  most  days  presented  an  undulating  horizon  ;  but  now  all  was 
blurred  in  that  direction  by  heavy  rain-clouds,  and  no  sign  of  the  returning 
army  could  be  seen,  save  a  small  group  of  horsemen  coming  at  a  trot  along  the 
great  high-road  and  scarcely  half  a  mile  away.  Crosswise  from  their  right 
a  shaft  of  the  setting  sun  shot,  as  through  the  slit  of  a  closing  shutter,  between 
the  crest  of  another  wood  and  rain-clouds  scarcely  less  dark.  It  dazzled  their 
eyes.  It  lit  a  rainbow  in  the  eastern  sky,  where  also  the  clouds  had  started 
to  discharge  their  rain. 

The  chateau  seemed  to  be  a  vortex  around  which  the  thunderstorm  was 
closing  fast — on  three  sides  at  any  rate.  But  for  the  moment,  poured  through 
this  one  long  rift  in  the  west,  sunlight  bathed  the  buildings  ;  a  sunlight  uncanny 
and  red,  that  streamed  into  the  courtyard  across  the  low  ridge  of  the  out- 
buildings. The  visitor  had  stepped  back  to  the  eastern  angle  of  the  house, 
and  stood  there  as  if  measuring  with  his  eye  the  distance  between  him  and 
the  gate.  He  began  to  pace  it,  and  as  he  advanced,  to  Jean's  eye  his  shadow 
shortened  itself  down  the  wall  like  a  streak  of  red  blood  fading  from  the  top. 

"  There's  room  in  the  cart  here  for  the  little  ones,"  the  farmer  suggested. 

"But  no,"  answered  the  gardener;  "Jean  and  Pauline  will  be  needed  to 
drive  off  the  cattle.  I  shall  take  one  cart ;  you,  Philomene,  the  other ;  and  I 
will  have  both  ready  by  the  time  you  women  have  packed  what  is  necessary." 


168 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  A  bient6t,  then  !  "  The  farmer  started  his  mare,  the  gardener  follow- 
ing him  to  the  gateway.  The  gardener's  wife  turned  towards  the  house, 
sobbing.  "  But  I  shall  come  back,"  called  Philomene  stoutly.  "  Mon  Dieu, 
does  anyone  suppose  I  will  leave  our  best  rooms  to  be  tramped  through  by 
a  lot  of  nasty  foreign  soldiers  !  " 

No  one  listened  to  her.  After  a  moment  she,  too,  went  off  towards  the 
house.    Jean  and  Pauline  slid  down  the  ladder. 

The  farmer's  cart  had  rumbled  through  the  archway  and  out  into  the 
avenue.  The  visitor  had  beckoned  his  orderly,  and  was  preparing  to  mount. 
With  one  foot  in  stirrup  he  turned  to  the  gardener.  "  By  the  way,"  said  he, 
"  when  you  return  from  the  village  bring  lanterns — all  you  can  collect  "  ; 
then  to  the  orderly,  "  Give  me  my  cloak  !  "  for  already  the  rain  was  beginning 
to  fall  in  large  drops. 

A  squall  of  rain  burst  over  the  poplars  as  he  rode  away. 

Ill 

Jean  and  Pauline  awoke  next  morning  to  some  very  queer  sensations. 
They  had  slept  in  their  clothes  upon  beds  of  hay.  Their  bedroom,  in  fact,  was 
part  of  a  cottage  loft  partitioned  into  two  by  rough  boards  ;  on  this  side,  hay 
— on  the  other  a  hen-roost.  The  poultry  were  cackling  and  crowing  and  seemed 
to  be  in  a  flurry.  Jean  raised  himself  on  his  elbow  and  called  : 
Pauline  !  " 

"  Jean  !  I  was  just  going  to  wake  you.  I  have  scarcely  slept  all  night, 
while  you  have  been  snoring.    Listen  !    The  battle  has  begun." 

Sure  enough  a  deal  of  fusillading  was  going  on,  and  not  very  far  away  ; 
and  this  no  doubt  had  scared  the  fowls  on  the  other  side  of  the  partition.  The 
loft  had  but  a  narrow  slit,  unglazed,  close  under  the  eaves,  to  admit  air  and 
daylight.  Jean  crept  to  it,  over  the  trusses  of  hay,  and  peered  out  on  the 
world.  He  could  see  nothing  but  clouds  and  a  few  near  trees  wrapped  in  a 
foggy  drizzle.    Still  the  loose  fusillade  went  on. 

"  I  don't  think  it  can  be  the  battle,"  he  reported.  "  Philomene  says  that 
battles  always  begin  nowadays  with  the  big  guns,  and  this  moreover  sounds 
half-hearted." 

He  was  right,  too.  The  two  or  three  trees  visible  in  the  mist  were  the 
outposts  of  a  plantation  which  straggled  up  to  the  entrance  of  the  village. 
Beyond  this  plantation  lay  two  regiments  that,  like  the  rest  of  the  army,  had 
marched  and  bivouacked  in  mud  and  rain.  At  dawn  they  had  been  ordered 
to  clean  their  small  arms,  and  since  the  readiest  way  to  make  sure  of  a  musket 
is  to  fire  off  the  charge,  they  had  been  directed  to  do  so,  by  companies. 

In  an  interval  of  this  fusillade  the  children  caught  the  sound  of  someone 
moving  in  the  kitchen  below,  lighting  the  fire.  Jean  crept  from  his  window- 
slit  to  the  hatchway  of  the  loft  and  called  down  softly,  "  Maman  !  " 

The  good  woman  of  the  cottage  answered,  bidding  him  go  back  to  bed 
again.  His  mother  was  not  in  the  house,  but  had  been  called  during  the  night 
to  visit  a  cottage  some  way  up  the  road. 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


169 


"  That  will  be  Antoine's  mother,"  whispered  Pauline,  who  had  crept  over 
the  hay  to  Jean's  side.    "Is  it  a  boy  or  a  girl  ?  "  she  asked  aloud. 

^'  It  is  twins,"  said  the  good  woman.  "  Now  lie  down  and  be  sensible, 
you  two." 

"  But  where  is  papa  ?  " 

"  Down  at  the  chateau,  doubtless.  But  God  knows.  He  was  here  a  little 
before  midnight,  and  left  again  meaning  to  spend  the  night  there.  Now  I 
have  told  you  what  I  know." 

The  two  crept  back  to  their  lairs,  and  lay  very  obediently  until  the  good 
woman  called  up  that  coffee  was  ready.  They  hurried  down  the  ladder,  washed 
their  hands  and  faces  at  the  pump  outside,  and  returned  to  the  meal.  There 
was  coffee  and  a  very  savoury  pottage  in  which  they  dipped  great  slices  of 
bread.  The  woman  was  kind  to  them,  having  no  children  of  her  own.  Her 
husband  (she  said)  was  somewhere  in  the  plantation,  felling  trees  with  the 
troops.  He  had  gone  out  long  before  dawn  with  a  lantern,  because  he  knew 
the  best  trees  and  could  lead  the  pioneers  to  them  in  the  dark. 

Jean,  having  breakfasted  until  his  small  belly  was  tight  as  a  drum,  felt 
a  new  courage  in  his  veins,  and  a  great  curiosity.  He  proposed  to  Pauline  in 
a  whisper  that  they  should  run  down  together  to  the  chateau  and  see  how 
papa  was  getting  on,  and  Philomene. 

"  She  will  scold,  though,"  objected  Pauline. 

"  Oh  !  "  said  Jean.      Philom^ne's  scolding  !  " 

They  ran  out  into  the  back  garden.  "  That  is  right,"  the  woman  called 
after  them.  "  You  can  play  there  more  safely  than  in  the  road.  But  be 
sensible  now  ;  if  they  should  begin  firing  " 

It  was  not  difficult  to  slip  through  the  tumble-down  fence.  On  the  far 
side  of  it  the  children  struck  a  footpath  which  ran  down  across  a  rye-field  to 
the  plantation.  The  rain  had  ceased,  and  above  the  rye  many  larks  were 
singing,  though  the  clouds  hung  grey  and  heavy.  The  loose  firing,  too,  had 
ceased.  Trees  and  the  backs  of  a  few  cottages  on  their  left,  denser  woodland 
ahead  of  them,  circumscribed  the  view  here.  Not  a  soldier  was  in  sight. 
There  was  nothing  to  be  heard  save  the  larks'  chorus. 

"  But,  of  course,"  exclaimed  Pauline,  recollecting,  "it  is  Sunday.  People 
do  not  fight  on  Sunday." 

"  Are  you  sure  ?  "  asked  Jean,  with  a  touch  of  disappointment.  "If  it 
were  an  ordinary  Sunday  the  church  bell  would  be  ringing  before  now." 

"  That  is  M.  le  Cure's  cunning.  With  so  many  soldiers  about,  his  church 
would  be  suffocated  if  he  called  attention  " 

"  But  where  are  the  soldiers  ?  "  demanded  Jean. 

They  went  down  the  path,  which  was  narrow  and  slippery  with  mire, 
between  walls  of  rye  that,  when  brushed  against,  shook  down  the  golden  rain 
in  showers.  Jean  led,  with  Pauline  at  his  heels.  They  reached  the  planta- 
tion and  entered  it  by  a  low  gap.  The  wood  being  of  beech,  there  was  no 
undergrowth  to  wet  their  legs  ;  but  the  boughs  dripped.  The  plantation 
ended  at  a  bank  overhanging  a  paved  road,  and  down  this  bank  they  scrambled 
without  difficulty. 


iro 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


The  pavement  ran  down  the  middle  of  the  road,  and  they  followed  this, 
avoiding  the  slush  which  lined  it  on  either  side.  The  ruts  here  were  prodigious. 
In  fact,  the  children,  who  had  driven  the  cattle  up  this  road  a  few  hours  ago, 
found  it  almost  unrecognisable. 

They  now  heard  sounds  of  wood-cutters'  axes,  creaking  timber,  men's 
voices — foreign  voices,  and  at  an  angle  of  the  road  came  on  a  sudden  glimpse 
of  scarlet.  The  avenue  to  the  chateau  turned  off  from  the  high-road  just  here  ; 
and  just  beyond  the  turning  a  company  of  British  red-coats  were  completing 
an  abattis,  breast-high,  of  lopped  trees  criss-crossed  and  interlaced  with 
beech-boughs. 

An  officer  caught  sight  of  the  children  as  they  stood  hesitating,  and  warned 
them  sharply  to  go  back. 

"  But  we  have  a  message  for  our  father,  who  is  the  gardener  yonder," 
spoke  up  Jean,  with  a  jerk  of  his  thumb  towards  the  chateau. 

"  Well,  you  can  give  it  to  the  sentry  at  the  gate,  if  he'll  take  it.  But  be 
quick  !  " 

The  children  darted  up  the  avenue  between  the  poplars.  At  the  entrance 
gate,  which  stood  open,  sure  enough  they  found  a  red-coat  posted. 

"  We  bring  a  message  for  our  father,  who  is  the  gardener  here,"  said  Jean, 
hardily. 

The  sentinel  made  him  repeat  it,  and  answered  in  execrable  French.  "  Well, 
I  suppose  there  is  no  harm  in  letting  you  carry  it,  if  the  message  is  urgent. 
Your  father's  somewhere  in  the  garden  ;  I  saw  him  pass  that  way  a  minute 
ago.    But  you  must  promise  to  be  back  within  five  minutes." 

"  Lord,  now,"  added  the  sentry,  smiling  down  at  them,  "  I  left  just  such 
a  pair  as  you  at  home,  not  two  months  ago.  I'd  be  sorry,  much  as  I  love 
them,  to  see  them  anyways  here." 

"  I  like  that  man,"  said  Pauline,  as  she  and  Jean  passed  into  the  yard. 
The  place  was  empty,  save  for  two  soldiers — Lunsbrugers — in  green  uniform, 
who  were  carrying  a  bench  from  the  chapel  towards  the  small  gate  of  the  garden. 

"  But  we  have  no  message  for  papa,"  said  Pauline,  "  unless  we  tell  him 
that  Antoine's  mother  has  twins." 

"  And  he  won't  be  in  a  hurry  to  hear  that."  Just  then  a  dull  noise  sounded 
afar  to  the  southward,  and  the  ground  seemed  to  shake  a  little.  "  We  will 
first  seek  Philomene." 

He  had  hardly  spoken  the  words  when  something  screamed  in  the  air 
above  and  struck  the  edge  of  the  stable-steps  with  a  terrific  crash.  The  children, 
frightened  out  of  their  lives,  dashed  for  the  ladder  of  the  pigeon-house — the 
nearest  solid  object  to  which  they  could  cling.  Across  the  smoke,  as  they 
clung  and  turned,  they  saw  the  sentry  very  coolly  shutting  the  gate.  Four 
or  five  green-coats  ran  out  of  the  chapel  to  help  him,  but  paused  a  moment 
as  a  second  and  a  third  shot  whistled  wide  overhead.  Then  they  rushed 
forward,  heads  down,  to  the  gate,  which  was  quickly  shut  and  barred.  They 
had  not  seen  the  children,  who  now,  climbing  up  the  ladder,  stayed  not  until 
they  had  squeezed  through  the  square  hole  of  the  platform  and  crawled  into 
the  pigeon-house,  where  they  lay  panting. 


until  they  had  squeezed  through  the  square  hole  of  the  platform (page  170). 


172 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


It  was,  of  course,  quite  foolish  to  seek  shelter  here.  For  the  moment  they 
would  have  been  far  safer  in  the  courtyard  below,  under  the  lee  of  the  out- 
buildings. A  ball,  striking  the  pigeon-house,  would  knock  it  to  shivers  at  one 
blow.  But  they  had  climbed  in  pure  panic,  and  even  now,  without  any  excuse 
of  reason,  they  felt  more  secure  here. 

As  a  matter  of  fact  the  danger  was  lessening,  for  with  these  first  shots 
the  artillery  to  the  southward,  beyond  the  trees,  had  been  finding  its  range 
and  now  began  to  drop  its  fire  shorter,  upon  the  garden  below  the  chateau. 
Through  their  pigeon-holes  Jean  and  Pauline  overlooked  almost  the  whole 
stretch  of  the  garden,  the  foot  of  which  along  the  brick  wall  was  closely  lined 
with  soldiers — tall  red-coats  for  the  most  part,  with  squads  of  green- jackets 
here  and  there  and  a  sprinkling  of  men  who  carried  yellow  knapsacks.  They 
had  broken  down  the  cups  of  the  buttresses  during  the  night  and  laid  planks 
from  buttress  to  buttress,  forming  a  platform  that  ran  the  entire  length  of 
the  wall.  Along  this  platform  a  part  of  the  defenders  stood  ready  with  bayonets 
fixed  in  their  muskets,  which  they  rested  for  the  moment  on  the  brick  coping  ; 
others  knelt  on  the  flower  border  close  beneath  the  platform  watching  at 
apertures  where  a  few  bricks  had  been  knocked  out.  There  were  green  jackets 
and  yellow,  too,  in  the  grove  beyond,  posted  here  and  there  behind  the  breech- 
holes — a  line  of  them  pushed  forward  to  a  hedge  on  the  left — with  a  line  of 
retreat  left  open  by  a  small  doorway. 

This  was  all  that  Jean  and  Pauline  could  see  of  the  defence  ;  and  even 
this  they  took  in  hurriedly,  for  the  round  shot  by  now  was  sweeping  the  garden 
terraces  and  ploughing  through  the  flower-beds.  It  still  passed  harmlessly 
over  the  wall  and  the  soldiery  lining  it ;  and  the  children  could  see  the  men 
turn  to  watch  the  damage  and  grin  at  one  another  jocosely.  Pauline  wondered 
at  their  levity  ;  for  the  hail  under  which  they  stood  and  the  whistling  noise  of 
it,  the  constant  throbbing  of  earth  and  air  and  the  repeated  heavy  thuds  upon 
the  terrace  were  enough  to  strike  terror  into  anyone. 

She  cried  "  O — oh  1  as  a  tall  orange-tree  fell,  shorn  through  as  easily 
as  a  cabbage  stump. 

But  Jean  dragged  at  her  arm.  Between  the  tree  tops  in  a  gap  of  the  smoke 
that  hung  and  drifted  beyond  the  wood — which  dipped  southward  with  the 
lie  of  the  slope  and  fined  away  there  to  an  acute  angle — the  enemy  batteries, 
or  two  of  them,  were  visible,  shooting  out  fresh  wings  of  smoke  on  the  sullen 
air,  and  on  a  rising  ground  beyond,  dense  masses  of  infantry,  with  squadrons 
of  horsemen  moving  and  taking  up  position.  Flags  and  pennons  flickered, 
and  from  moment  to  moment,  as  a  troop  shifted  ground,  quick  rivulets  of  light 
played  across  lines  of  cuirasses  and  helmets.  Tens — hundreds — of  thousands 
were  gathered  there  and  stretched  away  to  the  left  (the  trees  were  lower  to 
the  left  and  gave  a  better  view) ;  and  the  object  of  this  tremendous  concourse, 
as  it  presented  itself  to  Jean — all  to  descend  upon  the  chateau  and  swallow 
up  this  thin  line  of  men  by  the  garden  wall.  To  him,  as  to  Pauline,  this 
home  of  theirs  meant  more  than  the  capital,  being  the  centre  of  their  world  ; 
and  of  other  preparations  to  resist  the  multitude  opposite  they  could  see 
nothing. 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


173 


Jean  wondered  why,  seeing  it  was  so  easy,  the  great  masses  hung  on  the 
slope  and  refrained  from  descending  to  deliver  the  blow. 

By  and  by  that  part  of  the  main  body  which  stood  facing  the  angle  where 
the  wood  ended  threw  out,  as  it  were  by  a  puff,  a  cloud  of  little  figures  to  left 
and  right,  much  like  two  swarms  of  bees  ;  and  these  two  dark  swarms,  each 
as  it  came  on  in  irregular  order,  expanding  until  their  inner  sides  melted  to- 
gether and  made  one,  descended  under  cover  of  their  artillery  to  the  dip,  where 
for  a  few  minutes  Jean  lost  sight  of  them. 

In  less  than  a  minute  the  booming  of  the  heavy  guns  ceased,  and  their 
music  was  taken  up  by  a  quick  crackle  of  small  arms  on  both  sides  of  the  wood. 
The  line  of  defenders  by  the  hedge  shook,  wavered,  broke  and  came  running 
back,  mingling  with  their  supporters  posted  behind  the  beech-boles  ;  under 
whose  cover  they  found  time  to  reload  and  fire  again,  dodging  from  tree  to 
tree.  But  still  as  it  dodged  the  whole  body  of  men  in  the  wood  was  being 
driven  backward  and  inward  from  both  sides  upon  the  small  door  admitting 
to  the  garden.  At  this  point  the  crush  was  hidden  by  the  intervening  wall. 
The  children  could  only  see  the  thin  trickle  of  men,  as  after  jostling  without 
they  escaped  back  through  the  doorway.  But  across  the  wall  could  now  be 
seen  the  first  of  the  assailants  closing  in  among  the  beech-trunks.  A  line 
of  red  jackets,  hitherto  hidden,  sprang  forward — as  it  were  from  the  base  of 
the  wall  on  the  far  side — to  cover  the  route.  But  they  were  few  and  seemed 
doomed  to  perish  when  

Whirr-rh  !  Over  the  children's  heads,  from  somewhere  behind  the  chateau, 
a  shell  hissed,  plunged  into  the  trees  right  amongst  the  assailants,  and  exploded. 
It  was  followed  by  another,  another,  and  yet  another.  The  whole  air  screamed 
with  shells  as  the  earth  shook  again  with  their  explosions.  But  the  marvel 
was  the  accuracy  with  which  they  dropped,  plump  among  trees  through  which 
the  assailants  crowded — white-breasted  regiments  of  the  line,  blue-coated, 
black-gaitered,  sharpshooters  closing  in  on  their  flanks.  The  edge  of  this  ring 
within  thirty  seconds  was  a  semicircle  of  smoke  and  flame  along  which,  as 
globe  after  globe  fell  and  crashed,  arms  tossed,  bodies  leapt  and  pitched  back 
convulsively  ;  while  even  two  hundred  yards  nearer  at  most,  the  knot  of 
defenders  stood  unscathed. 

Within  five  minutes — so  deadly  was  the  play  of  these  unseen  howitzers — 
not  a  blue-coat  stood  anywhere  in  sight.  A  few  wounded  could  be  seen 
crawling  away  to  shelter.  The  rest  of  the  front  and  second  lines  lay  in  an 
irregular  ring,  and  behind  it  the  assault,  which  had  swept  so  close  up  to  the 
wall,  melted  clean  away.  Amid  hurrahs  the  streams  of  green  and  yellow 
jackets,  which  had  been  pouring  in  at  the  entry,  steadied  itself  and  began  to 
pour  forth  again  to  reoccupy  the  wood,  gaily  encouraged  by  the  tall  red-coats 
on  the  platform.    The  hail  of  shells  ceased  as  suddenly  as  it  had  begun. 

In  the  lull  Jean  found  time  to  look  below  him,  then  through  another  pigeon- 
hole which  faced  the  gateway  he  saw  his  father  crossing  the  yard  with  a  red- 
coated  officer  who  was  persuading  him  to  leave  it. 

"  Philom^ne  !  "  shouted  the  gardener. 

The  serving-woman  came  forth  from  the  doorway  of  the  house,  bearing 


174 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


a  large  basin.  She  emptied  it  into  a  sink  beside  the  steps,  and  what  she  poured 
was  to  appearance  a  bowlful  of  blood. 

"  We  are  to  go,  it  seems,"  called  the  gardener.  "  They  will  try  again, 
and  the  likes  of  us  will  be  shot  as  having  no  business  here." 

"  No  business  ?  '*  called  back  Philomene.  "  I  don't  remember  when  I 
had  so  much."    She  disappeared  into  the  house. 

"  Papa  !  "  shrilled  Jean,  and  pushed  Pauline  out  towards  the  platform. 
"  For  your  life,  quick  !  " 

"  But  the  ladder  has  gone  !  "  gasped  Pauline. 

It  was  true.  Jean  shouted  to  his  father  again,  but  the  scream  of  a  belated 
shell  overhead  drowned  his  young  voice.  Someone  had  removed  the  ladder. 
Before  he  could  call  again  his  father  had  passed  out  and  the  sentry,  under  the 
officer's  instructions,  was  barring  the  gate. 

IV 

The  ladder  which  alone  could  help  them  to  descend  rested  against  the 
curtain  of  the  gate,  some  two  dozen  yards  away.  Why  it  had  been  carried 
off  to  be  planted  there,  or  by  whom,  there  was  no  guessing.  Someone,  maybe, 
had  done  it  in  a  panic.  For  a  moment  it  rested  there  idly  :  yet,  as  events  proved, 
it  had  a  purpose  to  serve. 

A  lull  of  twenty  minutes  ensued  on  the  baffled  first  assault.  But  the  French 
tirailleurs,  beaten  back  from  their  direct  attack  on  the  wood,  collected  them- 
selves on  the  edges  of  it,  and  began  to  play  a  new  and  more  deadly  game,  creep- 
ing singly  along  the  hedges  and  by  the  sunken  ways,  halting,  gathering,  pushing 
on  again,  gradually  enclosing  three  sides  of  the  walled  enceinte.  Against 
the  abattis  on  the  high-road  they  made  a  small  demonstration  as  a  feint. 
But  the  main  rush  came  again  through  the  wood  and  across  an  orchard  to  the 
left  of  it. 

This  time,  for  some  reason,  the  deadly  howitzers  were  silent.  This  time, 
after  another  roar  of  artillery  fire,  the  defenders  in  the  grove  came  pouring 
back  with  the  black-gaitered  men  close  upon  them,  intercepting  and  shooting 
them  down  by  scores. 

Then  followed  half  an  hour's  horrible  work  all  along  the  garden  wall ;  work 
of  which  (and  they  should  have  thanked  Heaven  for  it)  the  children  missed 
the  worst,  seeing  only  the  red-coats  jabbing  across  the  wall  and  downwards 
with  their  bayonets  ;  the  riflemen  at  the  loopholes  firing,  drawing  back,  pausing 
to  re-load.  The  small  door  had  been  shut  fast,  and  a  dozen  men  held  their 
weight  against  it. 

Yells  and  firing  sounded  all  the  while  from  the  orchard  to  the  loft.  But 
what  was  happening  there  the  children  could  not  see.  An  angle  of  the  house 
cut  off  their  view  in  that  direction — cut  off  in  fact,  their  view  of  the  main 
field  of  battle,  where  charge  after  charge  of  cavalry  was  being  launched  against 
the  few  regiments  holding  a  ridge  to  the  left,  close  under  which  the  chateau 
stood. 

But  for  Jean  and  Pauline  the  whole  fight  was  for  the  chateau — their  home, 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


175 


and  especially  just  now  for  the  garden.  It  seemed  incredible  that  a  thin 
line  of  red-coats  could  hold  the  wall  against  such  numbers  as  kept  pouring  up 
between  the  beech-boles.  Yet  minute  after  minute  passed,  and  the  wall  was 
not  carried. 

Someone  shouted  close  at  hand  from  the  gate.  They  turned  that  way, 
each  choosing  a  peephole.  A  score  of  blue-coats  had  actually  burst  the  gate 
open,  and  were  carrying  the  courtyard  with  a  rush.  But,  half-way,  as  many 
red-coats  met  them  and  swept  them  out  at  point  of  bayonet,  forcing  the 
double  gate  on  their  backs.  Half  a  dozen  others  ran  with  beams  to  barricade 
it.  Close  beside  it  to  the  left  a  man  topped  the  wall  and  straddled  it  with 
a  shout  of  triumph  ;  a  red-coat  fired  slantwise  from  the  pigeon-house  ladder 
and  he  pitched  writhing  upon  the  cobbles.  Shakos  and  heads  bobbed  up 
behind  the  coping  whence  he  had  dropped  ;  but  the  yard  now  was  full  of 
soldiers  (Heaven  knew  whence  they  had  sprung)  and  so  this  assault  too  was 
driven  back. 

Shouts  arose  from  the  left  of  the  house.  Gradually,  the  assault  here  being 
baffled,  the  men  drained  off  in  that  direction.  The  attack  upon  the  wall,  too, 
seemed  to  have  eased.  Then  came  another  lull.  Then  the  enemy's  artillery 
opened  fire  again,  this  time  with  shell.  A  tall  officer  stood  against  the  wall, 
shouting  an  order,  when  the  first  shell  dropped.  When  the  smoke  of  the  ex- 
plosion cleared  he  was  there  no  longer.  There  remained  only  what  seemed 
to  be  his  shadow.  It  was  actually  the  streak  of  him  beaten  in  blood  upon  the 
stucco. 

This  new  cannonade  was  designed  to  set  fire  to  the  obstinate  buildings,  and 
very  soon  the  roof  broke  into  a  blaze  in  two  places.  That  of  the  chapel  was 
the  first  to  catch,  at  the  western  end.  Many  of  the  wounded  had  been  carried 
there. 

The  pigeon-house  stood  intact.  Not  even  a  stray  bullet  had  struck  it. 
But  now  a  new  danger  threatened  the  children  and  a  surer  one  even  than  the 
fast  dropping  shells.  Smoke  from  the  blazing  roof  of  the  main  building  poured 
into  every  aperture  of  their  hiding-place.  They  fought  with  it,  striving  to 
push  it  from  them  with  hands  that  still  grew  feebler.  Of  a  sudden  it  blotted 
out,  not  the  battle  only,  but  life  itself  for  them. 

V 

"Pauline!" 

It  seemed  to  Jean  that  he  was  awaking  again  in  the  hay-loft.    Again  he 
heard  the  distant  crackle  of  musketry. 
"  Pauline  !  " 

Pauline  stirred.  At  that  moment  a  bird  alighted  on  a  sill  before  one  of 
the  holes  and  disappeared  with  a  whirr  of  wings.  It  was  a  pigeon  returning 
to  roost,  frightened  to  discover  his  house  occupied. 

The  noise  awakened  Pauline  upright.  She  sat  up  on  the  floor  of  the  loft 
and  asked  suddenly: 

"  But  did  they  break  in  after  all  ?  " 


176 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  They  ?  Who  ?  "  asked  Jean,  still  confused.  But  he  crept  to  the  opening, 
as  he  had  crept  to  the  other  opening  in  the  dawn. 

It  was  close  upon  sunset  now  ;  but  he  did  not  mark  this.  What  he  marked 
— and  what  brought  him  back  to  his  senses — was  the  sight  of  Philomene  crossing 
the  empty  courtyard  with  a  bucket.  It  was  the  same  courtyard,  though  its 
outbuildings  here  and  there  lacked  a  roof.  It  was  the  same  Philomene  any- 
how, with  her  waddling  walk. 

"  Philomene  !  " 

"  Eh  ?    But,  the  good  God  deliver  us,  how  ?  " 
"  Fetch  the  ladder  here." 

She  fetched  and  planted  it.    The  two  children  climbed  down  to  her. 

VI 

A  man  came  through  the  broken  gateway  and  stood  for  a  moment  gazing 
around  him  in  the  falling  twilight  at  the  ruins — a  tall  sergeant  of  the  Horse 
Artillery.  He  caught  sight  of  Philomene  and  the  children  and  stared  at  them, 
harder  still. 

"  Well,  I've  seen  things  to-day,"  he  said.  "  But  if  you  ain't  the  unlikeliest. 
Who  belongs  here  ?  " 

"  I  could  have  told  you,  yesterday,"  answered  Philomene,  in  an  old  voice, 
following  his  look  around. 

"  And  you've  seen  these  things  ?  You  ?  "  he  asked.  His  face  was  dirty 
— a  mask  of  gunpowder;  but  his  eyes  shone  kindly,  and  Pauline,  without 

recognising  his  uniform,  knew  him  for  a  friend.     "  Well,  I'm   !  But 

who  lives  here  just  now  ?  " 

"  There's  nobody  at  home  just  now  but  me  and  the  children,  as  you  see," 
said  Philomene.  "  Were  you  looking  for  somebody  ?  "  with  another  look 
around.    "  He  will  be  hard  to  find." 

The  tall  sergeant  leaned  an  elbow  against  the  gate.  He  was  tottering 
with  fatigue.  "  It's  a  victory,  that's  what  it  is,"  he  said ;  an  almighty 
victory." 

"  It  ought  to  be,  God  knows,"  Philomene  assented. 

"  And — and   But  you'll  be  busy,  no  doubt  ?  " 

"  Moderately." 

"  I  have  to  push  on  with  my  battery.  But  there's  no  real  hurry— the 
Prussians  are  after  them.  Now  I  thought — on  the  off-chance,  if  I  could  find 
a  friend  here  " 

"  What  is  it  you  ask  of  me,  good  man  ?  " 

"  If  one  of  you  wouldn't  mind  stepping  yonder  with  me.    It's  much  to 

ask,  I  know.    But  there's  a  gentleman — an  officer  of  ours  " 

"  Wounded  ?  " 

"  No  such  trouble  for  you,  good  woman.  Dead  he  is,  and  I  helped  bury 
him.  But  I  want  to  find  someone  who  will  mark  the  place  and  keep  it  marked 
'gainst  I  come  back — if  ever  I  do." 

"  Was  he  a  friend  of  yours,  then  ?  "  asked  Philomene,  while  the  children 
stared. 


THE  FIGHT  FOR  THE  GARDEN 


177 


"  I  wouldn't  altogether  say  that.  He'd  have  said  '  yes  '  fast  enough,  if 
you'd  asked  him.  But  he  was  a  gentleman  ;  Ramsey  by  name — Major  Norman 
Ramsey  ;  one  of  many  fallen  to-day,  but  I  rode  with  him  in  his  battery  when 
he  charged  in  slap  through  the  whole  French  cavalry  at  Fuentes  d'Onoro. 
Will  you  come  ?    'Tis  but  a  little  way." 

His  voice  pleaded  so — it  was  so  strange  and  womanly,  coming  from  a 
man  of  his  strength  and  inches — that  they  followed  him  almost  without  demur, 
out  by  the  gateway  and  around  the  sunken  lane  at  the  back  of  the  buildings, 
where  (for  it  was  dark)  they  had  to  pick  their  steps  for  fear  of  stumbling  over 
the  dead. 

Mercifully  the  way  was  not  far.  The  tall  sergeant  halted  and  pointed  to 
a  patch  of  broken  turf,  where  was  a  loose  mound  among  broad  wheel-ruts. 

You  see,  I  have  marked  it  with  a  stone,"  said  he.  "  But  in  a  few  days' 
time  there  may  be  many  around  here.  I  want  you  to  mark  this  one — it  doesn't 
matter  how,  so  that  you  know  it  and  can  point  it  out  when  his  friends  ask. 
He  wears  his  jacket,  of  course — the  same  as  mine."  The  tall  man  spanned 
his  chest  and  turned  towards  the  dying  daylight,  so  that  the  bars  of  yellow 
braid  showed  between  his  fingers.  "  Only  the  facings  will  be  of  gold.  You 
see  those  three  trees  standing  alone  ?  They  will  be  half-way  between  it  and 
the  wall  of  the  chateau — in  a  straight  line  almost ;  and  the  lane  close  here  on 
our  left.    You  cannot  miss  it."    He  felt  in  his  pockets. 

"  We  want  no  money,  soldier,"  said  Philom^ne.  "  We  will  do  our  best. 
Give  me  your  name,  that  meanwhile  we  may  pray  for  you  and  him,  out  of 
these  many." 

"  My  name  is  Livesay,  Sergeant,  of  Bull's  troop.  That  will  mean  nothing 
to  you,  however." 

"  I  dare  say,"  answered  Philomene  simply,  "  it  will  convey  more  to  our 
Lord  God.    I  had  a  man  once — who  was  killed — in  the  Artillery." 

Jean  and  Pauline  stared  at  the  man.  Tears,  as  he  stood  by  the  grave, 
had  carved  channels  of  white  down  his  powder-stained  cheeks. 

"  I  do  not  believe,"  he  said,  "  in  praying  for  the  dead.  But  I  am  glad, 
somehow,  there  are  folks  who  do.  Will  you  ?  His  name  was  Ramsey  ;  and 
the  Duke,  who  has  won  this  battle,  broke  his  heart,  curse  him  !  " 

"  How  did  he  die,  sir  ?  "  asked  Philomene  simply. 

"  He  was  killed  some  while  ago  and  far  from  here,"  answered  the  sergeant. 
"  Of  a  broken  heart.  Mademoiselle." 

"It  is  a  sad  thing,"  sighed  Philomene,  "  to  live  for  the  Artillery." 

The  sergeant  seemed  to  wish  to  say  more,  but  turned  to  shake  hands  with 
her.  He  patted  the  children  lightly  on  the  head,  then  strode  down  the  slope. 
A  last  shaft  of  sunset  cast  his  long  shadow  over  the  heaps  of  slain. 

With  a  sob  Philomene  pulled  herself  together. 

"  Mark  my  words,  children.  The  pigeons  will  be  home  at  their  roosts  to- 
morrow and  all  this  will  be  as  if  it  never  had  been." 

She  turned  back  to  retrace  the  path,  and  over  the  fields  of  slain  the  two 
children  followed  her,  heavy  with  sleep. 
6* 


The  Face  in  the  Hop  Vines 

By  Charles  G.  D.  Roberts 

Kin^s  {Liverpool)  Regiment 

From  the  low  window,  framed  in  hop-vines,  came  light  enough  to  light  to 
bed  so  sleepy  a  traveller  as  I,  so  I  troubled  not  at  all  to  find  the  candle.  Sitting 
idly  on  the  edge  of  the  couch,  I  pondered  on  the  effort  it  would  require  to  pull 
off  my  boots.  A  soldier,  and  hardened  to  all  shifts,  I  might,  indeed,  have  slept 
as  I  was  ;  but  the  bed  was  the  best  in  the  inn,  and  I  cared  not  to  vex  my 
hostess's  tidy  soul  by  any  such  roughness  of  the  camp.  Even  as  I  thought  of 
it,  however,  my  tired  brain  was  flowing  away  into  dreams. 

But  on  the  sudden  I  sat  up  straight,  very  wide  awake.  My  hand  went  to 
the  butt  of  my  pistol.  I  had  caught  a  stealthy  rustling  in  the  hop  vines 
about  the  window.  Could  these  Acadians  be  planning  any  mischief  against 
me  ?  It  was  not  probable,  for  they  were  an  open-dealing  and  courageous 
folk,  and  had  shown  themselves  civil  during  the  few  hours  since  my  coming 
to  Cheticamp  village.  Nevertheless,  I  knew  that  in  a  certain  sense  I  might 
count  myself  to  be  in  an  enemy's  country,  and  vigilance  my  best  comrade. 
I  sat  in  the  gloom  motionless,  watching  the  pale  square  of  the  window. 

Presently  a  head  appeared  close  to  the  glass,  and  my  fingers  released  the 
pistol.  The  head  was  a  woman's — a  young  girl's,  it  seemed — in  the  wimpled 
white  cap  wherein  these  girls  of  Acadia  are  wont  to  enshadow  their  bright  faces. 
Then  light  fingers  tapped  on  the  pane,  and  with  great  willingness  I  threw  open 
the  sash.  But  on  the  instant,  guessing  at  a  mystery  of  some  sort,  I  held  my 
tongue  and  kept  my  face  aloof  from  the  outdoor  glimmer.  For  my  part, 
however,  I  could  make  out — less,  perhaps,  by  these  material  eyes  than  by  the 
insight  of  the  heart — that  the  face  which  looked  up  peeringly  into  mine  was 
young  and  alluring. 

"  Jacques,"  she  murmured  in  a  voice  which  my  ears  at  once  approved, 
"  is  it  really  you  ?  " 

"  There's  a  mistake  here — an  interesting  mistake,"  said  my  heart  to  me. 
But  I  let  no  such  utterance  rise  to  my  lips.  No,  indeed.  But  my  name  is 
Jack — and  no  one  could  be  supposed  to  think  of  spelling  at  such  a  moment. 
My  conscience  made  no  protest  as  I  answered  : 

"  Surely,  dear  one,  it's  Jack.    Who  else  could  it  be  ?  " 

178 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


179 


I  spoke  in  a  discreet  whisper,  for  all  voices  in  a  whisper  sound  alike  ;  and 
I  blessed  my  stars  that  I  had  perfected  my  French  since  my  arrival  in  Halifax. 
I  put  out  my  hand,  but  failed  to  find  a  small  one  to  occupy  it. 

"  Of  course,  I  knew  it  was  you,  Jacques,"  the  bewitching  voice  responded, 
"  or  you  don't  suppose  I  should  have  come  knocking  at  your  window  this 
way,  do  you  ?  " 

"  No,  I  should  think  not,  cMrie,''^  I  assented  heartily,  solicitous  to  cherish 
the  maid's  mistake  and  prolong  the  interview  to  the  utmost  patience  of  Fate. 
"  But  it  was  kind  of  you  to  come  so  soon." 

This  seemed  safe  and  non-committal,  but  I  trembled  after  I  said  it,  lest 
some  unknown  revelation  should  be  lurking  in  the  words. 

"  I  had  to,  Jacques,  because  I  was  afraid  you  might  come  to  see  me  to- 
night " 

I  was  coming,"  I  interrupted,  boldly  mendacious,  but  I  was  on  the 
road  all  night,  and  thought  I  had  better  lie  down  for  a  soldier's  forty  winks 
before  I  called." 

She  laughed  under  her  breath  provocatively. 

"  How  your  French  has  improved  in  these  two  years,"  she  remarked  with 
approbation.       I  used  to  think  you  would  never  learn." 

This  was  the  first  time  1  had  seen  Cheticamp  village,  but  I  felt  safe  in  my 
reply. 

"  I  was  stupid,  of  course,  mon  ange ;  but  after  I  was  gone  I  remembered 
your  sweet  instructions." 

This  was  dangerous  ground.    I  hastened  to  shift  it. 

"  But  tell  me,"  I  went  on,  "  what  can  you  mean  by  saying  I  am  not  to 
come  and  see  you  ?  Surely  you  are  not  going  to  be  so  cruel,  when  I've  been 
away  so  long." 

"No,  Jacques,"  she  said,  with  a  decisive  shake  of  her  pretty  head,  "  you 
cannot  come.  Father  is  very  bitter  against  you,  and  there  would  be  a 
scene." 

I  began  to  feel  that  I  had  rights  which  were  being  trampled  upon. 
But  what  do  you  suppose  I  came  to  Cheticamp  for  ?  "  I  pleaded. 

"  Not  merely  to  see  me — that  I  know,  Jacques,"  came  the  decided  answer. 
"  You  could  never  get  leave  of  absence  just  for  that.  You  cold-blooded 
English  could  never  make  a  woman's  wishes  so  important." 

"  Couldn't  we,  indeed  ?  "  I  protested.  In  my  eagerness  I  leaned  forward 
into  the  glimmer,  seeking  closer  proximity  to  the  fair  enshadowed  face  that 
seemed  to  waver  off  alluringly  just  beyond  my  reach.  Then,  in  a  panic  lest 
I  had  revealed  myself  and  displayed  to  her  the  error  which  I  was  finding  so 
agreeable,  I  drew  myself  back  hastily  into  the  gloom.  To  cover  my  alarm 
I  reproached  her  plaintively. 

"  Why  do  you  keep  so  far  away,  sweet  one  ?  Surely  you  are  glad  to  see 
me  again ! " 

She  laughed  softly,  deliciously,  under  her  hood. 

"  I  haven't  seen  you  yet,  really,  you  know,  Jacques.  Perhaps  you  have 
changed,  and  I  might  not  like  you  so  well.    Men  do  change,  especially  English- 


180 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


men  and  soldiers,  they  say.  But  tell  me,  why  have  you  come  to  Cheticamp  ; 
what  reason  beside  to  see  me  ?  " 

This  was  a  poser.  I  feared  the  game  was  up.  But  experience  has  taught 
me  that  when  one  has  no  good  lie  ready  to  hand  it  is  safest  to  throw  oneself 
on  the  mercy  of  Truth  and  trust  to  her  good  nature.  She  has  so  many  sides 
that  one  of  them  can  generally  be  found  to  serve  any  occasion.  I  told  the 
truth,  yet  with  an  air  that  would  permit  her  to  doubt,  should  the  game 
require  it. 

"  The  business  which  gained  me  the  privilege  of  coming  where  I  might 
be  once  more  blessed  by  the  light  of  your  sweet  eyes,  provoking  one,  was  the 
need  conceived  in  the  heart  of  our  good  Governor  of  putting  a  stop  to  certain 
transactions  with  the  French  at  Louisbourg,  which,  as  you  doubtless  know 
very  well,  have  laid  all  this  Cheticamp  coast  under  grave  suspicion.  Your 
people,  I  dare  wager,  are  too  wise  to  be  mixed  up  in  such  perilous  enterprises." 

No  sooner  had  I  spoken  than  I  realised  that,  for  once.  Truth  had  tricked 
me.    I  had  better  have  trusted  to  invention. 

"  Thank  you,  Jacques.  That  is  just  what  I  wanted  to  know.  You  are 
so  kind.    Good  night." 

There  was  a  mocking  note  in  the  sweet  voice,  a  little  ring  of  triumph  and 
hostility.  For  one  instant  the  face  was  raised,  and  I  saw  it  plainly,  as  if  by 
the  radiance  of  the  scornful  eyes.  Then,  before  I  could  in  any  way  gather 
my  wits,  it  vanished. 

I  thrust  my  head  forward,  heedless  of  concealment,  and  gained  one  glimpse 
of  a  shadow  disappearing  through  the  shrubbery,  I  sprang  out  to  follow. 
But  no,  I  forget  myself.  The  window  was  somewhat  small  for  one  of  my 
inches.  I  climbed  out  laboriously.  The  witch  was  nowhere  to  be  seen.  Then, 
still  more  laboriously,  I  climbed  back  again,  cursing  Fortune  and  my  own 
stupidity  which  had  bungled  so  sweet  a  game.  I  sat  down  on  the  edge  of  my 
bed  to  consider. 

The  errand  which  had  brought  me  from  Halifax  to  Cheticamp,  with  six 
soldiers  to  support  me,  was  one  of  some  moment,  and  here  was  I  already  in 
danger  of  distraction,  thinking  of  a  girl's  voice,  of  half-seen,  mocking  eyes, 
rather  than  of  my  undertaking.  I  got  up,  shook  myself  angrily,  then  sat 
down  again  to  lay  my  plans  for  the  morrow. 

The  old  Seigneur  of  Cheticamp,  Monsieur  Raoul  St.  Michel  le  Fevre,  had 
heartily  accepted  the  English  rule,  and  dwelt  in  high  favour  with  the  powers 
at  Halifax.  But  he  had  died  a  year  back,  leaving  his  estates  to  his  nephew, 
young  St.  Michel.  It  had  come  to  the  ears  of  the  Government  that  this  youth, 
a  headstrong  partisan  of  France,  was  taking  advantage  of  his  position  as 
seigneur  to  prosecute  very  successfully  the  forbidden  traffic  with  Louisbourg. 
Great  and  merited  was  the  official  indignation.  It  was  resolved  that  the 
estates  should  be  confiscated  at  once,  and  young  Monsieur  St.  Michel  le  Fevre 
captured,  if  possible.  Thereupon  the  estates  were  conferred  upon  myself,  to 
whom  the  Governor  was  somewhat  deeply  indebted.  It  was  passing  comfort- 
able to  him  to  pay  a  debt  out  of  a  pocket  other  than  his  own.  I  was  dispatched 
to  Cheticamp  to  gather  in  Monsieur  le  Fevre  for  the  Governor  and  the  le  Fevre 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


181 


estates  for  myself.  They  were  fair  estates,  I  had  heard,  and  I  vowed  that 
I  would  presently  teach  them  to  serve  well  the  cause  of  England's  king. 

My  first  thought  in  the  morning,  when  the  level  sun  streaming  through 
the  hop  vines  brought  me  on  the  sudden  wide  awake — as  a  soldier  should 
wake,  slipping  cleanly  and  completely  out  of  his  sleep-heaviness — my  first 
thought,  I  say,  was  of  a  shadowed  face  vanishing  into  the  night-glimmer,  and 
something  enchantingly  mysterious  to  be  sought  for  in  this  remote  Acadian 
village.  Then,  remembering  my  business  and  hoping  that  my  indiscretion 
had  not  muddled  it,  I  resolutely  put  the  folly  from  me  and  sprang  up. 

It  is  curious,  when  one  looks  back,  to  note  what  petty  details  stand  forth 
in  a  clear  light,  as  it  were,  upon  the  background  of  great  and  essential  experience. 
I  am  no  gourmand,  but  apt  to  eat  whatever  is  set  before  me,  with  little 
concern  save  that  it  be  cleanly  and  sufficient.  Yet  never  do  I  hear  or  think 
of  Cheticamp  village  without  a  remembered  savour  of  barley  cakes  and  brown 
honey,  crossed  delicately  with  the  smell  of  bean  blossoms  blown  in  through  a 
sunny  window.  At  the  time,  I  am  sure,  I  took  little  heed  of  these  things.  My 
care  was  chiefly  to  see  that  two  of  my  men  set  forth  promptly  to  watch  the 
two  wharves  on  each  side  of  the  creek,  which  served  the  fleet  of  the  fisher- 
men. Then  I  dispatched  two  others  to  spy  on  the  roadway  entering  and  leaving 
the  village,  and  a  fifth  to  sentinel  a  hill  at  the  back  overlooking  all  the  open 
country.  With  the  remaining  fellow,  my  orderly,  at  my  heels,  I  set  out  for 
the  dwelling  of  young  Monsieur  St.  Michel  le  Fevre  de  Cheticamp,  rehearsing 
his  full  name  with  care  as  I  went,  in  order  that  there  should  be  no  lack  of 
courteous  ceremony  to  disguise  the  rudeness  of  my  errand. 

I  needed  none  to  point  me  out  the  house  of  the  le  Fevres.  On  the  crest 
of  a  dark-wooded  knoll  at  the  south-east  end  of  the  one  long  village  street,  it 
spread  its  cluster  of  grey  gables,  low  and  of  a  comfortable  air.  Fir  groves 
sheltered  it  to  north  and  east.  On  the  west  gathered  the  cool,  green  ranks 
of  its  apple  orchard.  Down  the  slope  in  front  unrolled  a  careless  garden — 
thyme  plots  and  hollyhock  rows,  gooseberry  bushes  and  marigold  beds,  and 
a  wide  waste  of  blossoming  roses — all  as  unlike  the  formal  pleasances  of  France 
and  England  as  garden-close  could  be,  yet  bewitching,  like  a  fair  and  wilful 
woman. 

"  It  shall  not  be  changed  by  so  much  as  one  gooseberry  bush,"  said  I  to 
myself,  highly  pleased  with  the  prospect.  Then,  rounding  a  lilac  thicket,  I 
arrived  at  the  open  gate.    And  then,  face  to  face,  I  met  a  girl. 

The  meeting  was  so  sudden,  and  so  closely  did  I  confront  her,  that  I  felt 
my  coming  a  most  uncivil  intrusion.  Moreover,  she  was  most  disconcerting 
to  look  upon.  Stammering  apologies  and  snatching  my  hat  from  my  head, 
I  flushed  and  dropped  my  eyes  before  her — which  was  not  in  accordance  with 
my  custom.  I  dropped  my  eyes,  as  I  say,  but  even  then  I  saw  her  as  clearly 
within  my  brain  as  if  my  eyes  were  boldly  resting  upon  her  face. 

The  lady  of  the  manor,  evidently.  I  had  heard  there  was  a  sister  to  the 
recalcitrant  young  seigneur,  one  Mademoiselle  Irene,  over  whose  beauty  and. 
caprices  had  more  than  one  duel  been  fought  among  the  gallants  of  Quebec. 

The  picture  which,  during  those  few  heart-beats  while  I  stood  stuttering, 


182 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


burned  itself  into  my  memory  was  one  that  not  absence,  years,  or  habitude 
has  any  power  to  dull.  The  face  was  a  face  for  which  some  men  would  die  a 
hundred  deaths  and  dream  all  beauty  in  dying,  while  other  men,  blind  fools, 
and  many  women,  of  the  envious  sort,  would  protest  it  to  be  not  even  passable  ; 
a  face  small,  thin,  clear,  and  very  dark  ;  the  chin  obstinate  ;  the  mouth  full, 
somewhat  large,  sorrowful,  mocking,  maddening,  unforgettably  scarlet;* the 
nose  whimsical,  dainty ;  the  eyes  of  a  strange  green  radiance,  very  large  and 
trustfully  wide  open,  frank  as  a  child's,  yet  unfathomable  ;  a  face  to  trust, 
to  adore,  yet  not  to  understand.  The  hair  black,  thick,  half  curling,  with  a 
dull  burnish,  falling  over  each  side  of  the  brow  almost  to  cover  the  little  delicate 
ears.  The  figure,  clad  in  some  soft,  whitish  stuff  descending  only  to  the  ankles, 
was  under  middle  height,  slight  to  thinness,  straight,  lithe,  fine,  indescribably 
alive — in  some  strange  way  reminding  me  of  a  flame.  In  narrow  little  shoes 
of  red  leather  the  light  feet  stood  poised  like  birds'.  From  one  small  nut- 
brown  hand  swung  a  broad-brimmed  hat  of  black  beaver,  with  an  ample  black 
feather  at  the  side.  Beside  this  entrancing  picture  I  was  vaguely  conscious 
of  a  wide,  yellow  pathway  sloping  upward  through  roses,  roses,  roses  drenched 
in  sun. 

Presently  I  heard  the  sound  of  my  stammering  cease,  and  a  soft  voice, 
troubling  me  with  a  familiar  note,  said  courteously:  "  You  are  very  welcome 
to  Cheticamp,  monsieur.  My  brother  is  away  from  ho :ne,  unhappily,  but  in 
his  absence  you  must  allow  me  the  honour  of  taking  his  place  as  your  host  in 
my  poor  way." 

I  looked  up  and  met  her  eyes  fairly,  my  confusion  lost  in  surprise,  and 
on  the  instant  my  heart  signalled  to  me  :  "  It  is  none  other  than  the  maid  of 
the  window  !    Take  care  !  " 

Yes,  I  saw  it  plain.  Yet  I  should  never  have  known  it  but  for  a  perception 
somehow  more  subtle  than  that  of  ear  and  eye — ^for  she  had  disguised  her 
voice  the  night  before,  and  her  dress  had  been  that  of  a  peasant  maid,  and 
the  bright  riddle  of  her  face  had  been  in  shadow.  I  perceived,  too,  that  she 
felt  herself  safe  from  discovery,  and  that  it  was  for  me  to  save  her  blushes 
by  leaving  her  security  unassailed.  In  all  this  sudden  turmoil  of  my  wits, 
however,  I  fear  that  I  was  near  forgetting  my  manners. 

"  But,  mademoiselle,"  I  demanded  bluntly,  "  how  do  vou  know  who  I 
am  ?  " 

"It  is  the  part  of  the  conquered  to  know  their  conquerors,  monsieur," 
she  answered,  in  a  manner  that  eluded  the  bitterness  of  the  words.  "  But, 
indeed,  the  place  of  an  English  officer,  on  duty  that  is  doubtless  official,  is 
here  at  the  Seigneury  and  not  at  the  village  inn.  We  cannot  let  you  put  a 
slight  upon  our  hospitality." 

I  was  in  sore  embarrassment ;  and  the  parchment  deed  conveying  to  me 
the  Seigneury  of  Cheticamp  began  to  burn  my  pocket.  I  felt  a  vehement 
desire  to  accept  the  sweetly  proffered  hospitality  of  this  enchanting  witch. 
The  temptation  dragged  at  my  heartstrings.  There  was  nothing  to  do  but 
take  it  by  the  throat  rudely  if  I  would  save  any  shreds  of  honour.  Alas  ! 
mademoiselle,"  I  said,  avoiding  her  eyes,  "  I  am  here  on  a  rough  errand,  and 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


183 


your  courtesy  pierces  me.  I  am  here  to  arrest  your  brother  and  carry  him 
a  prisoner  to  Halifax." 

"  Monsieur,  monsieur,  what  do  you  mean  ?  "  she  cried,  with  a  faintness 
in  her  voice.  But  looking  up  suddenly,  I  saw  that  her  surprise  was  a  pretty 
piece  of  feigning,  though  her  agitation  was  real  enough. 

"  I  mean  that  your  brother,  though  succeeding  to  these  estates  under 
protection  of  English  law,  and  owing  allegiance  to  the  English  Crown,  is  giving 
aid  to  England's  enemies.  He  is  supplying  Louisbourg  with  grain  and  flax 
and  cattle  from  these  lands  of  Acadia,  which  are  now  English.  The  Governor 
has  proofs  beyond  cavil.  He  has  sent  me  to  arrest  your  brother,  mademoiselle, 
not  to  be  happy  in  the  hospitality  of  your  brother's  sister." 

And  now,  to  my  amaze,  the  merriest  and  most  persuasive  smile  spread 
a  dazzle  over  my  lady  witch's  face. 

"  Those  proofs  of  your  good  Governor's,  monsieur,"  she  cried,  with  pretty 
scorn,  "  I  will  show  you  what  folly  they  are.  You  have  all  been  deceived.  You 
must  come  with  me  now,  and  give  me  fullest  opportunity  to  clear  my  brother's 
honour.  And  in  any  case  it  is  my  right,  as  well  as  my  pleasure,  to  entertain 
the  Governor's  representative  when  he  visits  the  place  of  my  father's  people." 

But  I  was  stubborn.  That  deed  in  my  pocket  weighed  tons.  Yet  my 
inclination  must  have  shown  in  my  eyes,  plainly  enough  for  one  less  keen  than 
Mademoiselle  Irene  le  Fevre  to  decipher  it.  A  little  air  of  confidence  flitted 
over  her  face.    Nevertheless,  I  shook  my  head. 

"  Most  gracious  lady,"  I  protested,  "  you  honour  me  too  much.  It  will 
delight  me  to  learn  that  your  brother  has  been  maligned  " — and  in  this,  faith, 
I  spoke  true,  forgetting  the  contingent  peril  to  my  pocket — "  but  were  he 
never  so  innocent  it  would  be  my  duty  to  take  him  to  Halifax,  for  the  Governor 
himself  to  weigh  the  evidence.  The  irony  of  life  has  sent  me  as  your  foe,  not 
as  your  guest." 

"  Then,  monsieur,  come  as  a  foe  who  but  observes  the  courtesies.  Come 
with  your  hands  free  to  arrest  my  brother  at  any  moment  on  his  own  hearth- 
stone (he  is  far  away  from  it  now,  praise  Mary  !),  or  to  arrest  your  hostess 
either,  if  your  duty  should  demand  that  unkindness.  Come  as  one  who 
graciously  accepts  what  he  could,  if  he  would,  take  as  his  right.  Let  us  play 
that  you  come  here  as  our  friend,  monsieur — and  give  me  the  hope  of  winning 
an  advocate  for  my  brother  against  the  evil  day  that  may  bring  him  before 
the  cold  English  judges  at  Halifax." 

Her  strong,  little  eloquent  hands  were  clasped  in  appeal — and  who  was 
I  to  deny  her  ?  But  I  looked  into  her  eyes ;  and  I  saw  in  their  childlike  deeps, 
underneath  the  mocking  and  the  feigning,  a  clear  spirit,  which  I  could  not 
bear  to  delude.  I  understood  now  very  plainly  her  mad  game  of  the  night 
before.  She  was  unmasking  a  danger  for  her  brother.  I  justified  her  in  my 
heart ;  for  my  own  part  in  the  folly  I  felt  a  creeping  shame.  How  lightly 
she  must  hold  me.  This  thought,  and  a  sense  that  I  was  about  to  hurt  her, 
brought  the  hot  flush  to  my  face  ;  and  I  looked  away  as  I  spoke. 

"  But,  mademoiselle — ^forgive  me  that  I  bear  such  tidings — ^the  estates  of 
Monsieur  Raoul  le  Fevre,  Seigneur  of  Cheticamp,  are  confiscated  to  the  Crown," 


184 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Lifting  my  eyes  at  the  last  words,  I  saw  that  the  girl  had  grown  very  white 
and  was  staring  at  me  in  a  sort  of  terror.  There  was  plainly  no  feigning  here. 
This  blow  was  unexpected,  unprepared  for,  something  beyond  her  bright 
young  wit  to  deal  with.  I  seemed  to  see  in  her  heart  a  sudden,  hopeless  deso- 
lation, as  if  all  her  world  had  fallen  to  ruin  about  her  and  left  her  life  naked 
to  the  storm  of  time.    Not  a  word  had  she  ready  in  such  a  crisis. 

"  Mademoiselle,"  I  cried,  more  passionately,  perhaps,  than  was  fitting, 
"  do  not  misunderstand.  The  confiscation  does  not  apply  at  once,  of  course, 
and  you  are  still  absolute  mistress  here.  If  your  brother  be  proved  innocent, 
the  decree  of  confiscation  may  be  revoked.  So  it  will  now  be  held  in  suspension. 
You  will,  I  am  sure,  permit  me  to  go  through  the  form  of  visiting  your  house, 
to  convince  me,  as  the  Governor's  emissary,  that  Monsieur  le  Fevre  is  not 
there.  Then  I  will  return  to  the  village  and  see  to  it  that  my  men  shall  cause 
you  no  annoyance  or  embarrassment.  I  dare  not  ask  you  to  pity  me  for  the 
duty  that  has  been  put  upon  me." 

As  I  spoke  I  had  been  watching  her  face,  without  seeming  to  think  of 
anything  but  my  own  words.  First  the  colour  returned  to  cheek  and  lips  ; 
then  a  wild  anger  was  lighted  in  the  great  green  eyes — anger  with  a  fear  and 
appeal  behind  it.  Then  a  resolved  look — and  I  knew  that  she  would  force 
herself  to  play  out  the  game,  setting  her  brother's  interest  before  all  else. 
And  then,  last  of  all,  a  most  fleeting,  elusive  look  of  triumph  at  the  back  of 
her  eyes  and  at  the  bow  of  her  lips,  for  the  indeterminable  fraction  of  a  second. 
I  took  note  of  this  with  some  anxiety.  Could  it  be  possible  that  she  felt  sure 
of  her  power  over  me  ?  Could  it  be  possible  that  she  had,  at  all,  any  hold 
upon  me  ?  No,  she  was  too  confident.  She  interested  me  amazingly.  She 
seemed  to  me  the  most  beautiful  thing  that  could  have  ever  existed.  But  I 
was  not  in  love,  and  would  not  be  swerved  from  my  duty  even  if  I  were.  Yet 
all  this  was  flashed  instantaneously  through  my  brain — she  was  speaking — 
and  I  was  yielding. 

"  You  are  a  generous  enemy,  a  chivalrous  enemy,  monsieur,"  she  mur- 
mured, in  a  low,  earnest,  slightly  strained  voice.  Then  she  recovered  her 
lightness.  "  I  am  almost  your  prisoner,  in  a  sense,  am  I  not  ?  A  suspect, 
certainly.  If  I  accept  your  leniency,  and  profit  by  your  permission  to  stay 
here  under  my  confiscated  roof,  do  not  make  me  die  under  this  weight  of  favour. 
Be  my  guest  and  let  me  feel  that  I  am  not  the  only  one  in  debt." 

Was  this  the  same  woman,  this  half-mocking,  all-irresistible  creature,  she 
whom  I  had  seen  grey-faced  with  hopeless  trouble  not  three  minutes  before  ? 
Said  I  to  myself,  "  If  I  put  my  wits  or  my  heart  against  hers  it  is  all  up  with 
me.  Blank  truth  is  my  only  hope."  Aloud  I  said,  "  I  will  be  your  guest, 
mademoiselle,  though  the  debt  in  which  I  so  overwhelm  myself  is  one  from 
which  I  can  never  again  get  free." 

For  this  acquiescence  my  reward  was  just  a  look  of  brilliancy  that  made 
me  catch  my  breath  with  pleasure.  With  a  gesture  that  bade  me  to  her  side 
she  turned  and  moved  slowly  up  the  path,  between  the  shining  copiousness 
of  roses. 

'*  I  will  send  a  servant  with  your  orderly  to  the  inn,  monsieur,"  she  said, 


186 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  to  fetch  your  things.  Our  old  walls  will  be  glad  to  shelter  again  a  soldier's 
uniform,  even  if  the  colour  of  it  be  something  strange  to  them." 

"  Almost  you  tempt  me  to  wish  that  I  had  been  born  to  the  white  uniform," 
1  answered,  in  a  daze  with  the  nearness  of  her,  the  witchery  of  her,  the  name- 
less charm  of  her  movement,  the  subtle  intoxication  of  her  voice. 

"  Almost  you  tempt  me  to  regret,"  she  retorted,  with  gracious  raillery, 
*'  that  the  men  of  your  cold  and  stubborn  north  cannot  be  moved  to  change 
by  a  woman's  arguments." 

"  It  is  to  unchangeableness  we  are  moved  by  a  woman,  mademoiselle." 

I  spoke  with  an  exaggerated  lightness,  to  avoid  a  too  significant  serious- 
ness. 

"  Is  there  ever,  I  wonder,  a  risk  of  such  steadfastness  growing  tiresome  ?  " 
mused  mademoiselle,  turning  contemplative. 

The  swift  change  discomfited  me.  I  turned  my  words  to  platitudes  on 
the  beauty  of  the  house,  the  garden,  the  landscape.  And  presently  I  found 
myself  established,  an  honoured  yet  confessedly  hostile  guest,  in  the  Seigneury 
of  Cheticamp. 

A  little  old  housekeeper,  wizened  and  taciturn  and  omnipresent,  kept 
me  under  an  inscrutable  surveillance,  but  treated  me  civilly  enough.  My 
chamber,  very  spacious,  but  with  a  low  ceiling  of  broken  slopes  under  the 
eaves,  its  windows  looking  out  over  the  rose-garden,  the  village,  and  the 
sea,  was  furnished  with  a  strange  commingling  of  the  luxury  and  daintiness 
of  Versailles  with  the  rudeness  of  a  remote,  half-barbarous  colony.  One  of 
my  men,  my  orderly,  was  entertained,  much  to  his  satisfaction,  in  the  servants' 
quarters,  and  did  me  service  as  regularly  as  if  we  were  at  home  at  Goreham- 
on-Thames  ;  while  the  rest,  lodging  at  the  inn,  came  to  me  with  daily  reports, 
which  varied  not  at  all  in  their  trivial  sameness.  I  breakfasted  alone.  Through- 
out the  morning  I  walked  exploring  the  country  for  miles  about  and  talking 
with  the  inhabitants  ;  or  I  investigated  the  roomy,  irregular  old  house,  whose 
half-open  doors  and  rambling  corridors  extended  trustful  invitation  to  my 
curiosity  ;  or  I  read  and  wrote  in  the  small  but  well-stocked  library,  to  which 
stained  glass  from  Rouen,  a  prayer  desk,  and  a  corner  shrine  lent  the  savour 
and  sanctity  of  a  chapel.  At  one  hour  past  noon  precisely  I  dined  with  Made- 
moiselle le  Fevre,  and  afterwards  either  walked  with  her  in  the  garden  and 
in  the  fir-woods,  or,  if  the  weather  was  unfavourable,  conversed  with  her, 
most  pleasurably,  in  the  book-room,  while  she  wrought  with  more  or  less 
affectation  of  diligence  at  a  curious  piece  of  tapestry,  gold  threads  and  scarlet 
on  a  cloth  of  a  soft  dull  blue.  Before  sunset  we  supped,  and  in  the  evening, 
with  doors  and  windows  open  and  the  scented  breath  of  sea  and  rose  and 
meadow  flowing  through,  she  played  to  me  on  her  spinet,  or  sang  ballads  of 
old  France,  till  candle-light  and  "  good  night  "  brought  the  day  to  a  close. 

Small  wonder,  being  so  gently  occupied,  that  I  was  in  no  haste  to  force 
events,  to  ask  myself  what  I  desired  or  expected  should  happen.  The  man 
I  was  sent  to  seek  was  obviously  not  here.  It  was  a  plain  and  pleasant  duty 
for  me  to  stay  here  and  await  him.  Meanwhile,  I  was  serving  the  King  by 
my  presence,  which  was  security  that  the  Seigneury  of  Cheticamp  should 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


187 


render  no  assistance  to  the  King's  enemies  at  Louisbourg.  To  be  sure,  it  was 
rendering  continual  assistance  to  Mademoiselle  Irene  le  Fevre  de  Cheticamp, 
but  I  could  not  bring  myself  to  consider  for  a  moment  that  the  King  could 
be  so  unhappy  as  to  count  her  among  his  enemies.  And  so  the  days  slipped 
by.  I  was  not — as  I  should  have  sworn  to  myself  in  all  honesty  had  one 
suggested  it  to  me — in  the  least  in  love  with  mademoiselle.  I  merely  found 
it  unavoidable  to  think  about  her  or  dream  about  her  all  the  time  ;  impossible 
to  engage  my  interest  in  anything  whatever  that  I  could  not  connect  with  her. 
For  her  part,  she  grew  day  by  day  more  sweetly  serious,  more  womanly  courteous, 
until  our  pretty  masquerading  that  night  at  my  window  among  the  hop  vines 
came  to  be  a  remote,  unbelievable  dream. 

But  the  situation,  seemingly  so  quiet  and  easy  that  it  might  aspire  to  last 
for  ever,  was,  in  fact,  a  bubble  of  rainbow  tissue  blown  to  its  extremes  of  tension 
and  ready  to  shatter  at  a  breath.  When  the  breath  came  it  was  a  light  one, 
truly,  yet  how  the  face  of  the  world  changed  under  it.  I  awoke  one  morning 
in  the  first  rosiness  of  dawn  with  a  kind  of  foreboding.  I  went  to  the  window. 
There  in  the  misty  bay,  hove-to  at  a  discreet  distance  from  the  wharves,  was 
a  small  schooner,  signalling. 

The  signals  were  unintelligible  to  me,  which  meant  it  was  my  duty  to  be 
concerned  with  them.  I  remembered  that  there  was  a  flag-pole  on  the  knoll, 
behind  the  house.  With  a  sudden  leaden  sinking  at  the  heart  I  realised  that 
mademoiselle's  brother  was  at  last  in  evidence,  and  I  could  imagine  nothing 
that  would  more  embarrass  me  than  that  I  should  succeed  in  capturing  him. 
After  watching  the  signals  for  some  time,  and  wondering  if  it  were  made- 
moiselle herself  manipulating  the  unseen  replies,  I  decided  that  there  was 
nothing  to  be  done  but  parade  my  guard  openly  along  the  coast.  Then,  if 
he  should  persist  in  stupidly  running  his  neck  into  the  noose,  I  would  have 
to  do  my  duty  and  pull  it. 

"  Oh,  why  has  she  a  brother  !  "  I  groaned,  cursing  him  heartily,  but  straight 
revoked  my  curse,  remembering  that  but  for  his  delinquencies  I  had  never  come 
at  all  to  Cheticamp. 

Slowly  I  made  my  toilet,  and  before  it  was  finished  the  little  vessel  was 
under  way  again,  beating  out  of  the  inlet  against  a  light  westerly  wind.  Both 
to  north  and  south  of  Cheticamp  Harbour  were  little  sheltered  ports  with 
anchorage  for  such  small  craft  as  she  ;  and  I  concluded  that  with  this  wind 
she  would  seek  the  next  haven  northward.  I  resolved  to  send  my  men  to 
search  the  southerly  coves.  Then  I  stepped  out  upon  the  terrace  and  met 
mademoiselle  herself  tripping  through  the  dew,  her  hair  dishevelled,  her  eyes 
like  stars,  her  small  face  one  gipsy  sparkle  with  excitement. 

At  sight  of  me  an  apprehension  dimmed  the  sparkle  for  an  instant.  Then 
she  came  forward  to  greet  me  with  her  usual  courtesy.  But  now  there  was 
a  challenge  deep  in  her  eyes,  and  presently  a  return  of  the  old  subtle  audacity, 
as  if  I  were  a  foe  to  be  fenced  with,  bewildered,  eluded.  It  hurt  me  keenly, 
and  I  took  no  thought  of  the  utter  unreasonableness  of  my  grievance. 

"  Good  morning,  monsieur,"  she  cried  gaily.  "  Have  you  a  bad  conscience 
that  you  sleep  so  lightly  and  arise  so  early  ?  " 


188 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  Mademoiselle,"  said  I  gravely,  bending  low  over  her  cool  brown  fingers, 
and  noticing  that  they  trembled,  "  I  have  been  watching  the  signals  from 
yonder  ship." 

The  brown  fingers  were  withdrawn  nervously. 

"  They  were  quite  unintelligible  to  me,"  I  continued,  "  but  I  readily  infer 
that  your  brother  has  returned  and  is  on  shipboard." 

A  strange  look — was  it  relief  ? — passed  over  her  face.  Then  she  nodded 
her  dark  head  as  if  in  frankest  acquiescence. 

"  Allow  me  to  say  at  once  that  I  must  try  to  capture  him,  but  that  I  earnestly 
hope  that  I  shall  not  be  so  unfortunate  as  to  succeed." 

At  this  her  eyes  softened  upon  me.  Never  had  I  seen  anything,  in  life 
or  in  dream,  so  beautiful  as  the  smile  upon  her  lips.  But  I  went  on  :  "  My 
men  will  patrol  the  coast ;  but  they  are  few,  and  I  cannot,  of  course,  prevent 
your  messengers  eluding  their  vigilance  and  communicating  with  Monsieur 
le  Fevre.  I  am  glad  I  cannot  prevent  it.  I  doubt  not  you  will  warn  him  that 
all  this  neighbourhood  is  strictly  watched.  My  men  would  at  once  recognise 
him,  if  they  saw  him,  from  the  descriptions  they  have  had." 

Then,  as  I  watched  her  face,  my  restraint  was  shaken.  The  love  which  I  had 
not  till  that  day  let  myself  realise  laid  mighty  grasp  upon  me.  The  long-chained 
passion  crept  into  my  voice,  and  it  changed,  trembling,  as  I  continued  : 

"  Oh,  you  can  prevent  him  falling  into  our  hands.  I  beseech  you  let  not 
that  evil  come  upon  me  that  your  brother  should  be  my  prisoner." 

"  Thank  you,  monsieur,"  she  said  very  simply,  putting  her  hand  in  mine 
with  a  confidence  like  a  child's.  Her  eyes  searched  my  very  heart  for  a  second. 
"  I  think,  with  such  assistance,  we  can  elude  your  vigilance,  monsieur." 

But  on  the  instant  her  look  changed  to  one  of  the  deepest  gravity.  As 
I  have  so  often  thought  of  that  look  since,  it  was  a  surrender  in  part,  in  part 
a  sacrament. 

"  The  South  Cove  at  noon,"  she  said,  with  a  sort  of  sob,  and  flushed  and 
ran  hastily  into  the  house. 

For  a  moment  or  two  I  stood  staring  after  her  in  utter  bewilderment. 
The  dominant  feeling,  which  sent  great  gushes  of  light  and  warmth  through 
heart  and  brain  and  nerve,  was  that  she  loved  me,  that  she  had  revealed 
herself  to  me  on  a  swift,  inexplicable  impulse.  This  set  me  reeling  in  a  kind 
of  intoxication.  But  underneath,  clamouring  harshly  to  be  heeded,  was  the 
problem  she  had  thrust  upon  me.  She  had  forced  me  to  know  just  what  I 
had  striven  so  desperately  not  to  know.  For  the  moment,  however,  I  did 
not  think.  I  simply  let  myself  feel ;  and,  turning  mechanically,  I  walked 
in  a  daze  down  the  winding  road  through  the  rose  garden. 

"  Of  course,"  said  I  to  myself,  and  half  aloud  to  the  roses,  "  she  means 
that  I  am  to  act  upon  her  word  and  take  my  men  safely  out  of  the  way  to 
South  Cove  before  noon,  leaving  the  North  Harbour,  where  the  ship  has  gone, 
perfectly  secure.  She  knows  that  I  can  act  with  a  clear  conscience  on  so 
definite  a  piece  of  information  as  that.  She  knows  that  there  is  nothing  else 
for  me  to  do.  She  sees  that  I  love  her.  She  trusts  me.  And  she  trusts  my 
wit  to  comprehend  her  subtle  devisings.    Irene  !    Irene  !  " 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


189 


And  I  swung  gaily  down  towards  the  village  through  an  air  more  light  and 
sweet,  through  a  sunshine  more  radiant  and  clear,  under  a  sky  more  blue,  than 
ever  before  my  travelled  senses  had  encountered. 

I  breakfasted  at  the  inn.  By  the  time  my  messengers  had  got  hold  of 
my  scattered  men  and  given  them  my  orders  to  report  to  me  at  South  Cove, 
it  wanted  but  an  hour  of  noon.  To  South  Cove  was  an  hour's  brisk  walking, 
and  I  set  out,  with  my  orderly  at  my  heels.  He  was  a  trusty,  discreet  fellow, 
with  whom  I  was  wont  to  talk  net  a  little ;  but  to-day  my  dreams  were  all- 
sufficient  to  me,  and  I  would  not  let  the  lad  so  much  as  stir  his  tongue.  Arriving 
at  the  point  where  the  upland  dipped  down  to  South  Cove,  a  narrow  inlet  thickly 
screened  with  woods,  I  noted  the  hour  as  exact  noon.  Then,  liking  well  the 
look  of  the  leafage  below  me,  with  the  glint  of  water  sparkling  through,  and 
craving  no  company  but  my  own  and  my  thoughts,  I  bade  my  man  wait  where 
he  was  and  watch  the  roads  both  ways,  and  halt  the  others  as  they  should 
come  up. 

The  path  down  through  the  trees  was  green-mossed,  winding,  and  steep. 
I  went  swiftly  but  noiselessly.  Near  the  foot,  as  I  was  just  about  to  emerge 
upon  the  beach,  the  sound  of  voices  below  caught  my  ear.  I  essayed  to  stop 
myself,  slipped,  crashed  through  a  brittle  screen  of  dead  spruce  boughs,  and 
came  down,  erect  upon  my  feet  but  somewhat  jarred,  not  ten  paces  from  the 
spot  where  a  lady  and  a  cavalier,  locked  in  one  another's  arms,  stood  beside 
a  small  boat  drawn  up  upon  the  shingle. 

It  was  mademoiselle,  and  the  man  was  her  brother,  as  I  saw  on  the  instant 
from  the  likeness  between  them.  They  had  unlocked  their  arms  and  turned 
towards  me,  startled  at  the  sound  of  my  fall.  Mademoiselle's  face  went  white, 
then  flushed  crimson,  and,  drawing  herself  up,  she  confronted  me  with  a  look 
of  unutterable  scorn,  mingled  with  pain  and  reproach.  Apprehension  and 
amusement  struggled  together  in  the  face  of  the  young  seigneur. 

For  my  own  part,  I  had  realised  on  the  instant  the  whole  enormity  of 
my  mistake.  Mademoiselle  had  told  me  the  plain  truth,  staking  everything 
on  my  love,  trusting  me  utterly.  My  heart  sinks  now  as  I  recall  the  anguish 
of  that  moment.  I  had  but  one  thought — to  justify  myself  in  her  eyes.  I 
sprang  forward,  stammering. 

Forgive  me,  mademoiselle,  I  did  not  understand — I  quite  misunder- 
stood.   Believe  me,  I  never  dreamed  " 

But,  shaken  and  humiliated  as  she  vv^as,  she  did  not  lose  her  presence  of 
mind.    She  played  another  card  boldly. 

"  Captain  Scott,"  she  said,  as  if  this  were  the  most  ceremonious  meeting 
in  the  world,  "  this  is  my  fiance.  Monsieur  de  St.  Ange." 

By  great  good  fortune  I  had  wit  enough  to  seem  to  believe  her.  In  fact, 
perhaps  my  belief  was  too  well  simulated,  for  the  expressions  that  passed 
over  her  face  in  the  next  few  seconds  were  inexplicable  to  me  and  mightily 
increased  my  confusion.  But  toward  this  "  Monsieur  de  St.  Ange  "  I  felt  most 
cordial. 

Delighted,  monsieur,  I  am  sure,"  I  exclaimed,  bowing  low,  while  he  bowed 
with  equal  ceremony,  but  in  silence. 


190 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


"  I  congratulate  yon,"  I  went  on,  terribly  at  a  loss.  Then  I  looked  at 
mademoiselle,  who  had  turned  away  white  and  indifferent. 

"  There  has  been  some  mistake,"  I  continued  desperately.  "  That  you 
should  wish  to  see  your  betrothed  is,  of  course,  to  me  sufficient  explanation 
of  your  presence  here.  But  others  might  think  I  should  inquire  more  search- 
ingly  into  an  enemy's  purpose  in  visiting  a  place  like  this.  My  men  are  in 
the  neighbourhood  ;  I  will  go  at  once  and  withdraw  them.  But  I  beg  you, 
monsieur,  to  withdraw  yourself  as  speedily  as  possible." 

I  backed  away,  striving  in  vain  to  win  a  look  from  mademoiselle.  As  for 
her  brother,  he  was  most  civil. 

"  I  thank  you  for  your  great  courtesy,  monsieur,"  he  answered,  the  corners 
of  his  mouth  restraining  themselves  from  mirth.  *'  Much  as  it  would  be  to 
my  pleasure  to  know  you  better,  I  am  aware  that  I  might  find  it  inconvenient. 
I  shall  comply  as  speedily  as  possible  with  your  most  reasonable  request." 

At  the  foot  of  the  path,  finding  that  mademoiselle  was  quite  oblivious  to 
my  presence,  I  turned  and  made  all  haste  from  the  calamitous  spot.  When 
I  found  my  men,  I  hurried  them  off  toward  Cheticamp  with  an  eagerness  that 
hinted  at  a  fresh  and  important  clue.  From  the  inn  I  sent  them  in  parties 
of  two,  on  errands  of  urgency  that  would  take  them  as  far  as  possible  from 
South  Cove.  Then,  hurrying  back  to  the  Seigneury,  I  awaited,  in  sickening 
suspense,  the  return  of  mademoiselle  to  a  belated  meal. 

At  the  suggestion  of  the  wizened  old  housekeeper,  I  ate  the  meal  alone — or, 
rather,  I  put  some  dry,  chip-like  substances  into  my  mouth,  which  chose 
to  collect  themselves  in  a  lump  some  little  way  below  my  throat.  The  old 
lady  seemed  as  ignorant  as  I  of  the  reason  of  mademoiselle's  delay,  though 
once  and  again,  from  the  shrewd  scrutiny  which  I  caught  her  bestowing  upon 
my  countenance,  I  suspected  that  she  knew  more  than  she  would  confess. 
The  afternoon  went  by  in  that  misery  of  waiting  that  turns  one's  blood  to  gall. 
I  would  go  out  among  the  roses,  but  cursing  them  for  their  false,  disastrous 
speech,  I  found  them  not  contenting  company.  Then  I  would  go  back  into 
the  library  and  spend  the  sluggish  minutes  in  jumping  up,  sitting  down,  trying 
this  book,  rejecting  that,  while  every  sense  was  on  the  rack  of  intensity  to 
catch  some  hint  of  her  presence  in  the  house.  But  all  in  vain.  The  stillness 
seemed  unnatural.  There  was  a  menace  in  the  clear  pour  of  the  afternoon 
sun.  When  at  last,  toward  sundown,  the  humpbacked  old  gardener  went 
by  the  window  with  a  watering-pot,  I  was  startled  to  see  that  the  affairs  of 
life  were  going  on  as  usual.  There  was  somehow  a  grain  of  comfort,  of  re- 
' assurance,  in  the  sight  of  the  old  humpback.  I  left  the  library  and  went  to 
find  the  housekeeper,  determined  to  put  her  through  such  an  inquisition  as 
should  in  some  way  relieve  my  suspense. 

I  found  her  in  the  supper-room,  putting  flowers  on  a  table  that  was  set 
for — only  one. 

"  Supper  is  served,  monsieur,"  she  said,  as  I  came  in. 

"  For  me  alone  ?  "  I  gasped,  feeling  that  the  world  had  come  to  an  end. 
For  monsieur,"  she  answered. 

Tell  me  " — and  the  tone  made  her  look  at  me  quickly  with  a  deference 


THE  FACE  IN  THE  HOP  VINES 


191 


not  before  observable  in  her  manner — "  tell  me  at  once  where  Mademoiselle 
le  Fevre  is  gone." 

"  Certainly,  monsieur,  certainly.  There  is  no  desire  to  deceive  monsieur. 
Mademoiselle  and  her  maid  have  removed  to  the  inn  at  Cheticamp,  where 
mademoiselle  intends  to  reside  till  she  can  join  monsieur  her  brother  at  Louis- 
bourg." 

I  heard  her  through,  then  rushed  from  the  room,  snatched  up  my  hat,  and 
sped  down  to  the  inn  of  Cheticamp.  I  fear  that  the  civil  salutations  of  the 
villagers  whom  I  passed  went  outrageously  unregarded. 

My  demand  was  urgent,  so  within  a  very  few  minutes  of  my  coming  I  was 
ushered  into  mademoiselle's  parlour,  and  with  a  thrill  of  hope  at  the  omen  I 
noted  that  it  was  the  same  room  which  I  had  occupied  on  the  night  of  my 
arrival  at  Cheticamp,  the  same  dear  room  through  whose  hop-garlanded  window 
I  had  made  such  bold  and  merry  counterfeit  with  mademoiselle  in  her  disguise. 
But  not  nourishing  to  hope  was  mademoiselle's  greeting.  I  had  not  dreamed 
so  small  a  dame  could  ever  look  so  tall.  Her  slim  figure  was  in  the  gown  of 
creamy  linen  which  she  had  worn  when  I  had  met  her  in  the  rose-garden. 
Her  small,  strange,  child-like  face  was  very  white,  her  lips  set  coldly  and  less 
scarlet  than  their  wont,  and  her  eyes — they  were  fearfully  bright  and  large, 
with  a  gaze  which  I  could  not  fathom. 

"  To  what  do  I  owe  this  honour,  monsieur  ?  "  she  asked.    "  It  is  much  " 

But  I  was  rude  in  my  trouble. 
Why  have  you  fled  from  me,  mademoiselle  ?  "  I  interrupted  passionately. 
*'  Why  have  you  left  your  own  home  in  this  way  ?    I  will  leave  it  at  once— 
for  you  shall  not  be  driven  from  it." 

"  My  home,  monsieur  ?  It  is  your  house.  I  will  not  be  a  pensioner  on 
your  bounty." 

How  had  she  found  this  out  ?    I  was  in  confusion. 

"  What — what  do  you  mean,  mademoiselle  ?  "  I  stammered. 

"  I  mean,  monsieur,"  she  said,  with  ice  and  fire  contending  in  her  voice, 
"  that  all  these  days,  when  I  thought  I  was  playing  the  hostess,  in  a  home 
belonging  either  to  my  brother  or  to  the  English  Government,  I  have  been  but 
a  beggar  living  on  your  charity.  I  know  that  you  are  the  owner  of  Cheticamp 
House  and  all  in  it,  it  having  been  taken  from  us  to  give  to  you." 

I  was  in  despair  over  this  further  complication  ;  but  this  was  not  the 
time  for  finding  out  the  betrayer  of  my  secret. 

"  I  had  hoped  that  you  would  never  know,  mademoiselle,"  I  protested.  "  But 
it  is  not  of  that  I  would  speak.  Forgive  me,  I  beg  you  on  my  knees,  for  the  stupid 
mistake,  the  unpardonable  mistake  I  made  this  morning.  And  oh,  count  it 
something  that  I  did  my  best  to  remedy  the  error,  so  that  no  harm  came  of  it." 

The  anger  that  flamed  into  her  eyes  was  of  a  beauty  that  did  not  delight  me. 

''  Doubtless  you  did  your  duty,  monsieur,  as  a  servant  of  your  Govern- 
ment. Doubtless  honour  required  that  you  should  betray  the  trust  so  foolishly 
reposed  in  you  by  a  silly  girl.  You  would  have  taken  my  brother,  and  through 
his  sister's  folly.  I  cannot  feel  any  very  keen  gratitude  for  the  generosity 
which  suffered  my  fiance,  whom  you  did  not  seek,  to  go  free." 


192 


THE  RED  CROSS  STORY  BOOK 


Light  began  to  struggle  in  upon  the  darkness  of  my  brain. 
Your  fiance  !  "  I  returned  quickly.    "  Could  you  think  for  one  moment 
I  did  not  know  that  he  was  your  brother  ?  " 

Her  face  changed  marvellously  at  this  declaration. 

"  I  knew  your  purpose  then,"  I  went  on.  "  But  forgive  me,  forgive  me 
for  not  understanding  you  before.  I  was  not  worthy  of  the  simple  trust  you 
placed  in  me.  I  thought  you  meant  me  to  understand  that  I  should  take 
my  men  to  South  Cove  at  noon  to  have  them  out  of  the  way.  I  thought  it 
was  a  piece  of  your  daring  strategy,  and  I  was  proud  because  you  trusted 
my  stupid  wits  to  follow  your  plan.  I  thought  it  was  to  save  me  the  embarrass- 
ment of  openly  letting  your  brother  go.  I  thought — oh,  I  thought  myself 
so  wise,  and  I  was  so  cheaply  careful  of  my  duty.  Can  you  forgive  me  ?  You 
know,  you  must  know,  in  the  light  of  what  I  did  afterwards,  that  if  I  had 
only  understood  your  words  in  all  their  uncalculating  faith  no  power  on  earth 
would  have  prevented  me  keeping  myself  and  my  men  as  far  as  possible  from 
South  Cove." 

Her  tense  attitude  relaxed.  Her  figure  seemed  no  longer  so  portentously 
tall. 

"  It  is  I  who  must  ask  forgiveness,"  she  said  softly,  holding  out  her  hand. 
I  seized  it  in  both  of  mine  and  dared  to  kiss  it  fiercely,  hungrily,  and  marvelled 
to  find  that  it  was  not  at  once  withdrawn  from  such  an  ardour. 

"  I  am  not  so  wise,  I  am  not  so  subtle,  as  you  think  me,"  she  continued. 
"  It  was  a  clever  device,  indeed,  that  you  credited  me  with,  and  so  much 
more  considerate  and  fine  in  every  way  than  my  poor  little  thoughtlessness 
which  threw  the  responsibility  upon  you.  But  you  are  mistaken,  monsieur, 
if  you  think  that  I  am  at  all  clever  or  subtle." 

She  was  looking  down,  watching,  but  not  seeming  to  see,  how  my  hands 
held  both  of  hers.  For  myself,  I  knew  that  the  joy  of  life  had  come  to  me  ; 
but  I  could  find  no  word  to  say,  so  wildly  ran  my  blood.  After  a  moment's 
silence  she  said  musingly  : 

"  I  don't  think  I  ever  could  deceive  any  one.  I  am  sure  I  never  did  deceive 
any  one  in  my  life — but  once  ;  oh,  yes,  once."  And  here  she  lifted  up  her 
face  and  flashed  upon  me  a  challenge  of  dancing  eyes  and  mocking  mouth. 

"  No,  indeed,"  said  I.  "  The  maid  who  came  to  my  window  did  not  deceive 
me  for  a  moment  when  afterwards  I  met  her  in  the  rose-garden." 

"  Oh !  "  she  gasped  with  a  little  sob,  while  her  face  grew  scarlet.  "  You 
knew  all  the  time  ?    It  was  horrid  of  me — too  horrid  to  think  of.    Oh  " 

At  this  point  it  seemed  to  me  that  she  was  looking  for  a  spot  to  hide  her 
face,  and,  taking  base  advantage  of  her  confusion,  I  drew  her  into  my  arms 
and  let  her  blushes  fly  to  cover  against  my  coat.  Never  before,  in  my  opinion, 
had  the  King's  uniform  been  so  highly  honoured. 

"  To  my  window  you  came  that  night,  my  lady,"  I  whispered,  "  but  it 
was  to  the  door  of  my  heart  you  came." 


PriiUed  in  Great  Britain  by  Hazell,  Watson  iS;  Viney,  Ld.,  London  and  Aylesbury. 


I